State of
Tamil Nadu Through Superintendent of
Police, Cbi/Si Vs. Nalini & Ors [1999] INSC 200 (11 May 1999)
D.P.
WADHWA, J. --------------- D.P. WADHWA, J.
I have
studied the draft judgment prepared by my learned and noble brother K.T.
Thomas,J. It is a judgment so well written, but, regrettably, I find myself
unable to agree with him entirely both on certain questions of law and
conviction and sentence proposed by him on some of the accused. Moreover,
keeping in view the fact that since sentence of death passed on 26 accused by
the Designated Court has been submitted to this Court
for confirmation evidence needs to be considered in somewhat greater detail, I
venture to render separate judgment.
On the
night of 21.5.1991 a diabolical crime was committed. It stunned the whole
nation. Rajiv Gandhi, former Prime Minister of India, was assassinated by a
human bomb. With him 15 persons including 9 policemen perished and 43 suffered
grievous or simple injuries. Assassin Dhanu an LTTE (Liberation Tigers of Tamil
Elam) activist, who detonated the belt bomb concealed under her waist and
Haribabu, a photographer (and also a conspirator) engaged to take photographs
of the horrific sight, also died in the blast. As in any crime, criminals leave
some footprints.
In
this case it was a camera which was found intact on the body of Haribabu at the
scene of the crime. Film in the camera when developed led to unfolding of the
dastardly act committed by the accused and others. A charge of conspiracy for
offences under the Terrorist and Disruptive Activities (Prevention) Act, 1987
(TADA), Indian Penal Code (IPC), Explosive Substances Act, 1908, Arms Act,
1959, Passport Act, 1967, Foreigners Act, 1946, and the Indian Wireless
Telegraphy Act, 1933 was laid against 41 persons, 12 of whom were already dead
having committed suicide and three absconded. Out of these, 26 faced the trial
before the Designated
Court. Prosecution
examined 288 witnesses and produced numerous documents and material objects.
Statements
of all the accused were recorded under Section 313 of the Code of Criminal
Procedure (Code). They denied their involvement. The Designated Court found them guilty of the offences
charged against them. Thereafter all the accused were heard on the question of
sentence. Designated Court awarded death sentence to all of them on the charge
of conspiracy to murder. "A judicial massacre", bemoaned Mr. Natarajan,
learned senior counsel for the accused, and rightly so in our opinion.
Designated Court also sentenced each of the accused individually for various
offences for which they had been separately charged.
In
view of the provisions of Section 20 of TADA, Designated Court submitted the sentence of death to this Court for
confirmation. The accused also filed appeals under Section 19 of TADA
challenging their conviction and sentence.
The
accused have different alias and while mentioning the accused name it may not
be necessary to refer to them with all their respective alias and alias of an
accused will be indicated wherever necessary. There is no dispute about these
alias. For proper comprehension of the facts it will be appropriate to refer to
the appellants as accused.
Three
absconding accused are (1) Prabhakaran, (2) Pottu Amman @ Shanmuganathan
Sivasankaran and (3) Akila @ Akilakka. Prabhakaran is alleged to be the supreme
leader of Liberation Tigers of Tamil Elam (LTTE) - a Sri Lankan Tamil
organization, who along with Pottu Amman, Chief of Intelligence Wing of LTTE,
Akila, Deputy Chief of Women Wing of LTTE, and others designed criminal
conspiracy to assassinate Rajiv Gandhi and commit other offences in pursuance
thereof.
Deceased
accused (DA) who are alleged to be the members of the conspiracy and died
either by consuming cyanide or in the blast or by hanging are :
1. S.
Packiachandran @ Raghuvaran @ Sivarasan,
2.
Dhanu @ Anbu @ Kalaivani,
3.
Subha @ Nithya,
4. S.
Haribabu,
5.
Nehru @ Nero @ Gokul,
6. N.
Shanmugam @ Jayaraj
7.
Trichy Santhan @ Gundu Santhan,
8.
Suresh Master,
9. Dixon @ Kishore,
10. Amman @ Gangai Kumar,
11. Driver
Anna @ Keerthy,
12.
Jamuna @ Jameela, The accused, who are put on trial and are appellants before
us, are :
A-1 S.
Nalini, A-2 T. Suthendraraja @ Santhan, A-3 Sriharan @ Murugan @ Thas @ Indu
Master A-4 Shankar @ Koneswaran A-5 D. Vijayanandan @ Hari Ayya A-6 Sivaruban @
Suresh @ Suresh Kumar @ Ruban A-7 S. Kanagasabapathy @ Radhayya A-8 A.
Chandralekha @ Athirai @ Sonia @ Gowri A-9 B. Robert Payas @ Kumaralingam .
A-10
S. Jayakumar @ Jayakumaran @ Jayam A-11 J. Shanthi A-12 S. Vijayan @ Perumal
Vijayan A-13 V. Selvaluxmi A-14 S. Bhaskaran @ Velayudam A-15 S.
Shanmugavadivelu @ Thambi Anna A-16 P. Ravichandran @ Ravi @ Pragasam A-17 M.
Suseendran @ Mahesh A-18 G. Perarivelan @ Arivu A-19 S. Irumborai @ Duraisingam
A-20 S. Bhagyanathan A-21 S. Padma A-22 A. Sundaram @ Subha Sundaram A-23 K.
Dhanasekaran @ Raju A-24 N. Rajasuriya @ Rangan A-25 T. Vigneswaran @ Vicky
A-26 J. Ranganath Prosecution case is that Prabhakaran, Pottu Amman, Akila and
Sivarasan masterminded and put into operation the plan to kill Rajiv Gandhi
which was executed by Sivarasan, and Dhanu, of the two assassins (other being
Subha), with the back-up of other accused, who conspired and abetted them in
the commission of the crime which included providing them safe haven before and
after the crime. Charge of conspiracy is quite complex and when analysed it
states that 26 accused before us, and those absconding, deceased and others,
are charged with having entered into criminal conspiracy between July, 1987 and
May, 1992 at various places in Sri Lanka and India to do or cause to be done
illegal acts, namely :-
1. to
infiltrate into India clandestinely,
2. to
carry and use unauthorized arms, ammunition and explosives,
3. to
set up and operate unauthorized wireless sets to communicate with LTTE leaders
in Sri Lanka from time to time,
4. to
cause and carry out acts of terrorism and disruptive activities in Tamil Nadu
and other places in India by use of bombs, explosives and lethal weapons so as
to scare and create panic by such acts in the minds of the people and thereby
to strike terror in the people,
5. in
the course of such acts to assassinate Rajiv Gandhi, former Prime Minister of
India and others, who were likely to be with him,
6. to
cause disappearance of evidence thereof and to escape,
7. to
screen themselves from being apprehended,
8. to
harbour the accused and escape from the clutches of law, and
9. to
do such other acts as may be necessary to carry out the object of the criminal
conspiracy as per the needs of situation, and in pursuance of the said criminal
conspiracy and in furtherance of the same to carry out the object of the said
criminal conspiracy :
(I)
Santhan (A-2), Murugan (A-3), Shankar (A-4), Vijayanandan (A-5), Ruban (A-6),
Kanagasabapathy (A-7), Athirai (A-8), Robert Payas (A-9), Jayakumar (A-10),
Shanthi (A-11), Vijayan (A-12), Selvaluxmi (A-13), Bhaskaran (A-14), Rangam
(A-24) and Vicky (A-25) along with the deceased accused Sivarasan, Dhanu,
Subha, Nero, Gundu (Trichy) Santhan, Suresh Master, Dixon, Amman, Driver Anna
and Jamuna infiltrated into India from Sri Lanka clandestinely and otherwise on
different dates during the said period of criminal conspiracy;
(II)
Shanmugam (DA) amongst them arranged to receive, accommodated and rendered all
assistance to the members of the conspiracy;
(III)
Robert Payas (A-9), Jayakumar (A-10), Shanthi (A-11), Vijayan (A-12),
Selvaluxmi (A-13) and Bhaskaran (A-14) after having come over to India secured
houses at Porur and Kodungaiyur in Madras at the instance of Sivarasan (DA) for
accommodating one or other of the co-conspirators from time to time and for
chalking out the modalities of the course of action to be followed for the
achievement of the object of the said criminal conspiracy;
(IV)
Nero (DA) established contacts with Prabhakaran (absconding) through Pottu
Amman (absconding) through illegally operated wireless sets brought into India
by Sivarasan (DA) through illicit channel from the house of Vijayan (A-12);
(V)
Kanagasabapathy (A-7) and Athirai (A-8) came to India through illicit channel and set up hide outs in Delhi;
(VI)
Sivarasan (DA) brought Santhan (A-2), Shankar (A-4), Vijayanandan (A-5) and
Ruban (A-6) along with the deceased accused Dhanu, Subha, Nero and Driver Anna
to Kodiakkarai and got them all accommodated in several places in Tamil Nadu to
be of assistance in carrying out the object of criminal conspiracy;
(VII)
(a) Arivu (A-18) visited Jaffna and other places in Sri Lanka along with
Irumborai (A-19) clandestinely in June 1990, purchased a Kawasaki Motor cycle
on 4.5.1991 at Madras to facilitate quick movement of himself and one or the
other of the co-conspirators, (a-1) arranged payment for printing the
compilation described as "The Satanic Force" and sent one copy of the
same to Prabhakaran (absconding) through Sivarasan (DA) and another set through
Murugan (A-3), (b) purchased and provided a battery for operating the wireless
apparatus and other two battery cells, which were used as detonator in the belt
bomb used by Dhanu (DA) for the murder of Rajiv Gandhi and 15 others;
(VIII)
Shankar (A-4), Vijayanandan (A-5) and Ruban (A-6) along with Driver Anna (DA)
rendered all assistance necessary therefor;
(IX)
Sivarasan decided to murder Rajiv Gandhi, former Prime Minister of India in the
public meeting to be held at Sriperumbudhur on 21.5.91 on learning that Rajiv
Gandhi was to address the meeting on the said day and finalized the method of
operation to murder him by enlisting the services of Nalini (A-1) to be of help
at the scene of crime;
(X)
Arivu (A-18) handed over the film roll for the purposes of taking photographs
of events to Haribabu (DA), who also purchased a sandal wood garland from
Poompuhar Handicrafts, Mount Road Madras to be used for garlanding Rajiv Gandhi
at the scene of occurrence by Dhanu (DA) so as to gain access to the VVIP under
the guise of garlanding;
(XI)
Dhanu equipped herself with the necessary apparel in order to hide a belt bomb
and detonator attached thereto for detonating the same when she was in close
proximity to Rajiv Gandhi;
(XII)
Haribabu (DA) met Suba Sundaram (A-22) on 21.5.1991 and thereafter took a
Chinon camera from a friend for taking photographs at the scene of offence and
loading the camera with the film already provided by Arivu (A-18);
(XIII)
Nalini (A-1) along with the deceased accused Sivarasan, Dhanu and Subha met
Haribabu at Parrys Corner, Broadway Bus Stand and proceeded to the venue of the
public meeting at Sriperumbudur on the evening of 21.5.1991 where Nalini (A-1)
provided cover to Dhanu and Subha and when Rajiv Gandhi arrived at the scene of
occurrence at about 10.10 P.M. Dhanu gained access nearer to Rajiv Gandhi and
while in close proximity to Rajiv Gandhi Dhanu detonated the improvised
explosive device kept concealed in her waist belt at about 10.20 P.M. resulting
in the blast and assassinated Rajiv Gandhi and 15 others and also by killing
herself (Dhanu) and also causing the death of Haribabu accused and causing
injuries to 43 persons;
(XIV)
Nalini (A-1) along with the deceased accused Sivarasan and Subha immediately
fled from the scene of occurrence, reached the house of Jayakumar (A-10) and
Shanthi (A-11) and took shelter in Jayakumar's (A-10) house;
(XV)
Suba Sundaram (A-22) attempted to retrieve the camera used by Haribabu from the
scene of occurrence, caused destruction of documents and material objects
linking Haribabu in this case and arranged to issue denial in the press about
any connection of the said Haribabu with the LTTE;
(XVI)
Bhagyanathan (A-20) and Padma (A-21) rendered all assistance and harboured the
deceased accused Sivarasan and Subha, Murugan (A-3) and Arivu (A-18);
(XVII)
Nalini (A-1), Murugan (A-3) and Padma (A-21) accompanied the deceased accused
Sivarasan and Subha to Tirupathi, where Nalini (A-1) did
"Angapradakshinam";
(XVIII)
Nalini (A-1) and Murugan (A-3) hide themselves in different places in Tamil
Nadu and Karnataka State in order to evade arrest;
(XIX)
Dhanasekaran (A-23), Rangam (A-24) and Vicky (A-25) harboured the deceased
accused Sivarasan, Subha and Nero by transporting them and concealing them
inside a tanker lorry bearing No. TN-27-Y-0808 belonging to Dhanasekaran (A-23)
from Madras to Bangalore;
(XX)
Nero (DA) operated the wireless set and communicated with the absconding
accused Prabhakaran and Pottu Amman and conveyed the developments on behalf of
the accused Sivarasan;
(XXI)
the deceased accused Nero, Gundu Santhan, Suresh Master, Dixon, Amman and Driver Anna rendered all assistance to the deceased
accused Sivarasan;
(XXII)
Rangam (A-24) rendered all assistance to Sivarasan and others by transporting
them in a Maruthi Gypsy in Bangalore and other places in Karnataka purchased by
Dhanasekaran (A-23) using LTTE funds;
(XXIII)
Ranganath (A-26) harboured the accused Rangam (A-24) and the deceased accused
Sivarasan, Subha, Nero, Suresh Master, Amman, Driver Anna and Jamuna at
Knonnakunte, Bangalore and on 19.8.1991 the deceased accused Sivarasan, Subha,
Nero, Suresh Master, Amman, Driver Anna and Jamuna committed suicide;
(XXIV)
Shanmugavadivelu @ Thambi Anna (A-15) rendered financial assistance to
Sivarasan and to one or other of coconspirators to carry out the object of
conspiracy and abetted the commission of the said offence;
(XXV)
Nalini (A-1) to Ranganath (A-26) caused the disappearance of evidence of murder
of Rajiv Gandhi; and thereby Nalini (A-1) to Ranganath (A-26) committed
offences punishable under Section 120-B of IPC read with Sections 302 of IPC,
326 of IPC, 324 of IPC, 201 of IPC, 212 of IPC and 216 of IPC; Sections 3,4 and
5 of Explosive Substances Act of 1908; Section 25 of Arms Act of 1959; Section
12 of Passport Act, 1967; Section 14 of the Foreigners Act, 1946;
Section
6(1A) of the Wireless Telegraphy Act, 1933 and Sections 3, 4 and 5 of TADA of
1987.
Including
the charge of conspiracy, which is charge No. 1, there are 251 other charges
framed against the accused for having committed various offences in pursuance
to the conspiracy under Charge No. 1. Out of these Nalini (A-1) has been
charged on 121 different counts. Second charge against her is that in pursuance
to the conspiracy and in the course of the same transaction and in furtherance
to the common intention of the accused she and the deceased accused Sivarasan,
Dhanu, Subha and Haribabu did "commit murder of Rajiv Gandhi and others,
who were likely to be with him on 21.5.1991 at about 10.20 P.M. at
Sriperumbudur in the public meeting where Nalini (A1) was physically present at
the scene of crime and provided the assassin Dhanu [deceased accused (DA)] the
necessary cover from being detected as a foreigner, which enabled the assassin
to move freely in the scene of crime and gain access nearer to Rajiv Gandhi to
accomplish the object of conspiracy, where Dhanu did commit murder and
intentionally caused the death of Rajiv Gandhi by detonating the improvised
explosive device which was kept concealed in her waist belt when she was in
close proximity to Rajiv Gandhi and thereby she (Nalini) committed an offence
punishable under Section 302 read with Section 34 IPC." Charges 3 to 17
are also under Section 302 read with Section 34 IPC for having caused the death
of persons, who were in close proximity to Rajiv Gandhi. Charges 18 to 34 are
under Section 326/34 IPC for voluntarily causing grievous hurt to the persons
who were in close proximity to Rajiv Gandhi at the time of explosion. Charges
35 to 60 are under Section 324 read with Section 34 IPC for voluntarily causing
hurt to the persons at the same time. Charges 61 to 119 are under Section 3(2)
TADA read with Section 34 IPC.
In
these charges under Section 3(2) TADA it is mentioned that Nalini (A-1)
committed terrorist acts by providing cover to Dhanu (DA) who detonated the
improvised explosive device resulting in the bomb blast and in the murder of
Rajiv Gandhi and others. Charge No. 120 is for offence under Section 3(3) TADA
and this charge is as under :- That Nalini (A-1) in pursuance of the said
criminal conspiracy referred to in Charge No. 1, and in the course of the same
transaction she in furtherance of the common intention, of Nalini (A-1) she
proceeded to Sriperumbudur along with Sivarasan, Subha, Dhanu and Haribabu on
the night of 21.5.1991 at about 10.20 P.M. in the public meeting having
knowledge of the commission of the terrorist act viz., explosion of bomb for
killing Rajiv Gandhi and others and causing injuries to those, who were likely
to be around him, and also striking terror in the people and rendered
assistance to the terrorists Dhanu, Sivarasan and Subha prior to the terrorist
act by taking them to the bus, hotel, the venue of public meeting and the like
and intentionally aided the said terrorist act by being present on 21.5.1991 at
Sriperumbudur in the public meeting, where the terrorist act was committed by
Dhanu by detonating the improvised explosive device kept concealed in her waist
belt resulting in the bomb blast, and with intent to aid and facilitate the
commission of the said terrorist act Nalini (A-1) provided a cloak to Dhanu and
Subha from being easily identified as Sri Lankan Tamils at the scene of crime
and also facilitated the escape of the above said accused concerned in the
crime, and thus Nalini (A-1) abetted the commission of the terrorist act and
acts preparatory to the terrorist act or knowingly facilitated the commission
of the terrorist act and acts preparatory to the terrorist act and thereby
Nalini (A-1) committed the offence punishable under Section 3(3) of the TADA of
1987.
Last
charge against Nalini (A-1) is under Section 4(1) TADA read with Section 34 IPC
for having committed offence under Section 4(3) TADA for killing of nine police
officials, who were public servants and were at that time with Rajiv Gandhi on
duty.
Santhan
(A-2) has been charged for an offence under Section 3(3) TADA and Section 14 of
Foreigners Act (Charges 122 and 123). Other accused have also been similarly
charged. As to how all the accused have been charged and whether found guilty
or not and sentences passed against them by the Designated Court can be best illustrated by the table given hereunder :-
CHARGES COMMON TO ALL 26 ACCUSED CHARGE OFFENCE U/S FINDING SENTENCE
-----------------------------------------------------------------
1.
120-B r/w 3302, 326,324, 201, 212, 216, of IPC 3,4 & 5 of Explosives
Substance Act 25 of Arms Act 12 of
Pasport Act Guilty Death 14 of Foreigners Act
6(1-A) Wireless and Telegraphy Act 3,4,& 5 TADA
---------------------------------------------------------------- Nalini (A-1)
Charge Offence U/S Finding Sentence
No.--------------------------------------------------------------------- 2 to
17 302, r/w 34 IPC Guility Death (16 Courts) 18 to 34 326 r/w 34 IPC Gulity 3
years RI (13courts) 35 to 40 324 r/w 34 IPC Gulity 1 Years RI (6 courts) 41 to
60 324 r/w 34 IPC Not Acquitted Guilty (20 Courts) 61 to 76 3(2)(i) of TADA r/w
34 Guilty Death IPC Guilty (16 Courts) 77 to 99 3(2) (ii) TADA r/w 34 Guilty
(not Life (19 guilty for Courts 79.82.9 4.93 Acquitted for for four Courts) 100
to 119 3(2)(ii) TADA r/w 34 Not Guilty Acquitted 120 3(3) TADA Gulity Life
(Life Imprisonm ent 121 4(3) TADA and 4(1) r/w Guilty Life 34 IPC
--------------------------------------------------------------------- Santhan
(A-2) Charge Offence U/S Finding Sentence No.---------------------------------------------------------------------
122 3(3) TADA Guilty Life 123 14 of Foreigners Act
Guilty 2 Years RI
---------------------------------------------------------------------- Murugan
(A-3) Charge Offence U/S Finding Sentence
No.-------------------------------------------------------------------- 124
3(3) TADA Guilty Life 125 14 of Foreigners Act
Guilty 2 Years RI 126 6(1-A) of Indian Guitly 2 Years RI Wireless and
Telegraphy Act.
---------------------------------------------------------------------
Shankar (A-4)
-------------------------------------------------------------------- Charge
Offence U/S Finding Sentence
No.-------------------------------------------------------------------- 127
3(3) TADA Guilty Life 128 14 of Foreigners Act
Guilty 2 Years RI ---------------------------------------------------------------------
Vijayanandan (A - 5) Charge Offence U/S Finding Sentence No. --------------------------------------------------------------------
129 3(3) TADA Guilty Life 130 14 of Foreigners Act
Guilty 2 Years RI
--------------------------------------------------------------------- Ruban
(A-6) Charge Offence U/S Finding Sentence No. ----------------------------------------------------------------------
131 3(3) TADA Guilty Life 132 14 of Foreigners Act
Guilty 2 Years RI
---------------------------------------------------------------------
Kanagasabapathy (A-7) Charge Offence U/S Finding Sentence No. -------------------------------------------------------------------------
133 3(3) TADA Guilty Life 134 14 of Foreigners Act
Guilty 2 Years 135 212 IPC Guilty 2 Years RI 136 14 of Foreigners Act
Guilty 2 Years RI
---------------------------------------------------------------------------
Athirai (A-8) Charge Offence U/S Finding Sentence
No.------------------------------------------------------------------- 137 3(3)
TADA Guilty Life 138 3(3)| TADA Guilty Life 139 212 IPC Guilty 2 Years RI 140
14 of Foreigners
Act Guilty 2 Years RI ---------------------------------------------------------------------
Robert Payas (A-9) Charge Offence U/S Finding Sentence
No.-------------------------------------------------------------------127 3(3)
TADA Guilty Life ---------------------------------------------------------------------
Jayakumar (A - 10) Charge Offence U/S Finding Sentence
No.---------------------------------------------------------------------- 142
3(3) TADA Guilty Life 143 3(4) TADA Guilty Life 144 212 IPC Guilty 2 years RI
145 3(1) & 25 (1-8) (a) ArmsGuilty 2 Years RI
--------------------------------------------------------------------Shanthi
(A-11) ---------------------------------------------------------------------
Charge Offence U/S Finding Sentence
No.-------------------------------------------------------------------127 143
3(4) TADA Guilty Life 144 212 IPC Guilty 2 Years RI 145 3(1) & 25 (1-B) (a)
Guilty 2 Years RI Arms
Act 146 3(3) TADA Guilty Life ---------------------------------------------------------------------
Vijayan (A-12) Charge Offence U/S Finding Sentence
No.-------------------------------------------------------------------- 147
3(3) TADA Guilty Life 148 3(4) TADA Guilty Life 149 212 IPC Guilty 2 Years RI
150 6(IA) of Indian Wire- Guilty 2 Years RI less and Telegraphy Act
----------------------------------------------------------------------
Selvaluxmi (A-13) Charge Offence U/S Finding Sentence
No.-------------------------------------------------------------------- 148
3(4) TADA Guilty Life 149 212 IPC Guilty 2 Years RI 150 6(IA) of Indian Wire-
Guilty 2 Years RI less and Telegraphy Act 152 3(3) TADA Guilty Life
----------------------------------------------------------------------
Bhaskaran (A-14) Charge Offence U/S Finding Sentence
No.-------------------------------------------------------------------- 148
3(4) TADA Guilty Life 149 212 IPC Guilty 2 Years RI 152 3(3) TADA Guilty Life
----------------------------------------------------------------------
Shanmugavadivelu (A-15) Charge Offence U/S Finding Sentence
No.-------------------------------------------------------------------- 153
3(4) TADA Guilty Life
---------------------------------------------------------------------- Ravi
(A-16) Charge Offence U/S Finding Sentence No.--------------------------------------------------------------------
154 3(3) TADA Guilty Life 155 3(4) TADA Guilty Life 156 212 IPC Guilty 2 Years
RI 157 5 of TADA Guilty Life 158 5 of Explosive & Sub- Guilty 2 Years RI
159 3(1) & 25 (1-B) (a) Guilty 2 Years RI Arms Act
----------------------------------------------------------------------
Suseendran (A-17) Charge Offence U/S Finding Sentence No. --------------------------------------------------------------------
160 3(3) TADA Guilty Life 161 3(4) TADA Guilty Life 162 212 IPC Guilty 2 Years
RI 163 3 of TADA - Guilty Life 164 5 of Explosive & Guilty 2 Years RI
Substances Act 165 3(1) & 25 (1-B) (a) Guilty 2 Years RI Arms
---------------------------------------------------------------------- Arivu (A-18)
Charge Offence U/S Finding Sentence No. --------------------------------------------------------------------
166 3(3) TADA Guilty Life 1617 to 109 & 302 IPC Guilty Death (16 Counts)
183 to 199 109 and 326 IPC Guilty 3 years RI (13 (13 counts) counts) 183,184, 86,187,
191 to 198. 200 to 205,226 to 228 Acqu- itted of charges 185, 188,190 & 199
(4 counts) 200 to 225 109 and 324 IPC Guilty (6 1 Years RI Counts) 200 to 205
acquitted on counts (206 to 225) 226 6(1-A) of Wire- Guilty 2 Years RI less
& Telegraphy Act and 109 IPC 227 12 of Passport Act Guilty 3 months RI 228
4(3) TADA punishable Guilty Life u/s 4(1) TADA and 109 IPC r/w 34 IPC
----------------------------------------------------------------------
Irumborai (A-19) Charge Offence U/S Finding Sentence No. --------------------------------------------------------------------
229 3(3) TADA Guilty Life 230 3(4) TADA Guilty Life 231 212 IPC Guilty 2 Years
RI 232 12 of Passport Act- Guilty 3 months RI
----------------------------------------------------------------------
Bhagyanathan (A-20) Charge Offence U/S Finding Sentence No.
--------------------------------------------------------------------
233 3(3) TADA Guilty Life 234 212 IPC Guilty 2 Years RI
---------------------------------------------------------------------- Padma
(A-12) Charge Offence U/S Finding Sentence No. --------------------------------------------------------------------
235 3(3) TADA Guilty Life 236 212 IPC Guilty 2 Years RI 237 6 (1-A) Wireless
& Guilty 2 Years RI Telegraphy Act ----------------------------------------------------------------------
Suba Sundaram (A-22) Charge Offence U/S Finding Sentence
No.-------------------------------------------------------------------- 238
3(3) TADA Guilty Life 239 212 IPC Guilty 2 Years RI ----------------------------------------------------------------------
Dhanasekaran (A-23) Charge Offence U/S Finding Sentence
No.-------------------------------------------------------------------- 240
3(3) TADA Guilty Life 241 3(4) TADA Guilty Life 242 212 IPC Guilty 2 Years RI
---------------------------------------------------------------------- Rangam
(A-24) Charge Offence U/S Finding Sentence
No.-------------------------------------------------------------------- 243
3(3) TADA Guilty Life 244 212 IPC Guilty 2 Years RI 245 14 Foreigners Act
Guilty 2 Years RI
---------------------------------------------------------------------- Vicky
(A-25) Charge Offence U/S Finding Sentence
No.-------------------------------------------------------------------- 246
3(4) TADA Guilty Life 247 212 IPC Guilty 2 Years RI 248 14 Foreigners Act
Guilty 2 Years RI
----------------------------------------------------------------------
Ranganath (A-26) Charge Offence U/S Finding Sentence
No.-------------------------------------------------------------------- 249
3(4) TADA Guilty Life 250 212 IPC Guilty 2 Years RI 251 212 IPC Guilty 2 Years
RI ----------------------------------------------------------------------
Before we consider the evidence and the arguments advanced by both the parties
it may be more appropriate to set out various provisions of law which are the
subjectmatter of the charges against the accused.
THE
TERRORIST AND DISRUPTIVE ACTIVITIES
(PREVENTION)
ACT, 1987
"2.
Definitions.-(1) In this Act, unless the context otherwise requires,- (a) to
(c) ...
(d)
"disruptive activity" has the meaning assigned to it in section 4,
and the expression "disruptionist" shall be construed accordingly;
(e) to
(gg) ...
(h)
"terrorist act" has the meaning assigned to it in sub-section (1) of
section 3, and the expression "terrorist" shall be construed
accordingly;
Section
3. Punishment for terrorist acts.- (1) Whoever with intent to overawe the
Government as by law established or to strike terror in people or any section
of the people or to alienate any section of the people or to adversely affect
the harmony amongst different sections of the people does any act or thing by
using bombs, dynamite or other explosive substances or inflammable substances
or fire-arms or other lethal weapons or poisons or noxious gases or other
chemicals or by any other substances (whether biological or otherwise) of a
hazardous nature in such a manner as to cause, or as is likely to cause, death
of, or injuries to, any person or persons or loss of, or damage to, or destruction
of, property or disruption or any supplies or services essential to the life of
the community, or detains any person and threatens to kill or injure such
person in order to compel the Government or any other person to do or abstain
from doing any act, commits a terrorist act.
(2)
Whoever commits a terrorist act, shall,- (i) if such act has resulted in the
death of any person, be punishable with death or imprisonment for life and
shall be liable to fine;
(ii)
in any other case, be punishable with imprisonment for a term which shall not
be less than five years but which may extend to imprisonment for life and shall
also be liable to fine.
(3)
Whoever conspires or attempts to commit, or advocates, abets, advises or
incites or knowingly facilitates the commission of, a terrorist act or any act
preparatory to a terrorist act, shall be punishable with imprisonment for a
term which shall not be less than five years but which may extend to
imprisonment for life and shall also be liable to fine.
(4)
Whoever harbours or conceals, or attempts to harbour or conceal, any terrorist
shall be punishable with imprisonment for a term which shall not be less than
five years but which may extent to imprisonment for life and shall also be
liable to fine.
(5)
Any person who is a member of a terrorists gang or a terrorists organisation,
which is involved in terrorist act, shall be punishable with imprisonment for a
term which shall not be less than five years but which may extend to
imprisonment for life and shall also be liable to fine.
(6)
Whoever holds any property derived or obtained from commission of any terrorist
act or has been acquired through the terrorist funds shall be punishable with
imprisonment for a term which shall not be less than five years but which may
extent to imprisonment for life and shall also be liable to fine.
Section
4.Punishment for disruptive activities.- (1) Whoever commits or conspired or
attempts to commit or abets, advocates, advises, or knowingly facilitates the
commission of, any disruptive activity or any act preparatory to a disruptive
activity shall be punishable with imprisonment for a term which shall not be
less than five years but which may extend to imprisonment for life and shall
also be liable to fine.
(2)
For the purposes of sub-section (1), "disruptive activity" means any
action taken, whether by act or by speech or through any other media or in any
other manner whatsoever, (i) which questions, disrupts or is intended to
disrupt, whether directly or indirectly, the sovereignty and territorial
integrity of India; or (ii) which is intended to bring about or supports any
claim, whether directly or indirectly, for the cession of any part of India or
the secession of any part of India from the Union.
Explanation:-
For the purposes of this sub-section- (a) "cession" includes the
admission of any claim of any foreign country to any part of India, and (b)
"secession" includes the assertion of any claim to determine whether
a part of India will remain within the Union.
(3)
Without prejudice to the generality of the provisions of sub-section (2), it is
hereby declared that any action taken, whether by act or by speech or through
any other media or in any other manner whatsoever, which- (a) advocates,
advises, suggests or incites; or (b) predicts, prophesies or pronounces or
otherwise expresses, in such manner as to incite, advise, suggest or prompt,
the killing or the destruction of any person bound by oath under the
Constitution to uphold the sovereignty and integrity of India or any public
servant shall be deemed to be a disruptive activity within the meaning of this
section.
(4)
Whoever harbours or conceals, or attempts to harbour or conceal, any
disruptionist shall be punishable with imprisonment for a term which shall not
be less than five years but which may extend to imprisonment for life and shall
also be liable to fine.
5.
Possession of certain unauthorized arms, etc., in specified areas.- Where any
person is in possession of any arms and ammunition specified in columns 2 and 3
of Category 1 and III (a) of Schedule I to the Arms Rules, 1962, or bombs,
dynamite or other explosive substances unauthorisedly in a notified area, he
shall, notwithstanding anything contained in any other law for the time being
in force, be punishable with imprisonment for a term which shall not be less
than five years but which may extend to imprisonment for life and shall also be
liable to fine.
6.
Enhanced penalties.-(1) If any person with intent to aid any terrorist or
disruptionist, contravenes any provision of, or any rule made under, the Arms
Act, 1959 (54 of 1959), the Explosives Act, 1884 (4 of 1884), the Explosive
Substances Act, 1908 (6 of 1908), or the inflammable Substances Act, 1952 (20
of 1952), he shall, notwithstanding anything contained in any of the aforesaid
Acts or the rules made thereunder be punishable with imprisonment for a term
which shall not be less than five years but which may extend to imprisonment
for life and shall also be liable to fine.
(2)
For the purposes of this section, any person who attempts to contravene or
abets, or attempts to abet, or does any act preparatory to the contravention of
any provision of any law, rule or order, shall be deemed to have contravened
that provision, and the provisions of sub-section (1) shall, in relation to
such person, have effect subject to the modification that the reference to
"imprisonment for life" shall be construed as a reference to
"imprisonment for ten years".
15.
Certain confessions made to police officers to be taken into consideration.-(1)
Notwithstanding anything in the Code or in the Indian Evidence Act, 1872 (1 of
1872), but subject to the provisions of this section, a confession made by a
person before a police officer not lower in rank than a Superintendent of
Police and recorded by such police officer either in writing or on any
mechanical device like cassettes, tapes or sound tracks from out of which
sounds or images can be reproduced, shall be admissible in the trial of such
person or co-accused, abettor or conspirator for an offence under this Act or
rules made thereunder.
Provided
that co-accused, abettor or conspirator is charged and tried in the same case
together with the accused.
(2)
The police officer shall, before recording any confession under sub-section
(1), explain to the person making it that he is not bound to make a confession
and that, if he does so, it may be used as evidence against him and such police
officer shall not record any such confession unless upon questioning the person
making it, he has reason to believe that it is being made voluntarily.
25.
Over-riding effect.- The provisions of this Act or any rule made thereunder or
any order made under any such rule shall have effect notwithstanding anything
inconsistent therewith contained in any enactment other than this Act or in any
instrument having effect by virtue of any enactment other than this Act.
28.
Power to make rules.-(1) Without prejudice to the powers of the Supreme Court
to make rules under Section 27, the Central Government may, by notification in
the Official Gazette, make rules for carrying out the provisions of this Act.
(2) In
particular, and without prejudice to the generality of the foregoing power,
such rules may provide for all or any of the following matters, namely:
(a)
regulating the conduct of persons in respect of areas the control of which is
considered necessary or expedient and the removal of such persons from such
areas;
(b)
the entry into, and search of, (i) any vehicle, vessel or aircraft; or (ii) any
place, whatsoever, reasonably suspected of being used for committing the
offences referred to in section 3 or section 4 or for manufacturing or storing
anything for the commission of any such offence;
(c)
conferring powers upon, (i) the Central Government;
(ii) a
State Government;
(iii)an
Administrator of a Union territory under article 239 of the Constitution.
(iv)
an officer of the Central Government not lower in rank than that of a Joint
Secretary; or (v) an officer of the State Government not lower in rank than
that of a District Magistrate, to make general or special orders to prevent or
cope with terrorist acts or disruptive activities;
(d)
the arrest and trial of persons contravening any of the rules or any order make
thereunder;
(e)
the punishment of any person who contravenes or attempts to contravene or abets
or attempts to abet the contravention of any rule or order made thereunder with
imprisonment for a term which may extend to seven years or for a term which may
not be less than six months but which may extend to seven years or with fine or
with imprisonment as aforesaid and fine;
(f)
providing for seizure and detention of any property in respect of which such
contravention, attempt or abetment as is referred to in clause (e) has been
committed and for the adjudication of such seizure and detention, whether by
any court or by any other authority." TADA Rules
15.
Recording of confession made to police officers.- (1) A confession made by a
person before a police officer and recorded by such police officer under
Section 15 of the Act shall invariably be recorded in the language in which
such confession is made and if that is not practicable, in the language used by
such police officer for official purposes or in the language of the Designated
Court and it shall form part of the record.
(2)
The confession so recorded shall be shown, read or played back to the person
concerned and if he does not understand the language in which it is recorded,
it shall be interpreted to him in a language which he understands and he shall
be at liberty to explain or add to his confession.
(3)
The confession shall, if it is in writing, be- (a) signed by the person who
makes the confession; and (b) by the police officer who shall also certify
under his own hand that such confession was taken in his presence and recorded
by him and that the record contains a full and true account of the confession
made by the person and such police officer shall make a memorandum at the end
of the confession to the following effect:- "I have explained to (name)
that he is not bound to make a confession and that, if he does so, any
confession he may make may be used as evidence against him and I believe that
this confession was voluntarily made. It was taken in my presence and hearing
and recorded by me and was read over to the person making it and admitted by
him to be correct, and it contains a full and true account of the statement
made by him.
Sd/-
Police Officer." (4) Where the confession is recorded on any mechanical
device, the memorandum referred to in sub-rule (3) in so far as it is
applicable and a declaration made by the person making the confession that the
said confession recorded on the mechanical device has been correctly recorded
in his presence shall also be recorded in the mechanical device at the end of
the confession.
(5)
Every confession recorded under the said section 15 shall be sent forthwith to
the Chief Metropolitan Magistrate or the Chief Judicial Magistrate having
jurisdiction over the area in which such confession has been recorded and such
Magistrate shall froward the recorded confession so received to the Designated
Court which may take cognizance of the offence.
INDIAN
PENAL CODE (IPC) ----------------------- "120-A. Definition of criminal
conspiracy. - When two or more persons agree to do, or cause to be done,- (1)
an illegal act, or (2) an act which is not illegal by illegal means, such an
agreement is designated a criminal conspiracy:
Provided
that no agreement except an agreement to commit an offence shall amount to a
criminal conspiracy unless some act besides the agreement is done by one or
more parties to such agreement in pursuance thereof.
Explanation
- It is immaterial whether the illegal act is the ultimate object of such
agreement, or is merely incidental to that object.
120-B.
Punishment of criminal conspiracy - (1) whoever is a party to a criminal
conspiracy to commit an offence punishable with death, imprisonment for life or
rigorous imprisonment for a term of two years or upwards, shall, where no
express provision is made in the Code for the punishment of such a conspiracy,
be punished in the same manner as if he had abetted such offence.
(2)
Whoever is a party to a criminal conspiracy other than a criminal conspiracy to
commit an offence punishable as aforesaid shall be punished with imprisonment
of either description for a term not exceeding six months, or with fine or with
both.
34.
Acts done by several persons in furtherance of common intention.-- When a
criminal act is done by several persons in furtherance of the common intention
of all, each of such persons is liable for that act in the same manner as if it
were done by him alone.
302.
Punishment for murder -- Whoever commits murder shall be punished with death,
or imprisonment for life, and shall also be liable to fine.
326.
Voluntarily causing grievous hurt by dangerous weapons or means.-- Whoever,
except in the case provided for by Section 335, voluntarily causes grievous
hurt by means of any instrument for shooting, stabbing or cutting, or any
instrument which, used as a weapon of offence, is likely to cause death, or by
means of fire or any heated substance, or by means of any poison or any
corrosive substance, or by means of any explosive substance, or by means of any
substance which it is deleterious to the human body to inhale, to swallow, or
to receive into the blood, or by means of any animal, shall be punished with
imprisonment for life, or with imprisonment of either description for a term
which may extend to ten years, and shall also be liable to fine.
324.
Voluntarily causing hurt by dangerous weapons or means.-- Whoever, except in
the case provided for by Section 334, voluntarily causes hurt by means of any
instrument for shooting, stabbing or cutting, or any instrument which, used as
a weapon of offence, is likely to cause death, or by means of fire or any
heated substance, or by means of any poison or any corrosive substance, or by
means of any explosive substance or by means of any substance which it is
deleterious to the human body to inhale, to swallow, or to receive into the
blood, or by means of any animal, shall be punished with imprisonment of either
description for a term which may extend to three years, or with fine, or with
both.
201.
Causing disappearance of evidence of offence, or giving false information to
screen offender-- Whoever, knowing or having reason to believe that an offence
has been committed, causes any evidence of the commission of that offence to
disappear, with the intention of screening the offender from legal punishment,
or with that intention gives any information respecting the offence which he
knows or believes to be false.
if a
capital offence shall, if the offence which he knows or believes to have been
committed is punishable with death, be punished with imprisonment of either
description for a term which may extend to seven years, and shall also be
liable to fine;
if
punishable with imprisonment for life and if the offence is punishable with
imprisonment for life, or with imprisonment which may extend to ten years,
shall be punished with imprisonment of either description for a term which may
extend to three years, and shall also be liable to fine;
if
punishable with less than ten years' imprisonment and if the offence is
punishable with imprisonment for any term not extending to ten years, shall be
punished with imprisonment of the description provided for the offence, for a
term which may extend to one-fourth part of the longest term of the
imprisonment provided for the offence, or with fine, or with both.
212
Harbouring offender.-- Whenever an offence has been committed, whoever harbours
or conceals a person whom he knows or has reason to believe to be the offender,
with the intention of screening him from legal punishment, if a capital offence
shall, if the offence is punishable with death, be punished with imprisonment
of either description for a term which may extend to five years, and shall also
be liable to fine;
if
punishable with imprisonment for life, or with imprisonment and if the offence
is punishable with imprisonment for life, or with imprisonment which may extend
to ten years, shall be punished with imprisonment of either description for a
term which may extend to three years, and shall also be liable to fine;
and if
the offence is punishable with imprisonment which may extend to one year, and
not to ten years, shall be punished with imprisonment of the description
provided for the offence for a term which may extend to one fourth part of the
longest term of imprisonment provided for the offence, or with fine, or with
both.
"Offence"
in this section includes any act committed at any place out of India, which, if
committed in India, would be punishable under any of the following sections,
namely, 302, 304, 482, 392, 393, 394, 395, 396 397, 398, 399, 402, 435, 436,
449, 450, 457, 458, 459 and 460; and every such act shall, for the purposes of
this section, be deemed to be punishable as if the accused person had been
guilty of it in India.
Exception
-- This provision shall not extend to any case in which the harbour or
concealment is by the husband or wife of the offender.
216.
Harbouring offender who has escaped from custody or whose apprehension has been
ordered.-Whenever any person convicted or charged with an offence, being in
lawful custody for that offence, escapes from such custody, or whenever a
public servant, in the exercise of the lawful powers of such public servant,
orders a certain person to be apprehended for an offence, whoever, knowing of
such escape or order for apprehension, harbours or conceals that person with
the intention of preventing him from being apprehended, shall be punished in
the manner following, that is to say, if a capital offence if the offence for
which the person was in custody or is ordered to be apprehended in punishable
with death, he shall be punished with imprisonment of either description for a
term which may extend to seven years, and shall also be liable to fine;
if
punishable with imprisonment for life, or with imprisonment if the offence is
punishable with imprisonment for life or imprisonment for ten years, he shall
be punished with imprisonment of either description for and if the offence is
punishable with imprisonment which may extend to one year and not to ten years,
he shall be punished with imprisonment of the description provided for the
offence for a term which may extend to one-fourth part of the longest term of
the imprisonment provided for such offence, or with fine, or with both.
"Offence"
in this section includes also any act or omission of which a person is alleged
to have been guilty out of India, which, if he had been guilty of it in India,
would have been punishable as an offence, and for which he is, under any law
relating to extradition, or otherwise liable to be apprehended or detained in
custody in India, and every such act or omission shall, for the purposes of
this sections, be deemed to be punishable as if the accused person had been
guilty of it in India.
Exception
-- The provision does not extend to the case in which the harbour or
concealment is by the husband or wife of the person to be apprehended."
EXPLOSIVE
SUBSTANCES ACT, 1908
"3.
Punishment for causing explosion likely to endanger life or property -- Any
person who unlawfully and maliciously causes by any explosive substance an
explosion of a nature likely to endanger life or to cause serious injury to
property, shall, whether any injury to person or property has been actually
caused or not, be punished with transportation for life or any shorter term, to
which fine may be added, or with imprisonment for a term which may extend to
ten years, to which fine may be added.
4.
Punishment for attempt to cause explosion, or for making or keeping explosive
with intent to endanger life or property -- Any person who unlawfully and
maliciously - (a) does any act with intent to cause by an explosive substance,
or conspires to cause by an explosive substance, an explosion in India of a
nature likely to endanger life or to cause serious injury to property; or (b)
makes or has in his possession or under his control any explosive substance
with intent by means thereof to endanger life, or cause serious injury to
property in India, or to enable any other person by means thereof to endanger
life or cause serious injury to property in India;
shall,
whether any explosion does or does not take place and whether any injury to
person or property has been actually caused or not, be punished with
transportation for a term which may extend to twenty years, to which fine may
be added, or with imprisonment for a term which may extend to seven years, to
which fine may be added.
5.
Punishment for making or possessing explosives under suspicious circumstances
-- Any person who makes or knowingly has in his possession or under his control
any explosive substance, under such circumstances as to give rise to a
reasonable suspicion that he is not making it or does not have it in his
possession or under his control for a lawful object, shall, unless he can show
that he made it or had it in his possession or under his control for a lawful
object, be punishable with transportation for a term which may extend to
fourteen years, to which fine may be added, or with imprisonment for a term
which may extend to five years, to which fine may be added."
ARMS
ACT, 1959
3.
Licence for acquisition and possession of firearms and ammunition.-- [1] No
person shall acquire, have in his possession, or carry any firearm or
ammunition unless he holds in this behalf a licence issued in accordance with
the provisions of this Act and the rules made thereunder :
Provided
that a person may, without himself holding a licence, carry any firearm or
ammunition in the presence, or under the written authority, of the holder of
the licence for repair or for renewal of the licence or for use by such
holder." "25 (1-B) Whoever - (a) acquires, has in his possession or
carries any firearm or ammunition in contravention of Section 3;
xxx
xxx xxx xxx shall be punishable with imprisonment for a term which shall not be
less than one year but which may extend to three years and shall also be liable
to fine.
Provided
that the Court may for any adequate and special reasons to be recorded in the
judgment impose a sentence of imprisonment for a term of less than one
year."
PASSPORTS
ACT, 1967
-------------------
"12. Offences and penalties -- (1) Whoever -- (a) contravenes the
provisions of section 3; or (b) knowingly furnishes any false information or
suppresses any material information with a view to obtaining a passport or
travel document under this Act or without lawful authority alters or attempts to
alter or causes to alter the entries made in a passport or travel document; or
(c) fails to produce for inspection his passport or travel document (whether
issued under this Act or not) when called upon to do so by the prescribed
authority; or (d) knowingly uses a passport or travel document issued to
another person; or (e) knowingly allows another person to use a passport or
travel document issued to him;
Shall
be punishable with imprisonment for a term which may extend to two years or
with fine which may extend to five thousand rupees or with both.
(1A)
Whoever, not being a citizen of India, (a) Makes an application for a passport
or obtains a passport by suppressing information about his nationality, or (b)
Holds a forged passport or any travel document, Shall be punishable with
imprisonment for a term which shall not be less than one year but which may
extend to five years and with fine which shall not be less than ten thousand
rupees but which may extend to fifty thousand rupees.
(2)
Whoever abets any offence punishable under sub-section (1) or sub-section (1A)
shall, if the act abetted is committed in consequence of the abetment, be
punishable with the punishment provided in that sub-section for that offence.
(3)
Whoever contravenes any condition of a passport or travel document or any
provision of this Act or any rule made thereunder for which no punishment is
provided elsewhere in this Act shall be punishable with imprisonment for a term
which may extend to three months or with fine which may extend to five hundred
rupees or with both.
(4)
Whoever, having been convicted of an offence under this Act, is again convicted
of an offence under this Act shall be punishable with double the penalty
provided for the latter offence."
THE
FOREIGNERS ACT, 1946
------------------------
"14. Penalties.-- If any person contravenes the provisions of this Act or
of any order made thereunder, or any direction given in pursuance of this Act
or such order, he shall be punished with imprisonment for a term which may
extend to five years and shall also be liable to fine; and if such person has
entered into a bond in pursuance of Cl.(f) to subsection (2) of Sec. 3, his
bond shall be forfeited, and any person bound thereby shall pay the penalty
thereof, or show cause to the satisfaction of the convicting Court why such
penalty should not be paid." "3(2) In particular and without
prejudice to the generality of the foregoing power, orders made under this
section may provide that the foreigner, (a) to (e) (f) Shall enter into a bond
with or without sureties for the due observance of as in alternative to a
enforcement of any or all prescribed or specified restrictions or conditions.
(g)
and make provision for any matter which is to be or may be prescribed and for
such incidental and supplementary matters as may in the opinion of the Central
Government be expedient or necessary for giving effect to this Act."
INDIAN
WIRELESS TELEGRAPHY ACT, 1933
------------------------------------
"6(1-A) Whoever possesses any wireless transmitter in contravention of the
provisions of Section 3 shall be punished with imprisonment which may extend to
three years, or with fine which may extend to one thousand rupees, or with
both.
3.
Prohibition of possession of wireless telegraphy apparatus without licence -
Save as provided by section 4, no person shall possess wireless telegraphy
apparatus except under and in accordance with a licence issued under this
Act."
INDIAN
EVIDENCE ACT, 1872
-------------------------
"10. Things said or done by conspirator in reference to common design.--
Where there is reasonable ground to believe that two or more persons have
conspired together to commit an offence or an actionable wrong, anything said,
done or written by any one of such persons in reference to their common
intention, after the time when such intention was first entertained by any one
of them, is a relevant fact as against each of the persons believed to be so
conspiring, as well for the purpose of proving the existence of the conspiracy
as for the purpose of showing that any such person was a party to it.
30.
Consideration of proved confession affecting person making it and others
jointly under trial for same offence.-When more persons than one are being
tried jointly for the same offence, and a confession made by one of such
persons affecting himself and some other of such persons is proved, the Court
may take into consideration such confession as against such other person as
well as against the person who makes such confession.
Explanation
-- "Offence" as used in this section, includes the abetment of, or
attempt to commit, the offence." Having set out provisions of law we may
refer to the preliminary submissions of Mr. N. Natarajan, senior advocate, who
appeared for all the accused except Shanmugavadivelu @ Thambi Anna (A-15). He
submitted that he is not challenging the convictions of various accused under
the Foreigners Act, Passport Act, Explosive Substances Act, Indian Wireless and
Telegraphy Act, Arms Act and Sections 212 and 216 IPC. This he said was on
account of the fact that for offences under these Acts accused were awarded
sentence of imprisonment for two years or for a period less than two years
which in any case has to be set off under Section 428 of the Code as they had
been under detention throughout the period during trial. We are thus left to
consider offences under Section 120-B IPC, 302/34 IPC, 326/34 IPC 324/34 IPC
and under Sections 3,4 and 5 of TADA.
Opening
his arguments Mr. Natarajan submitted that the first charge gives the over all
view of the case of the prosecution. In brief he said there were five facets of
conspiracy alleged by the prosecution against the accused, namely, (1)
clandestine infiltration into India, (2) hiring of safe accommodation for the
conspirators, (3) unauthorized wireless operation by them, (4) assassination of
Rajiv Gandhi and others on 21.5.1991, and (5) harbouring of offenders in order
to escape from India and disappearance of evidence. The prosecution evidence
propounds a criminal conspiracy. Mr. Natarajan was right in his submissions
when he said it would be futile to contend that there was no conspiracy. The
questions that arise for consideration are as to what is the object of that
conspiracy, who were members of the conspiracy, whether any offence under TADA
is made out and whether it was a case of conspiracy to murder and causing
grievous and simple hurt by use of bombs.
Assuming
that whatever prosecution evidence has led to be admissible and reliable there
is no conspiracy to commit any offence under TADA and the conspiracy is only to
commit the murder of Rajiv Gandhi. On the question of motive of the crime, we
find, there is no dispute. For past couple of years there has been unrest in
the north part of Sri
Lanka, a neighbouring
country which area is inhabited mostly by Tamils. These Tamils or Tamilians
complained of atrocities committed by the majority community of Sinhalis
inhabiting in south of Sri
Lanka. To protect the
rights of the Tamils various organizations came up in Sri Lanka, foremost being the Liberation
Tigers of Tamil Elam (LTTE). This Organization claimed to be the only
representative body of the Tamils. For the independence of Tamil area in Sri Lanka arm struggle started between LTTE
and Sri Lankan army. On this account there was turmoil in Sri Lanka resulting in the influx of Tamil
refugees to India from Sri Lanka and by 1987 the problem, it appeared, was getting out of
hands. During the arm struggle LTTE was having a free field in India. To support its struggle against
Sri Lankan army cadre of LTTE had been operating from Indian soil for the
purpose of arms training, treatment of injured LTTE people, supply of medicines
and other provisions, collection of funds, printing and publishing of
propaganda material, buying of provisions like petrol, diesel, wireless
equipments, explosives and even cloths.
An
Indo-Sri Lankan Agreement to establish peace and normalcy in Sri Lanka was entered into on 29.7.1987. It
was signed by Rajiv Gandhi, Prime Minister of the Republic of India and J.R. Jayewardene, President of the Democratic Socialist
Republic of Sri Lanka. After the agreement was signed Prime Minister Rajiv
Gandhi made a statement in the Rajya Sabha on the Agreement which he said aimed
"at bringing to an end the difficult conflict which has afflicted our
friendly neighbour Sri Lanka for years" and that the conflict assumed
acute dimensions over the last four years endangering the very stability, unity
and integrity of Sri Lanka. The agreement among other things envisaged lifting
of emergency in the eastern and northern provinces of Sri Lanka by 15.8.1987, holding of elections,
constitution of interim council, etc. Cessation of hostilities was to come into
effect all over the island within 48 hours of the signing of the Agreement and
all arms presently held by Tamil militant groups were to be surrendered, in
accordance with an agreed procedure, to authorities to be designated by the
Government of Sri Lanka.
Sri
Lanka will grant a
general amnesty to political and other prisoners now held in custody under the
Prevention of Terrorism Act and other Emergency laws. Para 2.16 of the Agreement provided as under:
2.16
These proposals are also conditional to the Government of India taking the
following actions if any militant groups operating in Sri Lanka do not accept
this framework of proposals for a settlement, namely, (a) India will take all
necessary steps to ensure that Indian territory is not used for activities
prejudicial to the unity, integrity and security of Sri Lanka.
(b)
The Indian Navy/Coast Guard will co-operate with the Sri Lanka Navy in
preventing Tamil militant activities from affecting Sri Lanka.
(c) In
the event that the Government of Sri Lanka requests the Government of India to
afford military assistance to implement these proposals, the Government of
India will co-operate by giving to the Government of Sri Lanka (d) The
Government of India will expedite repatriation from Sri Lanka of Indian
citizens to India who are resident there, concurrently with the repatriation of
Sri Lankan refugees from Tamil Nadu.
(e)
The Government of India and Sri Lanka will co-operate in ensuing the physical security and safety
of all communities inhabiting the Northern and Eastern Provinces.
The
Indo-Sri Lankan Accord had thus the following features :
(1) It
contains a package for the devolution of political power recognising the
Northern and Eastern province of Sri Lanka as the traditional homeland of the Tamils.
(2) It
gives to India a "Guarantor" role in the
implementation of the devolution package and the other provisions within the
frame work of "United Sri Lanka".
(3) It
takes account of India's security concerns in the area.
In
pursuance to the Agreement Indian forces called the Indian Peace Keeping Force
(IPKF) went to Sri
Lanka on 29.7.1987.
After the initial somewhat reluctance to acceptance LTTE got disallusioned with
the accord which is reflected from the following factors :-
1. The
Accord ruled out separate Tamil Elam in Sri Lanka and so went against the objectives of LTTE to form an independent Tamil
Elam.
2.
LTTE looked towards India with certain expectations under the
Accord, which, according to it, were not fulfilled. It was the way the Tamil
refugees of Sri Lanka were rehabilitated by Sri Lankan
Government which was not to the satisfaction of LTTE.
3. In
the interim council to be formed under the Accord LTTE was given less seats
though it claimed to be the sole representative body of Sri Lankan Tamils.
4. On
15.9.1987 one Dileepan of LTTE went on hunger strike in Sri Lanka. He took fast against the atrocities
committed by IPKF and for Government of India not acting properly. He died
fasting on 26.9.1987.
5. 17
important functionaries of LTTE were captured by Sri Lankan Navy in the first
week of October, 1987. They were being taken to Colombo for interrogation. LTTE approached Government of India for
their release. Government of India did not
vigorously pursue the matter and while it was negotiating with the Sri Lankan
Government to secure their release, 12 of them committed suicide by consuming
cyanide.
6. In
the night of 3/4.10.1987 when IPKF convoy was carrying ration it was attacked
by LTTE and 11 Indian soldiers were killed. It was the flash point of breach
between IPKF and LTTE and active confrontation between the two started.
Prabhakaran, supreme leader of LTTE, went underground.
7. The
agreement or the accord, as it is normally called ultimately, did not find
favour with LTTE and in spite of the agreement activities of LTTE on the Indian
soil continued growing substantially.
LTTE
became opposed to the Accord and also against the IPKF. Prabhakaran at one
stage even said that it was stabbed in the back by agreeing to the accord and
had been betrayed. There was more influx of refugees to India. Now LTTE complained of atrocities
committed by IPKF on the Tamils in Sri Lanka and accused IPKF of torture, rape, murder, etc. As to what led India to enter into the Accord with Sri
Lankan Government and the background of the ethnic trouble in Sri Lanka and also reservations expressed on
the Accord, there is the statement of R.M. Abhyankar (PW-173), Joint Secretary
in the Ministry of External Affairs, Government of India. Two volumes of the
book "Satanic Force" (MO-124 and MO-125) were published in India at the behest of LTTE which
contained compilation of speeches of Prabhakaran and other articles and
photographs showing the atrocities committed by IPKF on Tamils in Sri Lanka after the Accord and the animosity
which Prabhakaran developed towards Rajiv Gandhi. The book was compiled by N.
Vasantha Kumar (PW-75). He is an artist by profession. The printing and
publishing of the book was authorised and financed by LTTE. It was published in
January, 1991 and contains information up to March, 1990. In his statement
Brig.
Vivek
Sapatnekar (PW-186), who was earlier in-charge of IPKF operations in Sri Lanka,
also stated that the Accord was not having the support of LTTE. MO-125 (Volume
2 of "Satanic Force") contained the news item published in the Indian
Express of April, 1990 which quotes the speech by Prabhakaran saying that he
was against the former leadership in India and that LTTE was not against India
or Indian people. These two volumes of "Satanic Force" contain over
1700 pages. No article or writing has been pointed out from the "Satanic
Force" from which it could be inferred that it was ever in the
contemplation of Prabhakaran or any other functionary of LTTE questioning the
sovereignty and territorial integrity of India rather they identified Rajiv
Gandhi with the Accord and the atrocities committed by IPKF.
In the
editorial in the official Journal of LTTE 'Voice of Tigers' dated 19.1.1990 the
following comment appears:
"In
the meantime, the defeat of Rajiv's Congress Party and the assumption to power
of the National Front alliance under Viswanath Pratap Singh has given rise to a
sense of relief and hope to the people of Tamil Elam. The LTTE has already
indicated to the new Indian Government its desire to improve and consolidate
friendly ties with India.
The
new Indian leadership responded positively accrediting to Mr. Karunanidhi, the
Tamil Nadu Chief Minister, the role and responsibility of mediating with the
Tamil Tigers. The LTTE representatives who had four rounds of talks with the
Tamil Nadu Chief Minister in Madras, are firmly convinced that the Tamil Nadu
Government and the new Indian administration are favourably disposed to them
and the V.P. Singh's government will act in the interests of the Tamil speaking
people by creating appropriate conditions for the LTTE to come to political
power in the Northeastern Province." It may be noted that in general
elections in India Congress was defeated and new Government under V.P. Singh as
Prime Minister had taken over. Withdrawal of IPKF from Sri Lanka was completed
on 24.3.1990. In March, 1991 general elections in India were again announced.
First phase of elections was over on 20.5.1991 and next phase was to be held on
23.5.1991. This second phase was postponed for 15 days on account of
assassination of Rajiv Gandhi on 21.5.1991.
Aveek
Sarkar (PW-255) had an interview with Rajiv Gandhi which was published in the
Sunday magazine issue of August 12-19, 1990. The interview is dated July 30/31,
1990. In the interview Rajiv Gandhi supported the Accord and criticized V.P.
Singh in withdrawing the IPKF. He said there was no rationale behind the
withdrawal and as things till then had not stabilized and Accord had not been
fully implemented. In the Congress manifesto which was released in 1991 for Lok
Sabha elections Congress supported the Accord. This manifesto was brought on record
in the statement of K. Ramamurthi (PW-258), who was the President of Tamil Nadu
Congress Committee at the relevant time.
Rajiv
Gandhi in August, 1990 predicted general elections in the country in early
1991. In the writings and articles in the two volumes of "Satanic
Force" there were scathing attacks on Shri Rajiv Gandhi, who was projected
as the perpetrator of the sufferings of Tamils in Sri Lanka by sending IPKF.
Prabhakaran when he came out of his hiding after about two and a half years he
made statement in April, 1990 that he was against the former leadership,
namely, Rajiv Gandhi. Though the Congress lead by Rajiv Gandhi was out of power
in 1990 there was clear indication of mid-term poll and perceptible upswing in
the popularity of Rajiv Gandhi. LTTE apprehended the reversal of the Government
of India's policy of non-interference towards Sri Lanka and with the
possibility of return of Rajiv Gandhi as Prime Minister. Rajiv Gandhi stood for
territorial integrity of Sri Lanka and for role of various Tamil organizations
in Sri Lanka for any Tamil solution. LTTE on the other hand claimed to be the
sole representative body of Tamils there.
It was
on this account, submitted Mr. Natarajan, that there was conspiracy to
eliminate Rajiv Gandhi in order to prevent him from coming back to power. He
said LTTE perceived the accord as object to stop creation of separate Tamil
Elam which went against the basic objective of LTTE.
The
creation of separate Tamil Elam was thwarted by the induction of IPKF and in
the fight with IPKF more Tamil Sri Lankan died than they died fighting Sri
Lankan army. IPKF committed atrocities on Tamils in Sri Lanka. LTTE thus turned
against the Government of India and the former leadership as it identified
Rajiv Gandhi and his Government as bringing the struggle of Sri Lankan Tamils
to square one.
Rajiv
Gandhi and the Congress manifesto supported the Accord even after IPKF had been
withdrawn from Sri Lanka. Mr. Natarajan said that motive was not to overawe the
Government of India or to create terror as was being alleged by the
prosecution. Animosity of LTTE was only against Rajiv Gandhi who was identified
with the Accord. Prabhakaran, the supreme leader of LTTE, had clearly stated
more than once that he was not against the Indian Government and the Indian
people.
According
to prosecution conspiracy was activated with the publication of an interview of
Rajiv Gandhi in Sunday magazine and now the conspiracy was put into operation.
First group of conspirators to achieve the object of conspiracy arrived in
India on September 12, 1990.
This
group consisted of Vijayan (A-12), Selvaluxmi (A-13) and Bhaskaran (A-14).
Bhaskaran (A-14) is father of Selvaluxmi (A-13). They arrived at Rameshwaram in
India like other refugees from Sri Lanka and got themselves registered. At
Jaffna in Sri Lanka they were seen off by deceased accused Sivarasan without
paying any toll to LTTE.
It is
in evidence that anyone leaving Sri Lanka from the area in the control of LTTE
had to pay two sovereigns of gold and Rs.1500/-. The reason for not paying the
toll was that they had left for India to take a house on rent for the work of
LTTE. From Rameshwaram they were sent to the refugee camp at Tuticorin.
Sivarasan visited them there on two occasions - once in December, 1990 and on second
time in the first week of April, 1991. Sivarasan during his visit in December,
1990 told Vijayan (A12) that he was to take a house on rent in Madras at the
time when he would be so told. In April, 1991 Sivarasan gave instructions to
Vijayan (A-12) to go to Madras and to take a house on rent with the help of
Vijayan's cousin Munusamy. At that time Sivarasan also told Vijayan (A-12) that
he would be meeting him on 10.4.1991 at the house of Munusamy. Vijayan (A-12)
was given Rs.1000/towards expenses for the purpose by Sivarasan.
Sivarasan
did meet Vijayan (A-12) at Munusamy's house as promised. Sivarasan wanted that
the house which was to be taken on rent should be in a secluded place as
"he thought that the movements of LTTE men are not known to the neighbours".
House of J. Duraisamy Naidu (PW-82) at No.
12,
Eveready Colony, Kodungaiyur, Madras (Kodungaiyur house) was thus taken on rent
by Vijayan (A-12). He, thereafter brought his family (Selvaluxmi (A-13) and
Bhaskaran (A-14)) from the refugee camp at Tuticorin and started living in this
Kodungaiyur house from 20.4.1991.
Second
group comprising Robert Payas (A-9), his wife Prema, his sister Premlatha,
Jayakumar (A-10) and his wife Shanthi (A-11) case to India from Sri Lanka on
20.9.1990 as refugees and reported at Rameshwaram. Shanthi (A-11) is an Indian
Tamil while Robert Payas (A-9) and Jayakumar (A-10) are Sri Lankan Tamils. This
group was similarly exempted from paying toll to LTTE and was sent for taking a
house on rent for the work of LTTE. They registered themselves at the refugee
camp there. They left for Madras of their own and on reaching there stayed with
the relatives of Shanthi (A-11). From 1.10.1990 house of G.J. Srinivasan
(PW-252) bearing number 26, Sabari Nagar Extn., Porur, Madras (Porur house) was
taken on rent in the name of Jayakumar (A-10).
It was
taken through an M. Utham Singh (PW-56), a property agent and proprietor of
Ebenezer Stores. Sivarasan (deceased accused) and Kanthan (not named accused)
used to visit them in their Porur house. Telephone No. 2343402 installed at
Abenezer Stores, Porur was used by Sivarasan, Robert Payas (A-9) and others to
contact one another. A wireless set was installed in the Porur house, which was
numbered as Station No. 95. Till December, 1990 families of Robert Payas (A-9),
Jayakumar (A-10) and Shanthi (A-11) stayed together in this house. Sivarasan
then wanted Robert Payas (A-9) to take another independent house at secluded
place for him (Sivarasan) to stay. This third house was taken on rent in the name
of Ramasamy, fatherin-law of Jayakumar (A-10) (father of Shanthi (A-11)). The
house was owned by K. Kottammal (PW-63) and was at No. 153, Muthamil Nagar,
Kodungaiyur, Madras (Muthamil house). On 18.12.1990 Jayakumar (A-10), Shanthi
(A-11) and their child moved to this house and Sivarasan also started staying
with them.
Third
Group comprising Ravi (A-16) and Suseendran (A-17) alongwith Sivarasan arrived
in India from Sri Lanka in the end of December, 1990. Both Ravi (A16) and
Suseendran (A-17) are Indian Tamils. This group was seen off at Sri Lanka by
Pottu Amman. They were instructed by Pottu Amman to follow the instructions of
Sivarasan. Both Ravi (A-16) and Suseendran (A-17) had gone to Jaffna and took
training in LTTE camp in arms and in their indoctrination regarding atrocities
committed by IPKF on Tamils in Sri Lanka and to enlist more people in Tamil
Nadu in India for the movement of LTTE and for creation of Tamil State separate
from India.
Fourth
group comprising Arivu (A-18) and Irumborai (A-19) came to India in October,
1990. They had gone to Sri Lanka in May, 1990 with Baby Subramaniam where they
had met Prabhakaran.
In the
fifth group there is only one person - Murugan (A-3), who arrived in India
clandestinely in the third week of January, 1991 with the directions from Pottu
Amman. He reached Kodiakkarai on the Indian coast where Sivarasan was waiting
to receive him. They thereafter went to the house of one Mahalingam, a Sri
Lankan Tamil, residing in Kodiakkarai. Then they came to Madras and went to the
Porur house where now Robert Payas (A-9) was staying with his family. Murugan
(A-3) stayed there for a few days.
Muthiraja,
an LTTE activist took Murugan (A-3) to the house of Padma (A-21), who was
staying there with her son Bhagyanathan (A-20). This house is situated at No.
22, Muthiah Garden Street, Royapettah, Madras (Royapettah house).
Sixth
group comprising Kanagasabapathy (A-7) and Athirai (A-8) came to India on
23.4.1991 and was seen off by Pottu Amman with certain specific instructions in
an LTTE boat with escort. They reached Kodiakkarai on the coast of India and
were received by Chokan, an LTTE helper, who took them to the house of V.
Kantha Raja (PW-60). After staying there for two days Kanagasabapathy (A-7) and
Athirai (A-8) left for Madras and stayed in the house of Jayakumari (PW-109),
niece of Kanagasabapathy (A-7). Sivarasan met them there on 2.5.1991 as per the
prior arrangement fixed by Pottu Amman.
Seventh
and the last group consisting of nine persons under the leadership of Sivarasan
arrived at Kodiakkarai on 1.5.1991 in an LTTE boat. This group was seen off by
Pottu Amman on 27.4.1991. The boat in which they were travelling developed a
snag and had to return.
They
left shore of Sri Lanka on 30.4.1991 when again Pottu Amman was there to see
them off. Nine persons were Sivarasan, Santhan (A-2), Shankar (A-4),
Vijayanandan (A-5), Ruban (A-6), Subha, Dhanu, Nero and Keerthi. Last four and
Sivarasan are deceased accused. On 2.5.1991 Sivarasan took Subha and Dhanu to
the house (Muthamil house) of Jayakumar (A-10) and Nero to the house
(Kodungaiyur house) of Vijayan (A-12). On 6.5.1991 Sivarasan took Subha and
Dhanu also to the Kodungaiyur house. A wireless set, which belonged to
Sivarasan, was installed by Nero in the Kodungaiyur house which is Station No.
910 and started communicating with LTTE Headquarters in Sri Lanka. On 3.5.1991
Santhan (A-2) and Ruban (A-6) went to Porur house of Robert Payas (A-9) at
Madras. Shankar (A-4) stayed at Kodiakkarai till 15.5.1991.
Then
he came to Madras and stayed at Eswari Lodge up till 23.5.1991. Vijayanandan
(A-5) went to Trichy where he stayed till 7.5.1991 and then came to Madras and
stayed at Komala Vilas Lodge, Madras. Arivu (A-18) also came to Madras on
9.5.1991 and took Vijayanandan (A-5) to meet N.
Vasantha
Kumar (PW-75) on the instructions of Sivarasan.
Keerthi
@ Driver anna, who was also in the nine members group, who had come to India on
1.5.1991, was later found dead along with Sivarasan, Subha and others in the
house at Konanakunte, Bangalore on 20.8.1991. There is nothing on record as to
where Keerthi stayed from the time of his arrival in India till he was found
dead.
When
Murugan (A-3) met Shankar (A-4) at Kodiakkarai on 14.5.1991 he gave him a slip
of paper (Exh.P-1062) containing the names Nalini (A-1)-Thas (also pronounced
as Das by which name Murugan (A-3) was as well known) and telephone number
419493, which was the phone number of the office of Nalini (A-1). Before
Santhan (A-2) arrived in India in the nine members group on 1.5.1991 at Kodiakkarai
Shanmugavadivelu (A-15) (also described as Thambi Anna) had made arrangements
with P. Veerappan (PW-102), a travel agent and C. Vamadevan (PW114), a Sri
Lankan travel agent, for getting an Indian passport and travel documents for
him (Santhan (A-2)) in the last week of April, 1991 for Santhan (A-2) to go
abroad.
Sivarasan
has been travelling between India and Sri Lanka though clandestinely during the
period February, 1990 to May, 1991. Evidence shows his presence in these two
countries as follows :
1.
15.2.1990 arrives India along with Santhan(A-2).
2.
21.6.1990 went to Sri Lanka
3.
Last week Sivarasan, Ravi (A-16) and Sussendran of Dec., (A-17) arrive in
India.
1990
4. Feb.,1991 Went to Sri Lanka.
5.
24.4.1991 He was at Madras in the house of Vijayan (A-12).
6.
27.4.1991 He was at Jaffna in Sri Lanka
7.
1.5.1991 Reached Kodiakkarai Up till now we have referred to that part of the
evidence as to how different groups arrived in India to achieve the object of
conspiracy. They are all LTTE activists or its ardent supporters and were to
act under the instructions of Sivarasan. It is not disputed, however, that
existence of LTTE was already in India.
The
first step was to hire places for shelter of the conspirators and this was
achieved by hiring houses - one at Porur and two at Kodungaiyur. Fourth house
is that of Padma (A-21). Nalini (A-1) was living with her mother. Since
October, 1990 she started living separately in a house at No. 11, High Court
Colony, Villivakkam, Madras. On 7.3.1991 Rangam (A-24) took on rent a house at
No. 3, Park Avenue, Alwarthirunagar, Madras, purportedly for the stay of LTTE
men. The house belonged to Nageswara Rao (PW-178). On 21.3.1991 a house at
Indira Nagar, Bangalore was taken on rent in the name of Sivapackiam, wife of
K. Jagannathan (PW-211) at the instance of Dhanasekaran (A-23) for the alleged
purpose of serving it as a hide out for the conspirators.
Of the
remaining accused facing trial, Suba Sundaram (A-22) owned studio and had
trained deceased accused Haribabu in photography. Haribabu was assigned the
role of taking photographs of the scene of crime. Dhanasekaran (A-23), Rangam
(A-24) and Vicky (A-25) transported the deceased accused Sivarasan, Subha,
etc., who were proclaimed offenders from Madras to Bangalore in a tanker owned
by Dhanasekaran (A23). Ranganath (A-26) harboured proclaimed offenders
Sivarasan, Subha and others.
According
to prosecution steps to achieve the object of conspiracy had already started
even prior to arrival in India on 1.5.1991 of the assassins Dhanu and Subha
accompanied by Sivarasan and six others. Houses for the use of LTTE persons had
already been hired. In March, 1991 Arivu (A-18), Bhagyanathan (A-20) and
deceased accused Haribabu removed certain incriminating material of LTTE from the
house of M. Sankari (PW-210) and kept them in the house of V. Radhakrishnan
(PW-231). Baby Subramaniam, an LTTE activist was staying in the house of M.
Sankari (PW-210).
Arivu
(A-18) purchased a Kawasaki Bajaj motor cycle (MO-82) on 4.5. 1991. Vijayan (A-12)
purchased two bicycles for use of Subha and Dhanu. A Maruti Gypsy (MO-540) had
already been purchased by Dhanasekaran (A-23) in November, 1990 in the name of
Mohan. This Maruti Gypsy was driven by Rangam (A-24) and was used by deceased
accused Sivarasan, Subha, Nero, Suresh Master and Keerthi for their movements
in Bangalore after the crime. On 3.5.1991 Arivu (A-18) purchased a 12 volt
Exide car battery (MO-209) for use in the house of Vijayan (A-12) to operate
the wireless set installed there (Station 910). During the second week of May,
1991 Arivu (A-18) purchased two 9 volt Golden Power batteries and gave them to
Sivarasan. These golden power batteries are alleged to have been ultimately
used to detonate the belt bomb on 21.5.1991 killing Rajiv Gandhi and others.
Various conspirators had been meeting each other under the charge of Sivarasan
for communicating amongst themselves. While at Madras they used telephone
numbers of Ebenezer Stores (2343402), Nalini (A-1) (419493) and of
Shanmugavadivelu (A-15) (864249). An OYT telephone connection was applied for
on 8.4.1991 in the name of Shanthi (A-11) for the shop premises hired in her
name for coffee powder machine. On 11.5.1991 Nalini (A-1) took Subha and Dhanu
to the shop of M. Gunankhalal Soni (PW-179), gave him the measurement of Subha
for stitching a loose salwar kameez from the material bought from the shop
itself. This salwar kameez was used by Dhanu for concealing the improvised
explosive device. On 18.4.1991 Nalini (A-1), Murugan (A-3), Arivu (A-18) and
Suba Sundaram (A-22) and deceased accused Haribabu attended the meeting of
Rajiv Gandhi and Jayalalitha at Marina Beach, Madras. On the night between May
7-8, 1991 Nalini (A-1), Murugan (A3), Arivu (A-18) and deceased accused
Sivarasan, Subha, Dhanu and Haribabu attended the meeting of Prime Minister
V.P. Singh at Nandanam, Madras, where they conducted a 'dry run' by securing
access to V.P. Singh for garlanding him. On May 16/17, 1991 Vijayan (A-12),
Sivarasan and Nero dug a pit in the kitchen room of the house of Vijayan (A-12)
for the purpose of concealing wireless set and gun. On 17.5.1991 Ruban (A-6)
along with Vijayendran (PW-111) was sent to Jaipur for the purported purpose of
fixing an artificial limb on the leg of Ruban (A-6) but in fact for hiring safe
accomodation. Similar role has been assigned to Robert Payas (A-9) and Athirai
(A-8) for hiring a place at Delhi for LTTE activists. All the payments for
hiring accommodation, buying vehicles and expenses of Ruban (A-6) and going to
Jaipur, etc. were borne by Sivarasan. On 19.5.1991 tour programme of Rajiv
Gandhi to Tamil Nadu for May 21 and 22, 1991 was published in local newspapers.
When Nalini (A-1), Subha and Dhanu after visiting Mahabalipuram came to the
house of Nalini (A-1) at Villivakkam they found Sivarasan waiting for them. He
showed the clipping of the Tamil newspaper in which the visit to Tamil Nadu for
election campaign of Rajiv Gandhi was published. Sivarasan told Nalini (A-1) to
take two days leave. On 19.5.1991 itself Sivarasan went to the house of N.
Vasantha Kumar (PW-75) where Vijayanandan (A-5) was staying and shifted him to
the house of one Vanan. On 20.5.1991 Kanagasabapathy (A-7) along with Vanan
went to Delhi by flight to fix a house there. One house in Delhi was secured at
Moti Bagh belonging to K. Thiagarajan (PW-57). On 20.5.1991 Sivarasan visited
the house of Bhagyanathan (A-20) where Bhagyanathan (A-20), Murugan (A-3),
Arivu (A-18) and deceased accused Haribabu were present. A message had already
been left at the house of Haribabu when he was not there by Murugan (A-3) to go
to the house of Bhagyanathan (A-20). Nalini (A-1) also joined the group.
Sivarasan told Nalini (A-1) to apply for half day casual leave on 21.5.1991 as
venue of the public meeting, which Rajiv Gandhi was to address, was at
Sriperumbudur. Arivu (A-18) gave a Kodak colour film roll to Haribabu. This
Kodak colour film was to be used by Haribabu to take pictures of the scene of
crime.
On
21.5.1991 Haribabu purchased a sandalwood garland from Poompuhar Emporium. He
then went to the studio of K. Ravi Shankar (PW-151) and borrowed his camera
(MO-1). In the afternoon he went to the studio of Suba Sundaram (A-22) when he
was having garland packet in his hands. On 21.5.1991 Nalini (A-1) got
permission from her office to leave early and told her colleague N. Sujaya
Narayan (PW96) that she was going to Kancheepuram for buying sarees. She went
to her mother's house at Royapettah where Murugan (A-3) was present. He
directed her to rush to her Villivakkam house where Sivarasan would be waiting
for her or else he would be angry. From there Nalini (A-1) immediately went to
her house at Villivakkam. It was about 3.00 p.m.
On
that very day Sivarasan dressed in white kurta-pyjama left the house of
Jayakumar (A-10). Santhan (A-2) was also present there at that time. Sivarasan
was armed with a pistol. Sivarasan then went to the house of Vijayan (A-12) and
talked to Subha and Dhanu. Both Subha and Dhanu went inside the room and after
about 30 to 40 minutes came out. Dhanu was wearing the orange colour salwar
kameez. Sivarasan, Subha and Dhanu went to the ouse of Nalini (A-1) at
Villivakkam in an auto-rikshaw.
Sivarasan
had asked Vijayan (A-12) to hire the auto-rikshaw and had told him to stop at a
distance from his house.
Subha
told Nalini (A-1) that Dhanu was going to create history by assassinating Rajiv
Gandhi and they would be happy if she participated in that. Nalini (A-1)
agreed.
Nalini
(A-1) also saw that some apparatus were concealed underneath the dress of
Dhanu. All four of them, namely, Sivarasan, Subha, Dhanu and Nalini (A-1) went
in the auto-rikshaw to a nearby temple where Dhanu offered prayers.
They
then went to Parrys Corner where Haribabu was waiting for them with camera and
sandalwood garland. All five then now left for Sriperumbudur by bus and reached
there at about 7.30 p.m. Near Indira Gandhi Statue Sivarasan directed Nalini
(A-1) to give cover to Subha and Dhanu at the place of meeting before the
occurrence and after the occurrence had taken place to take care of Subha and
to wait for him near the statue of Indira Gandhi for about ten minutes and if
he failed to turn up they could proceed as already planned. They then proceeded
towards the place of meeting.
Sivarasan
and Haribabu went towards the stage. Nalini (A-1), Subha and Dhanu sat in the
women enclosure.
Sivarasan
then came to the women enclosure, got the garland parcel from Subha and took
with him Dhanu towards the stage.
Nalini
(A-1) saw Dhanu standing in between a young girl (Kokila) and a lady (Lata Kannan)
near the red carpet. It was about 9.30 p.m. Thereafter Rajiv Gandhi arrived.
Nalini
(A-1) and Subha got up from the women enclosure and moved away. There was a
loud explosion. Nalini (A-1) and Subha ran across to Indira Gandhi statue and
waited for Sivarasan. Sivarasan came there and told them that Rajiv Gandhi and
Haribabu died in the blast and that it was unfortunate that Haribabu died.
Dhanu of course exploded herself. All this has come in the confession of Nalini
(A-1) admissibility of which has been challenged by Mr. Natarajan.
After
the occurrence prosecution led evidence of harbouring, escaping and removal and
destruction of incriminating evidence.
Dhanu
is already dead in the blast. She was a human bomb. Principal perpetrators of
the crime and others met their end during the course of investigation. They are
all dead. They committed suicide. They are Sivarasan, Subha, Haribabu, Nero,
Shanmugam, Trichy Santhan, Suresh Master, Dixon, Amman, Driver Anna @ Keerthy
and Jamuna @ Jameela, all Sri Lankan nationals.
First
Information Report of the crime was lodged at 1.15 a.m. on 22.5.1991 under
Section 302, 307, 326 IPC and Section 3 to 5 of Indian Explosives Act. Camara
(MO-1) was found lying on the dead body of Haribabu without any damage.
Ten
photographs taken by Haribabu before he died at the scene of crime showed the
presence of the accused Sivarasan, Dhanu, Subha and Nalini (A-1). One
photograph also showed the event of the explosion itself. (Exh. P-735 is the
exposed part of the film and MO-542 is the unexposed part of the film). During
the course of investigation accused were arrested on various dates and
confessions of all the accused except Shankar (A-4), Vijayanandan (A-5), Ruban
(A-6), Kanagasabapathy (A-7), Shanthi (A-11), Selvaluxmi (A-13), Bhaskaran
(A-14), Suba Sundaram (A-22) and Ranganath (A-26) were recorded. Their dates of
arrest, confession and nationality are as under :- Name Nationality Date of
Date of attest confession
----------------------------------------------------------- Nalini (A-1) Indian
14.6.91 9.8.91 Santhan(A-2) Srilankan 22.7.91 17.9.91 Murugan (A-3) Srilankan
14.6.91 8.8.91 Shankar (A-4) Srilankan 19.5.92 No. confession Vijayanandan
(A-5) Srilankan 16.5.92 No. confession Ruban (A-6) Srilankan 16.5.92 No.
confession Kanagasabapathy(A-7) Srilankan 4.7.91 No. confession Athirai (A-8)
Srilankan 5.7.91 29.8.91 Robert Payas (A-9) Srilankan 18.6.91 15.8.91 Jayakumar
(A-10) Srilankan 26.6.91 22.8.91 Shanthi (A-11) Indian 16.5.92 No confession
Vijayan (A-12) Srilankan 8.7.91 4.9.91 Selvaluxmi (A-13) Indian 16.5.92 No
confession Bhaskaran (A-14) Indian 8.7.91 No confession Shanmugavadivelu(A-15)
Srilankan 16.5.92 17.5.92 Ravi (A-16) Indian 6.1.92 14.2.92 Suseendran (A-17)
Indian 6.1.92 14.2.92 Arivu (A-18) Indian 19.6.91 15.8.91 Irumborai (A-19)
Indian 9.10.91 3.12.91 Bhagyanathan (A-20) Indian 11.6.91 5.8.91 Padma (A-21)
Indian 11.6.91 7.8.91 Suba Sundaram (A-22) Indian 2.7.91 No confession
Dhanasekaran (A-23) Indian 13.10.91 4.11.91 Rangam (A-24) Srilankan 28.8.91
23.10.91 Vicky (A-25) Srilankan 4.2.92 24.2.92 Ranganath (A-26) Indian 28.8.91
No confession ----------------------------------------------------------- The
immediate fall out of the assassination of Rajiv Gandhi was that general
elections in India got postponed. A notification was issued by Election
Commission of India on 22.5.1991 stating that earlier notification dated
19.4.1991 had been issued under Section 30 of the Representation of People Act,
1951 fixing 20.5.1991, 23.5.1991 and 26.5.1991 as the dates on which poll shall
be taken in the parliamentary constituencies in India and that "the
country has suffered a great tragedy in the death of Shri Rajiv Gandhi at the
assassins' hands". The Election Commission directed that election to the
constituencies fixed for 22.5.1991 shall be held on 12.6.1991 and that fixed
for 26.5.1991 shall be held on 15.6.1991.
During
the course of investigation prosecution, as stated above, arrested the accused
on various dates, recorded their confessions, recorded the statements of
witnesses, collected documents and other material and submitted challan under
Section 173 of the Code for offences punishable under Sections 120-B IPC read
with 302, 326, 324, 201 and 212 IPC; Sections 3, 4 and 5 of Explosive
Substances Act; Sections 25 and 27 of Arms Act; Section 12 of Passports Act; Section 14
of Foreigners Act; Section 6(1A) of Wireless Telegraphy Act and Sections 3(3),
4(2), 4(3) TADA, 1987.
Specific
offences committed by each of the accused in pursuance to the criminal
conspiracy were also stated.
Mr.
Natarajan took us through the evidence. He understood the futility of the
arguments, and in our opinion rightly, to challenge the very existence of a
conspiracy.
From
the evidence led by the prosecution he did not dispute that reasonable grounds
existed to believe that there was a conspiracy to commit an offence. According
to him the object of conspiracy was to assassinate Rajiv Gandhi and not to
commit any terrorist act or disruptive activity falling under Sections 3 and 4
of TADA as contended by the prosecution. Having accepted the existence of
conspiracy he said it was only to be seen as to what was the object of the
conspiracy and who were the members of the conspiracy.
Confessions
of the accused have been recorded under Section 15 of TADA. Rule 15 of the TADA
Rules framed under Section 28 of TADA prescribes the conditions for recording
of confession made to police officer. He said confessions were not voluntary
and have been retracted by the accused. Under Section 20 of TADA certain
modified provisions of the Code are applicable. Except for Shanmugavadivelu
(A-15), who was taken into custody on 16.5.1992 and his confession was recorded
on the following day, in the case of other accused confessions have been
recorded only a day or so when the police remand was to expire which was for 60
days. No sufficient time was granted to the accused to reflect if they wanted
to make confession. In the case of Nalini (A-1) and Arivu (A-18) mandatory
safeguards have been violated.
Confession
of one accused could not be used for corroboration of the confession of another
accused.
Mr.
Natrajan said that confessions of the accused could not be taken into
consideration. His arguments were:
(1)
all these confessions have been retracted by the accused having being taken
under coercion and under Police influence;
(2)
sufficient time was not given to accused before recording of the confession.
They were given only few hours to reflect if they wanted to make any
confession;
(3)
under the provisions of the Code as amended by TADA, the Police took full
remand of the accused for 60 days and when a day or so before the remand was to
expire the accused were made to give their confessions. There is, thus, every
possibility of the confessions being extracted. It cannot also be ruled out
that the confessions were obtained by causing physical harm to the accused and
playing upon their psychology;
(4)
confessions of Nalini (A-1) and Arivu (A-18) are otherwise inadmissible as
mandatory provisions contained in Section 15 of TADA and Rule 15(3) of TADA
Rules have been violated;
(5)
all the accused were kept together in a building called Malagai situated at
Green Pass Road, Madras which were the headquarters of CBI. Firstly, remand was
taken for one month but no confession came to be recorded. Further remand of
one month was taken. During this period, Ponamalai sub-jail was denotified as
jail and handed over to CBI and converted into Police Station. All the accused
were transferred there and again kept together under the control of special
investigating team of CBI. Legal principles required that the accused should
have been kept separate and sufficient time should have been given to them for
their minds to reflect if they wanted to make clean breast of the whole thing;
(6) it
is settled law that confession of an accused cannot be used for corroboration
of the confession made by co-accused. The rule of prudence so requires; and (7)
all these confessions are post-arrest confessions and confession of one accused
cannot be used against the other even with reference to Section 10 of the
Evidence Act.
It
could not be said that object of conspiracy was not accomplished by the
assassination of Rajiv Gandhi and that the conspiracy was still in existence.
Coming
to the confession of Nalini (A-1), it was submitted by Mr. Natrajan that she,
in her confession, referred to Murugan (A-3), Arivu (A-18), Bhagyanathan (A-20)
and Padma (A-21) among the accused now arraigned before the Court. She also
referred to Jayakumar (A-10) though he comes in the picture after the act of
assassination has been completed. Nalini (A-1) who was present at the scene of
the crime is the sole surviving accused of the group and had gone to
Sriperumbdur in furtherance of conspiracy to assassinate Rajiv Gandhi. Nalini
(A-1) has denied in her statement under Section 313 of the Code that her
confession was voluntary. She said blank papers were got signed from her. This
confession does not satisfy the requirement of law under Section 15 of TADA and
Rule 15(3) of TADA Rules though it is not disputed that all the confessions are
recorded by V. Thiagarajan (PW-52), Superintendent of Police.
It was
submitted that the certificate required to be recorded under Rule 15 (3) of the
Rules of TADA is on the same lines as given in Section 164 (4) of the Code.
Section 164(4) of the Code is as under :
"(4)Any
such confession shall be recorded in the manner provided in section 281 for
recording the examination of an accused person and shall be signed by the
person making the confession; and the Magistrate shall make a memorandum at the
foot of such record to the following effect:
"I
have explained to (name) that he is not bound to make a confession and that, if
he does so, any confession he may make may be used as evidence against him and
I believe that this confession was voluntarily made. It was taken in my
presence and hearing, and was read over to the person making it and admitted by
him to be correct, and it contains a full and true account of the statement
made by him.
(Signed)
A.B. Magistrate".
It is
unnecessary to refer to provisions of Section 281 of the Code as it is not
disputed that otherwise the confessions of the accused have been properly
recorded.
Contention
in the case of Nalini (A-1) is that the mandatory provision of Rule 15 (3) have
been violated as it is not signed by Nalini (A-1) which signatures are required
at the end of the confession. It was thus submitted that since the confession
does not bear the signatures of Nalini (A-1) it could not be said to be a valid
confession. It is important that the accused signs the confession at the end.
In that way he comprehends that he has made confession. Confession of Nalini
(A-1), it was submitted, has to be rejected in its entirety. Confession is said
to be in 18 pages out of which only pages 1 to 16 bear her signatures while
pages 17 and 18, which are crucial to the confession, do not bear her
signatures. It may be said that the police officer has appended his certificate
at the end of the confession but his recording of the certificate is immaterial
if the accused did not append his signatures at the end of the confession.
Omission of signatures of Nalini (A1) cannot cure the defect. V. Thiagarajan
(PW-52), who recorded the confession, merely stated in the examination-in-chief
that his not getting the signatures of Nalini (A-1) was an omission. No
explanation has been given as to why the omission occurred and it was not for
the accused to bring out in cross-examination as to the circumstances under
which signatures of Nalini (A-1) could not be obtained at the end of the
confession. It is also not relevant if each page of the confession is signed,
signature has to be put on the last page at the end of the confession and only
then endorsement by the police officer recording the confession has a meaning.
Both the signatures at the end of the confession and the certificates of the
police officer must go together. Rule 15 provided an assurance that confession
recorded is as per prescribed provisions. In support of the submission Mr.
Natarajan referred to a Constitution Bench decision of this Court in Kartar
Singh vs. State of Punjab (1994 (3) SCC 569) where this Court considered
constitutional validity of the provisions of Section 15 of TADA and Rule 15 of
TADA Rules. It was submitted that the constitutional validity of TADA was
upheld because of the safeguards provided by Rule 15 for recording confession
by police officer which under ordinary law is impermissible.
In
Kartar Singh's case the Court said :- "In view of the legal position
vesting authority on higher police officer to record the confession hitherto
enjoyed by the judicial officer in the normal procedure, we state that there
should be no breach of procedure and the accepted norms of recording the
confession which should reflect only the true and voluntary statement and there
should be no room for hyper criticism that the authority has obtained an
invented confession as a source of proof irrespective of the truth and
creditability as it could be ironically put that when a judge remarded,
"Am I not to hear the truth", the prosecution giving a startling
answer, "No, Your Lordship is to hear only the evidence"." (Para
254) This is how this Court analyzed Section 15 and Rule 15:- "As per
Section 15(1), a confession can either be reduced into writing or recorded on
any mechanical device like cassettes, tapes or sound tracks from which sounds
or images can be reproduced. As rightly pointed out by the learned counsel
since the recording or evidence on mechanical device can be tampered, tailored,
tinkered, edited and erased etc., we strongly feel that there must be some
severe safeguards which should be scrupulously observed while recording a
confession under Section 15(1) so that the possibility of extorting any false
confession can be prevented to some appreciable extent.
Sub-section
(2) of Section 15 enjoins a statutory obligation on the part of the police
officer recording the confession to explain to the person making it that he is
not bound to make a confession and to give a statutory warning that if he does
so it may be used as evidence against him.
Rule
15 of the TADA Rules imposes certain conditions on the police officer with
regard to the mode of recording the confession and requires the police officer
to make a memorandum at the end of the confession to the effect that he has
explained to the maker that he was not bound to make the confession and that
the confession, if made by him, would be used as against him and that he
recorded the confession only on being satisfied that it was voluntarily made.
Rule 15(5) requires that every confession recorded under Section 15 should be
sent forthwith either to the Chief Metropolitan Magistrate or the Chief
Judicial Magistrate having jurisdiction over the area in which such confession
has been recorded and the Magistrate should forthwith forward the recorded
confession received by him to the Designated Court taking cognizance of the
offence.
For
the foregoing discussion, we hold that Section 15 is not liable to be struck
down since that section does not offend either Article 14 or Article 21 of the
Constitution.
Notwithstanding
our final conclusion made in relation to the intendment of Section 15, we would
hasten to add that the recording of a confession by a Magistrate under Section
164 of the Code is not excluded by any exclusionary provision in the TADA Act,
contrary to the Code but on the other hand the police officer investigating the
case under the TADA Act can get the confession or statement of a person
indicted with any offence under any of the provisions of the TADA Act recorded
by any Metropolitan Magistrate, Judicial Magistrate, Executive Magistrate or
Special Executive Magistrate of whom the two latter Magistrates are included in
Section 164(1) by sub-section (3) of Section 20 of the TADA Act and empowered
to record confession.
The
net result is that any confession or statement of a person under the TADA Act
can be recorded either by a police officer not lower in rank than of a
Superintendent of Police, in exercise of the powers conferred under Section 15
or by a Metropolitan Magistrate or Judicial Magistrate or Executive Magistrate
or Special Executive Magistrate who are empowered to record any confession
under Section 164 (1) in view of sub-section (3) of Section 20 of the TADA
Act." Reference was also made to a Division Bench decision of the Bombay
High Court in Abdul Razak Shaikh vs. State of Maharashtra (1988 Crl.L.J. 382),
which relying on a decision of Privy Council in Nazir Ahmad vs. King-Emperor
(AIR 1936 PC 253), held, "that the provision that the Magistrate after
recording confession should obtain the signature of the accused thereon is a
salutary provision and has been specially provided for, for safeguarding the
interest of the accused and, therefore, it is mandatory".
High
Court said that this omission cannot be cured by examining the Magistrate under
Section 463 of the Code.
Section
463 of the Code is as under :- "463. Non-compliance with provisions of
section 164 or section 281.-- (1) If any Court before which a confession or
other statement of an accused person recorded, or purporting to be recorded
under section 164 or section 281, is tendered, or has been received, in
evidence finds that any of the provisions of either or such sections have not
been complied with by the Magistrate recording the statement, it may,
notwithstanding anything contained in section 91 of the Indian Evidence Act,
1872 (1 of 1872), take evidence in regard to such non-compliance, and may, if
satisfied that such noncompliance has not injured the accused in his defence on
the merits and that he duly made the statement recorded, admit such statement.
(2)
The provisions of this section apply to Courts of appeal, reference and
revision." In Nazir Ahmad vs. King-Emperor (AIR 1936 PC 253) the
Magistrate, who purportedly recorded the confession, was called as a witness.
He said that the accused made a full confession of his participation in the
crime. The Magistrate said he made rough notes of what he was told and, after
dictating to a typist memorandum from the rough notes, then destroyed them. The
Board then noticed :
"He
produced, and there was put in evidence, a memorandum, called a note, signed by
him, containing the substance but not all of the matter to which he spoke
orally. The note was signed by him and at the end, above the signature, there
was appended a certificate somewhat to the same effect as that prescribed in S.
164, and in particular stating that the Magistrate believed that 'the pointing
out and the statements were voluntarily made'. But it was not suggested that
the Magistrate, though he was manifestly acting under Part 5 of the Code,
either purported to follow or in fact followed the procedure of Ss. 164 and 364
(old Code). Indeed, as there was no record in existence at the material time,
there was nothing to be shown or to be read to the accused, and nothing he
could sign or refuse to sign. The Magistrate offered no explanation of why he
acted as he did instead of following the procedure required by S. 164."
The Board did not express any opinion in this case on the question of the
operation or scope of Section 533 (old) corresponding to Section 463 of the
present Code. It was conceded that the Magistrate neither acted nor purported
to act under Section 164 or Section 364 (old) and nothing was tendered in
evidence as recorded or purporting to be recorded under either of the sections.
The Board then went on to hold as under:- "On the matter of construction
Ss. 164 and 364 must be looked at and construed together, and it would be an
unnatural construction to hold that any other procedure was permitted than that
which is laid down with such minute particularity in the sections themselves.
Upon the construction adopted by the Crown, the only effect of S. 164 is to
allow evidence to be put in a form in which it can prove itself under Ss. 74
and 80, Evidence Act. Their Lordships are satisfied that the scope and extent
of the section is far other than this, and that it is a section conferring
powers on Magistrates and delimiting them. It is also to be observed that, if
the construction contended for by the Crown be correct, all the precautions and
safeguards laid down by Ss. 164 and 364 would be of such trifling value as to
be almost idle. Any Magistrate of any rank could depose to a confession made by
an accused so long as it was not induced by a threat or promise, without
affirmatively satisfying himself that it was made voluntarily and without
showing or reading to the accused any version of what he was supposed to have
said or asking for the confession to be vouched by any signature. The range of
magisterial confessions would be so enlarged by this process that the
provisions of S. 164 would almost inevitably be widely disregarded in the same
manner as they were disregarded in the present case." In Abdul Razak
Shaikh's case Bombay High Court also relied on a decision of the Nagpur High
Court in Neharoo Mangtu Satnami vs. Emperor (AIR 1937 Nag 220), where also
Nagpur High Court relying the aforesaid decision of the Privy Council in Nazir
Ahmad vs. King-Emperor (AIR 1936 PC 253) held that the evidence of the
Magistrate, who recorded the confession of the accused and did not obtain his
signatures thereon was inadmissible. The Magistrate also while recording the
confession of the accused did not follow the provisions of Sections 164 and 364
of the Code (old) and did not record the confession of the accused with
required care and formality. He also did not record the certificate as required
by Section 164 and also failed to obtain signature of the accused. The
Magistrate subsequently went into the witness box for the prosecution and
deposed that the confession was made by the accused voluntarily. In these
circumstances High Court held that the evidence of the Magistrate was
inadmissible and the confession recorded by him was ineffective.
In the
case before the Bombay High Court contention was that "as per the
provisions of sub-section (4) of Section 164 Cr.P.C. it is mandatory for the
Magistrate, after recording the confession, to obtain the signature of the
accused thereon and as in the present case the learned Judicial Magistrate
failed to obtain the signature of the accused on the confession recorded by
him, that confession could not be admitted in evidence and the defect could not
be cured by invoking the provisions of S. 463, Cr.P,.C.".
This
contention was upheld by the High Court relying on the aforesaid two decisions
one of the Privy Council and the other of the Nagpur High Court. We do not
think the view taken by the Bombay High Court and Nagpur High Court is correct.
It may noted that the Privy Council did not consider the scope and
applicability of Section 463 in the circumstances of the case before it. In
that case it was conceded that the confessions were not recorded either under
Section 164 or Section 281 of the Code. The view taken by the Bombay High Court
appears to us to be rather too technical and if we accept this view it would be
almost making Section 463 of the Code ineffective. Confession of Nalini (A-1)
runs into 18 pages. The certificate as required by Rule 15 (3) of TADA Rules in
the form prescribed has been appended by V. Thiagarajan (PW-52), S.P., at the
end of the confession. Signatures of Nalini (A-1) appear on pages 1 to 16. In
his testimony V. Thiagarajan (PW-52) has submitted that his not getting
signatures of Nalini (A-1) at the end of confession is an omission. There is no
cross-examination of V. Thiagarajan (PW-52) as to why the omission occurred. It
has not been suggested that the omission was deliberate. Statement of V.
Thiagarajan (PW-52) is forthright. There could certainly be a human error but
that would not mean that Section 463 of the Code becomes inapplicable. Mr.
Natarajan is correct in his submission that when the requirement of law is that
confession should be signed by the person making it, it would mean his
signatures at the end of the confession.
What
Section 463 requires is that evidence could be led of police officer recording
the confession as to why provisions of Rule 15 (3) could not be complied while
recording the confession. It has not been suggested or brought on record as to
how not getting signatures of Nalini (A-1) on the last pages of the confession
has injured her in her defence on the merits of the case. The confession has
been corroborated in material particulars by means of independent evidence even
if the confessions of the co-accused are set apart. Confession of Nalini (A-1)
was recorded on 7.8.1991 and was sent to the court of the Chief Judicial
Magistrate on the following day and on 9.8.1991 it was sent to the Designated
Court. We find that the confession was duly made, which was recorded by V.
Thiagarajan (PW-52). We are, therefore, inclined to admit the confession of
Nalini (A-1) overruling the objection that Rule 15 (3) of the TADA Rules has
been violated.
We
think sufficient time was given to the accused in the circumstances of the case
for them to reflect if they wanted to make confession. Merely because
confession was recorded a day or so before the police remand was to expire
would not make the confession involuntary. No complaint was made before the
trial court that confession was the result of any coercion, threat or use of
any third degree methods or even playing upon psychology of the accused.
In the
Case of Arivu (A-18) it was submitted that when he was produced before V.
Thiagarajan (PW-52) on 14.8.1991 his statement was recorded that he wanted to
give confession statement voluntarily. But then while giving time to him for
reflection V. Thiagarajan (PW-52) recorded that "the accused Shri Payas @
Kumaralingam has been made to remain alone in his apartment for the purpose of
reflection in order to further make up his mind as to whether he should make a
confessional statement or not". Argument was that it was not Arivu (A-18),
who was called on 14.8.1991 and rather it was accused Payas (A-9). We do not
think that this submission has any merit as on the following day, i.e.,
15.8.1991 confession dated 15.8.1991 of Arivu (A-18) was duly recorded. We have
examined the proceedings of 14.8.1991 and of 15.8.1991 and we have no doubt in
our minds that these refer to the accused Arivu (A-18) and that the name of
Payas (A-9) was merely typing error and no advantage can be drawn from that.
Mr.
Natrajan said that evidence in the present case does not show if any offence
under Section 3 or 4 of TADA has been made out and when there is no offence
under TADA, provisions of Section 15 of TADA would not apply and all the
confessions would become inadmissible in evidence as all these were made before
a Police Officer. In support of his submissions, he referred to a decision of
this Court in Bilal Ahmed Kaloo vs. State of Andhra Pradesh [(1997) 7 SCC 431].
In that case, the accused was challaned before the Designated Court at
Hyderabad for offences under Sections 124-A, 436, 153-A and 505(2) IPC and
under Sections 3, 4 and 5 of TADA and also under Section 25 of the Arms Act.
The Designated Court acquitted him of the offences under TADA but convicted him
of the offences under the IPC and also under Section 25 of the Arms Act. In
these circumstances, this Court said that confession made by the accused before
the Police Officer was inadmissible in respect of the offences under the IPC.
The Court observed as under :
"While
dealing with the offences of which the appellant was convicted there is no
question of looking into the confessional statement attributed to him, much
less relying on it since he was acquitted of all offences under TADA. Any
confession made to a police officer is inadmissible in evidence as for these
offences and hence it is fairly conceded that the said ban would not wane off
in respect of offences under the Penal Code merely because the trial was held
by the Designated Court for offences under TADA as well. Hence the case against
him would stand or fall depending on the other evidence." As to whether
any offence under Section 3 or 4 of TADA is made out in the present case, we
will consider at subsequent stage of the judgment. In view of the decision of this
Court in Bilal Ahmed Kaloo's case contention of Mr. Natrajan is rather correct.
However, it appears to us that while holding the confession to be inadmissible
in a trial when the accused is acquitted of offences under Section 3 or 4 of
TADA, provisions of Section 12 of the TADA were not taken into consideration by
this Court in the said judgment.
Section
12 reads as under :
"12.Power
of Designated Courts with respect to other offences.-(1) When trying any
offence, a Designated Court may also try any other offence with which the
accused may, under the Code, be charged at the same trial if the offence is
connected with such other offence.
(2)
If, in the course of any trial under this Act of any offence, it is found that
the accused person has committed any other offence under this Act or any rule
made thereunder or under any other law, the Designated Court may convict such
person of such other offence and pass any sentence authorised by this Act or
such rule or, as the case may be, such other law for the punishment
thereof." It is apparent that provisions of Section 12 of TADA were not
brought to the notice of the Court in Bilal Ahmed Kaloo's case. This judgment
which was rendered by two learned Judges of this Court, does not lay a good law
on this aspect of the matter. Continuing Mr. Natrajan said that even if the
confession of an accused is admissible under Section 15 of TADA it is not a
substantive piece of evidence and cannot be used against a co-accused unless it
is corroborated in material particulars by other evidence.
Confession
of one accused cannot corroborate the confession of another. In support of his
submission, he referred to another two Judge Bench decision in Kalpanath Rai
vs. State (Through CBI) [(1997) 8 SCC 732] where this Court said that confession
under Section 15 of TADA cannot be used as substantive evidence and that it has
only corroborative value. This is how this Court considered this question : "70.
Section 15 of TADA provides that "notwithstanding anything in the Code or
in the Indian Evidence Act ... a confession made by a person before a police
officer not lower in rank than a Superintendent of Police ... shall be
admissible in the trial of such person or co-accused, abettor or conspirator
for an offence under this Act or rules made thereunder, provided that
co-accused, abettor or conspirator is charged and tried in the same case
together with the accused". In this context we may point out that the
words "or co-accused, abettor or conspirator" in the proviso were not
in the section until the enactment of Act 43 of 1993 by which those words were
inserted. By the same Amendment Act Section 21 was also recast which, as it
originally stood, enabled the Designated Court to draw a legal presumption that
the accused had committed the offence "if it is proved that a confession
has been made by a co-accused that the accused had committed the offence".
71.
The legal presumption linked to an accused vis-a-vis a confession made by a
coaccused has been deleted by Parliament through Act 43 of 1993 and as a
package inserted the words mentioned above in Section 15.
72.
What is the effect of such deletion from Section 21 and addition to Section 15
of TADA? It should be remembered that under Sections 25 and 26 of the Evidence
Act no confession made by an accused to a police officer, or to any person
while he was in police custody could be admitted in evidence, and under Section
162 of the Code no statement made by any person during investigation to a
police officer could be used in a trial except for the purpose of
contradiction. In view of the aforesaid ban imposed by the legislature Section
15 of TADA provides an exception to the ban. But it is well to remember that
other confessions which are admissible even under the Evidence Act could be
used as against a co-accused only upon satisfaction of certain conditions. Such
conditions are stipulated in Section 30 of the Evidence Act, which reads thus :
"30.
When more persons than one are being tried jointly for the same offence, and a
confession made by one of such persons affecting himself and some other of such
persons is proved, the court may take into consideration such confession as
against such other person as well as against the person who makes such
confession."
73.
The first condition is that there should be a confession i.e. inculpatory
statement. Any exculpatory admission is not usable for any purpose whatsoever
as against a coaccused. The second condition is that the maker of the
confession and the co-accused should necessarily have been tried jointly for
the same offence. In other words, if the coaccused is tried for some other
offence, though in the same trial, the confession made by one is not usable
against the co-accused. The third condition is that the confession made by one
accused should affect him as well as the co-accused. In other words, if the
confessor absolves himself from the offence but only involves the co-accused in
the crime, while making the confession, such a confession cannot be used
against the coaccused.
74.
Even if no conditions are satisfied the use of a confession as against a
co-accused is only for a very limited purpose i.e. the same can be taken into
consideration as against such other person. It is now well settled that under
Section 30 of the Evidence Act the confession made by one accused is not
substantive evidence against a co-accused. It has only a corroborative value
(vide Kashmira Singh v. State of M.P. (AIR 1952 SC 159 : 1952 SCR 526), Nathu
v. State of U.P. (AIR 1956 SC 56) and Haricharan Kurmi v. State of Bihar (AIR 1964
SC 1184).
75. A
confession made admissible under Section 15 of TADA can be used as against a
co-accused only in the same manner and subject to the same conditions as
stipulated in Section 30 of the Evidence Act." Mr. Altaf Ahmad, learned
Additional Solicitor General submitted that the statement of law as spelled out
in para 75 of the judgment in Kalpnath Rai's case needs re-consideration. He
said what Section 15 contains is a non-absente clause and it applies
notwithstanding the provisions of the Evidence Act and the Code. Section 21 of
TADA was amended by the amending Act 43 of 1993 and clauses (c) and (d) were
omitted. Section 21 before deletion of clauses (c) and (d) was as under :-
"21. Presumption as to offences under Section 3. - (1) In a prosecution
for an offence under sub-section (1) of Section 3, if it is proved - (a) that
the arms or explosives or any other substances specified in Section 3 were
recovered from the possession of the accused and there is reason to believe
that such arms or explosives or other substances of a similar nature, were used
in the commission of such offence; or (b) that by the evidence of an expert the
finger prints of the accused were found at the site of the offence or on
anything including arms and vehicles used in connection with the commission of
such offence; or (c) that a confession has been made by a co-accused that the
accused had committed the offence; or (d) that the accused had made a
confession of the offence to any person other than a police officer, the Designated
Court shall presume, unless the contrary is proved, that the accused had
committed such offence.
(2) In
a prosecution for an offence under sub-section (3) of Section 3, if it is
proved that the accused rendered any financial assistance to a person accused
of, or reasonably suspected of, an offence under that section, the Designated
Court shall presume, unless the contrary is proved, that such person has
committed the offence under that subsection." By the same amending Act
words "or co-accused, abettor or conspirator" were introduced in
Section 15 TADA after the words "shall be admissible in the trial of such
person". Now this Section reads as under :- "15. Certain confessions
made to police officers to be taken into consideration. - (1) Notwithstanding
anything in the Code or in the Indian Evidence Act, 1872 (1 of 1872), but
subject to the provisions of this section, a confession made by a person before
a police officer not lower in rank than a Superintendent of Police and recorded
by such police officer either in writing or on any mechanical device like
cassettes, tapes or sound tracks from out of which sounds or images can be
reproduced, shall be admissible in the trial of such person or co-accused,
abettor or conspirator for an offence under this Act or rules made thereunder.
Provided
that co-accused, abettor or conspirator is charged and tried in the same case
together with the accused.
(2)
The police officer shall, before recording any confession under sub-section
(1), explain to the person making it that he is not bound to make a confession
and that, if he does so, it may be used as evidence against him and such police
officer shall not record any such confession unless upon questioning the person
making it, he has reason to believe that it is being made voluntarily." In
Kalpnath Rai's case this Court said that Sections 25 and 26 of the Evidence Act
were excluded and not Section
30.
The question that arises for consideration is as to what is the effect of
deletion clauses (c) and (d) in Section 21 and addition of words in Section 15.
Mr.
Altaf Ahmad said that the provisions of Sections 15 and 21 after their
amendment provided that a confession of an accused is now admissible in
evidence against co-accused. It is the substantive evidence against the co-accused
as well. Concept of drawing presumption though as was earlier mentioned in
Section 21 now no more existed.
When
Section 15 TADA says that confession of an accused is admissible against
co-accused as well it would be substantive evidence against the co-accused. It
is a different matter as to what value is to be attached to the confession with
regard to the coaccused as that would fall in the realm of appreciation of
evidence.
The
term 'admissible' under Section 15 has to be given a meaning. When it says that
confession is admissible against a co-accused it can only mean that it is
substantive evidence against him as well as against the maker of the
confession.
Mr.
Natrajan said that the confession may be substantive evidence against the
accused who made it but not against his co-accused. He reasoned that the
confession was not that of the co-accused and it was not the evidence; it is
the confessor who owned his guilt and not the co-accused;
it is
not evidence under Section 3 of the Evidence Act; it is not tested by
cross-examination; and lastly, after all it is the statement of an accomplice.
According to him it can have only corroborative value and that is a well
established principle of the evidence even though Section 3 and Section 30 of
the Evidence Act be ignored. But then Section 15 TADA starts with non-absente
clause. It says Evidence Act will not apply and neither the Code of Criminal
Procedure. This is certainly a departure from the ordinary law. But then it was
also the submissions of Mr. Natrajan that the bar which is removed under
Section 15 is qua Sections 24, 25 and 26 of the Evidence Act and not that all
the provisions of the Evidence Act have been barred from its application. He,
therefore, said that the view taken by this Court in Kalpnath Rai's case
[(1997) 8 SCC 732) that Section 30 Evidence Act was in any case applicable, was
correct. We think, however, that the view expressed in that case needs
reconsideration.
If we
analyze Section 15 the words which have been added by the Amending Act, 1993
have to be given proper meaning and if we accept the argument of Mr. Natrajan
these words will be superfluous which would be against the elementary
principles of interpretation of statute. For the confession of accused to be
admissible against coaccused proviso to Section 15 says that they should be
tried together. That is also Section 30 Evidence Act. Clauses (c) and (d) of
Section 21 were deleted which raised a presumption of guilt against the
co-accused. According to Mr. Natrajan that provision made the confession of
co-accused a substantive evidence and Parliament did not think it proper that
it should be so. But then why add the words in Section 15? 'Admissible'
according to Black's Law Dictionary means, "pertinent and proper to be considered
in reaching a decision. Used with reference to the issues to be decided in any
judicial proceeding." It defines 'Admissible evidence' as, "As
applied to evidence, the term means that the evidence introduced is of such a
character that the court or judge is bound to receive it; that is, allow it to
be introduced at trial. To be "admissible" evidence must be relevant,
and, inter alia, to be "relevant" it must tend to establish material
proposition...." If we again refer to Black's Law Dictionary 'substantive
evidence' means "that adduced for the purpose of proving a fact in issue,
as opposed to evidence given for the purpose of discrediting a witness (i.e.
showing that he is unworthy of belief), or of corroborating his
testimony".
TADA
was enacted to meet extra-ordinary situation existing in the country. Its
departure from the law relating to confession as contained in Evidence Act is
deliberate. Law has to respond to the reality of the situation. What is
admissible is the evidence. Confession of the accused is admissible with the
same force in its application to the coaccused who is tried in the same case.
It is
primary evidence and not corroborative. When the legislature enacts that
Evidence Act would not apply which would mean all the provisions of the Evidence
Act including Section 30. By judicial interpretation or judicial rigmarole, as
we may put it, the Court cannot again bring into operation Section 30 of the
Evidence Act and any such attempt would not appear to be quite warranted.
Reference was made to a few decisions on the question of interpretation of
Sections3 and 30 of the Evidence Act, foremost being that of the Privy Council
in Bhuboni Sahu vs.
The
King (AIR 1949 PC 257), and though we note this decision it would not be
applicable because of the view which we have taken on the exclusion of Section
30 of the Evidence Act.
In
Bhuboni Sahu's case the Board opined as under :- "Section 30 seems to be
based on the view that an admission by an accused person of his own guilt
affords some sort of sanction in support of the truth of his confession against
others as well as himself. But a confession of a co-accused is obviously
evidence of a very weak type. It does not indeed come within the definition of
"evidence" contained in S. 3, Evidence Act. It is not required to be
given on oath, nor in the presence of the accused, and it cannot be tested by
cross-examination. It is a much weaker type of evidence than the evidence of an
approver which is not subject to any of those infirmities. Section 30, however,
provides that the Court may take the confession into consideration and thereby,
no doubt, makes it evidence on which the Court may act; but the section does
not say that the confession is to amount to proof. Clearly there must be other
evidence. The confession is only one element in the consideration of all the
facts proved in the case;
it can
be put into the scale and weighed with the other evidence. Their Lordships
think that the view which has prevailed in most of the High Courts in India,
namely that the confession of a co-accused can be used only in support of other
evidence and cannot be made the foundation of a conviction, is correct."
In Kashmira Singh vs. State of Madhya Pradesh (1952 SCR 526) one of the
questions was how far and in what way the confession of an accused person can
be used against a co-accused. The Court relied on the observations made by the
Privy Council in Bhuboni Sahu's case and said that testimony of an accomplice
can in law be used to corroborate another though it ought not to be used save
in exceptional circumstances and for reasons disclosed.
In
Hari Charan Kurmi and Jogia Hajam vs. State of Bihar (1964 (2) SCR 623) this
Court again relied on its earlier decision in Kashmira Singh's case and on the
decision of the Privy Council in Bhuboni Sahu's case. It said that technically
construed, definition of evidence as contained in Section 3 of the Evidence Act
will not apply to confession. Even so, Section 30 provides that a confession
may be taken into consideration not only against its maker, but also against a
co-accused person; that is to say, though such a confession may not be evidence
as strictly defined by Section 3 of the Act, it is an element which may be
taken into consideration by the criminal court and in that sense, it may be
described as evidence in a non-technical way. But it is significant that like
other evidence which is produced before the Court, it is not obligatory on the
court to take the confession into account. When evidence as defined by the Act
is produced before the Court, it is the duty of the Court to consider that
evidence. What weight should be attached to such evidence, is a matter in the
discretion of the Court. But a Court cannot say in respect of such evidence
that it will just not take that evidence into account. Such an approach can,
however, be adopted by the Court in dealing with a confession, because section
30 merely enables the Court to take the confession into account.
In
view of the above discussions, we hold the confessions of the accused in the present
case to be voluntarily and validly made and under Section 15 of TADA confession
of an accused is admissible against co-accused as a substantive evidence.
Substantive evidence, however, does not necessarily means substantial evidence.
It is the quality of evidence that matters. As to what value is to be attached
to a confession will fall within the domain of appreciation of evidence. As a
matter of prudence court may look for some corroboration if confession is to be
used against a co-accused though that will again be with the sphere of
appraisal of evidence.
Having
thus held the confessions to be voluntary and admissible we proceed to examine
these confessions and other evidence but before that it may be useful to have a
look at the witnesses and the nature of the evidence produced.
Rajiv
Gandhi had come to Sriperumbudur to address an election meeting for Maragatham
Chandrasekar, who was contesting election on Congress ticket as MP from
Sriperumbudur constituency. She is herself a witness (PW-29) and was injured in
the blast. PWs-1 to 51 give evidence of the tour programme of Rajiv Gandhi, his
arrival at the venue at Sriperumbudur, security arrangements by the police and
eye witnesses to the blast being Congress party workers, photographers and
journalists. We are not concerned with the tour programme of Rajiv Gandhi and
the security arrangements made for him. His addressing meeting at Sriperumbudur
on May 21, 1991 was published in local newspapers and was known to some of the
conspirators. All the security arrangements could not save his life from the
human suicide bomb. Many by-standers and police personnel died along with him
or suffered grievous or simple injuries.
One
such person was a young girl Kokila of 14 years who had come with her mother
Latha Kankan to recite a poem to Rajiv Gandhi which she had written in Hindi.
She was talking to Rajiv Gandhi when blast occurred. She died and so her
mother. In one of the photographs in the camera (MO-1) Kokila with her mother
Latha Kankan is seen standing next to Dhanu, the human bomb. Some of the
persons who suffered hurt have been examined. Of these 51 witnesses, who are
not in the list of injured one is C.S. Ganesh (PW-18), Music Director, who was
giving his programme at the meeting before the arrival of Rajiv Gandhi; and
Sundararajan Murali (PW-34) and Subramaniyan (PW-35) who give opinion regarding
motive of LTTE against Rajiv Gandhi. In the photographs found in the camera
(MO-1) and other photographs taken at the site by other witnesses Dhanu, Subha,
Nalini (A-1), Sivarasan and Haribabu are identified at the scene of the crime.
The witnesses give gory picture of the scene of the crime.
There
is no dispute that death of Rajiv Gandhi and 15 others was homicidal and the
grievous and simple hurt caused to 43 on account of the blast. There is also no
dispute about the identity of the accused. Dr. Cecelia Cyril (PW-121), Dr. M.N.
Damodaran (PW-124) to Dr. Jishnu Mohan (PW-127), Dr. N. Ramasamy (PW-129), Dr.
B. Santhakumar (PW-130), Dr. Veerapandian (PW-134) to Dr. T.S. Koshy (PW-146),
Dr. Raja Venkatesh (PW-150), Dr. Kanagaraj (PW-155), Dr. A. Srinivasan
(PW-162), Dr. E.V. Yuvaraj (PW-163), Dr. Ponnusamy (PW-165), Dr. K. Poongothai
M.S. (PW-166), Dr. Saraswathi (PW-169) and Dr. Ramesh Kumar Sharma (PW-182) are
medical officers, who conducted post-mortem and examined the injured. Dr. L.
Thirunavukkarasu (PW243), Dr. S. Rajendran (PW-244), Dr. S. Maghivanan (PW-246)
and Dr. T. Shankughavel Samy (PW-247) are the medical officers who conducted
the post-mortem on the dead bodies of the deceased accused, who committed
suicide during investigation. Dr. Amrit Patnaik (PW-147) is the medical officer
who conducted the post-mortem on the dead body of Dhanu.
We may
now examine the confessions given by the accused and other evidence led by the
prosecution to see how each confession corroborates the other and how the
evidence corroborates the confessions.
Nalini
(A-1) is the only accused who was present at the scene of the crime. She is the
sister of Bhagyanathan (A-20) and daughter of Padma (A-21). During 1991 she was
working as P.A. to Managing Director of Anabond Silicons Pvt. Ltd. at Adyar,
Madras. Her office telephone number was 419493. N. Sujaya Narayan (PW-96) was
her colleague and acquainted with her hand-writing. Baby Subramaniam, an LTTE
leader, was running a printing press in Madras which was bought by Bhagyanathan
(A-20) and named it BPL All Rounders. Till January, 1991 Padma (A-21) was
staying in Kalyani Nursing Home quarters where she was working.
Thereafter
she rented Royapettah house in January, 1991.
She
was living with her three children Bhagyanathan (A-20), Nalini (A-1) and
Kalyani, another daughter. When Nalini (A-1) started living separately she for
a short while lived with M. Sankari (PW-210), who is sister of Muthuraja, an
LTTE activist. This Muthuraja was a friend of Bhagyanathan (A-20). Nalini (A-1)
thereafter rented a house in Villivakkam. Muthuraja was working with Baby
Subramaniam, who was a top leader of LTTE. Family of Bhagyanathan (A-20) was
introduced to M. Sankari (PW-210) by her brother Muthuraja. Baby Subramaniam
used one room in the house of M. Sankari (PW-210) and kept his belongings such
as books and papers there. Bhagyanathan (A-20), Arivu (A-18), Haribabu (DA) and
Irumborai (A-19) used to visit the room occupied by Baby Subramaniam and meet
him. In February, 1991 Irumborai (A-19) and Suresh Master (DA) met M. Sankari
(PW-210) and told her that they had come from Jaffna and wanted her to take
them to the house of Bhagyanathan (A-20) which she did. Muthuraja had told M.
Sankari (PW-210) that he was working in Subha Sundaram Studio but for how long
he worked there she did not know. This studio belonged to Subha Suba Sundaram
(A-22). Muthuraja had left for Jaffna in February, 1991. He was a professional
photographer and was recording video cassettes and he did that work for LTTE
movement.
Bhagyanathan
(A-20) had also a job in Subha Sundaram Studio of Subha Suba Sundaram (A-22)
which job Padma (A-21) had arranged for him. Subha Suba Sundaram (A-22) was known
to Padma (A-21) as she attended the delivery of the wife of the former at
Kalyani Nursing Home. Bhagyanathan (A-20) was introduced to Baby Subramaniam by
Muthuraja. Arivu (A-18) also became friend of Bhagyanathan (A-20). Like
Muthuraja, Arivu (A-18) used to gather news and photographs. He used to compile
Tamil and English news, record in video cassettes, edit them and send them to
LTTE Headquarters in Sri Lanka. He was staying in the house of Padma (A-21)
since February, 1991. For the purpose of recording news on video cassettes he
had bought a National colour TV and video deck. In the first week of February,
1991 Muthuraja introduced Murugan (A-3) to the family of Padma (A-21). He
belonged to LTTE organization. Padma (A-21) at first did not like Murugan (A-3)
to stay in her house but she agreed when Muthuraja told her that police was
keeping a watch over his house and he could not keep him there. Murugan (A-3)
used to provide financial help to Padma (A-21). He helped Bhagyanathan (A-20)
by giving him money as well. One K. Bharathi (PW-233), a nurse, was a friend of
Kalyani. She also stayed in the house of Padma (A-21) since February, 1991. On
one occasion in February, 1991 K. Bharathi (PW-233) found Murugan (A-3) in the
house of Padma (A-21).
On
inquiry Padma (A-21) told her that he had come from Tirunelveli and that
Muthuraja had sent him to learn English.
In the
second week of February, 1991 Kalyani, sister of Nalini (A-1), accompanied with
K. Bharathi (PW-233) and Murugan (A-3) came to the office of Nalini (A-1).
Nalini (A-1) was introduced to Murugan (A-3) and was told that he was staying
in the house of her mother Padma (A-21).
Murugan
(A-3) started coming to the office of Nalini (A-1) regularly thereafter and she
was quite infatuated of him.
Haribabu
(DA) and Robert Payas (A-9) were friends of Murugan (A-3) and they also used to
come to the office of Nalini (A-1) and used her telephone to talk to their
friends.
After
some time Murugan (A-3) told Nalini (A-1) that he was an important member of
LTTE and had been sent to India by Pottu Amman, Intelligence Chief of LTTE.
Murugan (A-3) also told Nalini (A-1) that in India he was working under the
charge of Sivarasan (DA), who was in-charge of operations of LTTE in India. On
April 18, 1991 Nalini (A-1) attended the election meeting of Rajiv Gandhi and
Jayalalitha at Marina Beach, Madras along with Murugan (A-3). She went there at
the instance of Murugan (A-3). In the month of April, 1991 when Nalini (A-1)
was in the house of her mother Padma (A-21) she met Sivarasan. Murugan (A-3)
told her that he (Sivarasan) was his boss and that it was under his
instructions that he was carrying out his work. Nalini (A-1) wanted to vacate
her Villivakkam residence but was persuaded by Murugan (A-3) to stay on there
for some more time. He told her that Sivarasan was bringing two girls from Sri
Lanka for LTTE operations and those girls would be staying with her. Nalini
(A-1) agreed. On 2.5.1991 Sivarasan brought Subha and Dhanu to her house. They,
however, did not stay with Nalini (A-1) and used to visit her on some days.
They told her that they were staying in Kodungaiyur house. Nalini (A-1) learnt
both Subha and Dhanu were committed LTTE tigresses and committed to the cause
of LTTE. Murugan (A-3) had told Nalini (A-1) that they were working under Pottu
Amman and Akila. During their discussions Nalini (A-1) was told by Murugan
(A-3), Subha and Dhanu about the atrocities committed by IPKF on Sri Lankan
Tamils. They said Rajiv Gandhi was responsible for sending troops to Sri Lanka
who killed Tamils, raped and humiliated their women. Nalini (A-1) was also told
about the suicide committed by 12 Tamil activists, who were detained by Sri
Lankan Navy. All this led Nalini (A-1) to have strong feeling of disgust
against Rajiv Gandhi. She also read the book "Satanic Force" and
developed extreme hatred for Rajiv Gandhi. Since Subha and Dhanu had come to
India for the first time and were finding it difficult to communicate and thus
required a natural cover to facilitate their movements. Nalini (A-1) by this
time was mentally prepared by Sivarasan, Murugan (A-3), Subha and Dhanu for any
kind of retaliatory action including killing of leaders.
On
2.5.1991 when Sivarasan brought Subha and Dhanu to the house of Nalini (A-1)
and she was told that they were going to garland Indian leaders while
addressing public meeting Nalini (A-1) felt instinctively that they were going
to assassinate some leader. They had, however, not discussed about it.
Sivarasan was of the view that in order to acquaint with the method by which
they could by-pass the police security and reach the leaders addressing the
meetings they should attend those meetings. He said it was very important that
Subha and Dhanu reached very close to VIP for garlanding him at the meeting.
Sivarasan told Nalini (A-1) that her role was a very important one because
being an Indian nobody would suspect Subha and Dhanu if she accompanied them.
At the instance of Sivarasan Nalini (A-1), Subha and Dhanu attended the
election meeting addressed by V.P. Singh, the then Prime Minister.
Sivarasan
briefed them in advance that how they should try to go to the dais. Dhanu and
Subha were to carry garlands.
Haribabu,
who had also been briefed, was to be present at the dais to take photographs
and was to be a part of the rehearsal. Murugan (A-3) gave Nalini (A-1) a camera
and told her that she should try to take photographs. Before going to the
meeting they purchased two rose garlands from a nearby shop. Nalini (A-1),
Subha and Dhanu were unable to go to the dais as organizers did not permit them
to go there. They were all standing near the stair-case leading to the dais and
when V.P. Singh reached there Subha and Dhanu managed to hand over garlands to
him. Nalini (A-1) tried to take photographs but could not operate the camera.
Haribabu
also for some reason could not take photographs.
After
the meeting when they all assembled failure of Dhanu and Subha reaching the
dais was considered. It was also thought that some donations or bribes should
be offered to party workers and the security people in order to go to the dais.
Now by this time Nalini (A-1) was convinced that they had definite mission to
perform. The meeting of V.P. Singh was also attended by Arivu (A-18) but
separately.
On
9.5.1991 Murugan (A-3) told Nalini (A-1) that he was to go Sri Lanka on
instructions received from Sri Lanka as conveyed to him by Sivarasan. He left
for Sri Lanka on 11.5.1991. Sivarasan gave him two letters written by Dhanu and
Subha to Pottu Amman and Akila. Bhagyanathan (A-20) also wrote a letter
(Exh.P-453) on 9.5.1991 to Baby Subramaniam and gave that to Murugan (A-3) to
be delivered to Baby Subramaniam at Sri Lanka. These two letters dated 9.5.1991
are Exh. P-95 and P-96 and were subsequently seized during the course of
investigation. These are in Tamil. Though these are written by Subha but are
sent on behalf of both Subha and Dhanu. English translation of these two
letters is as under :
Ex.P.
95 "Tamil Elam 09.05.91.
Dear
Akila sister, We are well and we shall be confident until the fulfillment of
the job we came here. Here it is very hot and hence we cannot proceed to any
place in the noon.
We are
confident that the work for which we came would be finished in a proper manner.
Because we were expecting another opportunity appropriately it would be
executed within this month.
Otherwise,
the state of this country is very bad.
We
have to practise only to speak. Otherwise there is no problem for us. It is
necessary to enact a drama. Akila sister's, every word shall remain in our mind
until last.
The
remaining, if we meet? Are everybody is well? Yours Sd/- Subha-Dhanu" Ex.
P.96 "Tamil Elam 09.05.91 To Pottanna, We are confident and well. I am
confident that we will be successful in the attempt of job for which we came.
Because,
we expected a similar opportunity (we went very near to Singh).
We
will be confident until last.
Yours
Sd/Subha-Dhanu" On 7.5.1991 Sivarasan sent a coded wireless message from
Madras to Pottu Amman in Sri Lanka (Exh. P-392) which, when decoded, reads as
under :
"She
is the eldest daughter in the house of Indu Master. Moving closely. Our
intention is not known to anybody except we three. I have told her that it is
to have the support of the party who will be coming to power. Here V.P. Singh
is coming. We are receiving. Like that we are receiving all the leaders.
I am
slowly approaching. If I tell our intention there is no doubt that she will
stand firmly on our side.
We are
moving with her closely, have full satisfaction. Girls are telling that the
intention can be revealed to her she can be believed.
If I
return I will return as your man. We are strong in powder business." Here
reference to 'eldest daughter' is to Nalini (A-1) and Indu Master is Murugan
(A-3). On 11.5.1991 Subha and Dhanu came to Nalini (A-1) and all three went for
shopping. They purchased a set of 'churidar' in orange colour with designs,
green colour 'kameez' (shirt) and a green 'duppatta' from a shop in
Purasawakkam. These purchases were made for Dhanu. Her measurements were
required but she said she need not give any measurement as she wanted a very
loose kurta. It was Subha who gave measurements on her benalf. From another
shop a pair of sleepers ('chappals') was also purchased for Dhanu. S. Chinnamani
(PW-203) is salesman working in shop called Metro Square in Pondy Bazaar,
Madras, who testified of having sold chappals to Dhanu and identified the same
as worn in the leg in photograph (MO-527). He said at that time there were two
more ladies with her. M. Gunankhalal Soni (PW-179) testified having sold the
'churidar' to Dhanu from his shop.
He has
identified the dress sold by him and worn by Dhanu in the photograph (MO-31).
M. Gunankhalal Soni (PW-179) identified Subha and Nalini (A-1) in photograph
(MO-105) and also Nalini (A-1) in the court as one of the two women who came
along with Dhanu.
In the
morning of 19.5.1991 Nalini (A-1), Subha and Dhanu went to Mahabalipuram and
returned in the evening when they found that Sivarasan was waiting for them in
the house of Nalini (A-1). He showed them the clipping of an evening Tamil
newspaper in which the visit of Rajiv Gandhi to Tamil Nadu in connection with
the election campaign was published.
Nalini
(A-1) found Sivarasan tense and excited. He said that "they had come only
for that and that we should attend his meeting on 21st or 22nd, whether at
Pondicherry or Sriperumbudur". He asked Nalini (A-1) to apply for two
days' leave. Sivarasan's presence at the house of Nalini (A-1) at that odd
hour, his excitement and his command gave Nalini (A-1) a feeling of terror.
She, however, managed to tell him that it would be difficult to apply for two
days' leave and go to Pondicherry and that she would be able to visit the
nearest point. Sivarasan said that he would decide about the venue the next
day. Nalini (A-1) now had a strong feeling that Rajiv Gandhi was their final
target.
Sivarasan
again came to the house of Nalini (A-1) on the morning of 20.5.1991 and said
that he would inform her about the venue in the evening. He told her to go to
Royapettah house in the evening at about 6.30 p.m. He asked her where
Sriperumbudur was and when she told him that she would make inquiries and let
him know he said sternly that on no account she should discuss that matter with
any one and that he would himself find out about Sriperumbudur. Sivarasan told
Nalini (A-1) to apply for leave on some pretext but not for Sriperumbudur
meeting. Then he left along with Dhanu and Subha. Nalini (A-1) went to
Royapettah house in the evening. Sivarasan also came there and told her that
venue was Sriperumbudur and that she need take only half day's leave on
21.5.1991 and should be available at her house positively at 3.00 p.m. sharp.
He said he would come along with Dhanu and Subha and pick her up. At that time
Haribabu had also come to Royapettah house since message was left at his house
by Murugan (A-3) to go there. Murugan (A-3) was also present as he had returned
to Madras and told Nalini (A-1) that he could not go to Sri Lanka. After
getting instructions to return to Sri Lanka on 11.5.1991 Murugan (A-3) after
purchasing certain articles and getting letters from Subha and Dhanu (Exh. P-95
and P-96) and from Bhagyanathan (A-20) (Exh. P-453) went to Kodiakkarai. He
also carried a dress given by Arivu (A-18) for Baby Subramaniam and negatives
of photographs of Chennai Fort, D.G.P. Office. At Kodiakkarai he had met
Shankar (A-4) and while returning he gave him piece of paper containing his
name and that of Nalini (A-1) and also her telephone number 419493. He waited
there till 17.5.1991 and as no boat came from Sri Lanka he returned to Madras
after leaving his articles in boxes at Kodiakkarai. These boxes contained the
two letters by Subha and Dhanu and that one written by Bhagyanathan (A20) to
Baby Subramaniam. Murugan (A-3) reached Madras on 18.5.1991.
When
the meeting disbursed Haribabu told Nalini (A-1) that he was also coming to
Sriperumbudur next day, i.e, 21.5.1991. After Murugan (A-3) returned from
Kodiakkarai on 18.5.1991 he was staying with Nalini (A-1).
On the
morning of 21.5.1991 while Nalini (A-1) went to her office Murugan (A3) went to
Royapettah house. In the meeting Arivu (A-18) and Bhagyanathan (A-20) were also
present. Arivu (A-18) gave a Kodak colour film to Haribabu.
Nalini
(A-1) told her boss that she wanted half day's leave. She was told that she
need not take leave and could go after finishing her work. She, however, told
her colleague N. Sujaya Narayan (PW-96) that she was going to Kanchipuram for
buying sarees. Sriperumbudur is mid way between Madras and Kanchipuram. After
Nalini (A-1) left her office at about 2.00 p.m. she went to Royapettah house.
She
found only Murugan (A3) was present there. Murugan (A-3) told her to hurry and
go to her house otherwise Sivarasan would get annoyed. Nalini (A-1) reached her
house at 3.00 p.m. At 3.45 p.m. Sivarasan came there along with Subha and
Dhanu. He was wearing a white loose 'kurta' and narrow 'pyjama' and was
carrying a note pad and a camera in his hand. Subha was wearing a green colour
saree which had been purchased earlier. Dhanu was wearing loose fitting green
colour 'kameez', orange colour 'churidar' and a green colour dupatta which had
been purchased earlier from the market. Subha told Nalini (A-1) that Dhanu was
going to create history that day by assassinating Rajiv Gandhi and they would
he very happy if Nalini (A-1) also participated in that. Nalini (A-1) agreed.
She could see that Dhanu was concealing an apparatus under her dress. Nalini
(A-1) wore a saree. At about 4.00 p.m. they all left in an auto rikshaw. Dhanu
said that she would go to temple for her final prayers. They went to Pillayar
Temple near Nadamuni Theatre and Dhanu offered prayers. Before leaving the
house Nalini (A-1) left her keys with Rani (PW-90), her neighbour, whom she
told that she was going to Vellore. They went to Parrys Corner and reached
Thiruvalluvar bus stand around 5.00 p.m. Haribabu was already there. He had
purchased a sandalwood garland which was wrapped in a brown cover. This garland
was purchased in the morning by Haribabu from Poompuhar Handicrafts, Madras. It
was sold to him by A.K. Anbalagan (PW-94). He was also having a camera. This
was the camera (MO-1) which was found at the scene of the crime and had been
borrowed from K. Ravi Shankar (PW-151).
Thereafter
they boarded a bus for Sriperumbudur. For all five, tickets were purchased by
Sivarasan. They reached Sriperumbudur at about 7.30 p.m. They purchased
flowers.
Dhanu
purchased Kanakambaram, Subha and Nalini (A1) purchased Jasmine. They ate their
dinner and started towards the meeting point where Rajiv Gandhi was to address
a meeting. On the way they stopped near Indira Gandhi statue and discussed
their roles. Nalini (A-1) was to help Subha after the assassination to take
refuge in some city till Sivarasan gave further instructions. Haribabu was to take
photographs of the assassination scene. Nalini (A-1) was also to provide cover
to both Subha and Dhanu during the event. After the event Nalini (A-1) and
Subha were to wait for ten minutes near Indira Gandhi statue for Sivarasan. If
he did not come they would push off as instructed before.
Subha,
Dhanu and Nalini (A-1) went to the ladies enclosure in the meeting and sat
there. Haribabu and Sivarasan went separately towards the stage. Music
programme of C.S. Ganesh (PW-18) was going on at that time. After surveying the
scene Sivarasan came and called Dhanu. Subha, who was having the garland
parcel, given to her by Haribabu, handed over the same to Dhanu. She opened the
parcel and took out the garland. Dhanu and Sivarasan then went back near the
dais. Nalini (A-1) could see them with Haribabu. Sivarasan was also trying to
put Dhanu in the crowd of people who were waiting to greet Rajiv Gandhi. There
were a mother and daughter sitting in the women enclosure behind where Subha
and Nalini (A-1) were sitting. The mother was telling that her daughter had
written a poem which she would recite to Rajiv Gandhi. After some time both
daughter and mother were seen standing near Dhanu, who was talking to the
daughter and appeared to befriend her. About 9.30 p.m. there was announcement
that all persons who were waiting to garland and greet Rajiv Gandhi might make
a queue near the carpet.
Dhanu
was standing between the mother and daughter. After some time announcement was
made that Rajiv Gandhi was coming. Thereafter Rajiv Gandhi arrived. Subha and
Nalini (A-1) got up from the ladies enclosure and moved away.
Subha
was holding the hand of Nalini (A-1) and was nervous.
There
was a loud explosion. Dhanu exploded herself. Nalini (A-1) and Subha ran across
to the Indira Gandhi statue as instructed earlier by Sivarasan and waited for
him. Soon thereafter Sivarasan came running there. He told that both Rajiv
Gandhi and Dhanu had died and said that unfortunately Haribabu also died.
Sivarasan took out a pistol wrapped in a white cloth and gave it to Nalini
(A-1) to be given to Subha. Nalini (A-1) handed over that pistol to Subha. They
came to the bus stand and saw there was a bus but they were told that that bus
would not be leaving. They ran further down the road and saw a lady Samundeeswari
(PW-215) who was standing outside a house. They requested her and were given
water to drink. They were able to reach Madras by changing two auto rikshaws.
Last auto rikshaw was driven by K. Vardarajan (PW-183). They reached
Kodungaiyur at 1.30 a.m.
in the
night of 21/22.5.1991. Jayakumar (A-10) and his wife Shanthi (A-11) were in the
house. Nalini (A-1) met them for the first time. They spent night there. Nalini
(A-1) and Subha were quite upset that Haribabu had unexpectedly also died in
the blast. Subha told Nalini (A-1) that it was she who had personally prepared
Dhanu to put the belt on her waist containing the bomb. The bomb had two
switches and for it to explode Dhanu had pressed one switch after another. The
bomb contained a small battery for electric circuit. On the morning of
22.5.1991 Santhan (A-2) brought some newspapers. At about 7.30 a.m. they all
went to the house of D.J. Swaminathan (PW-85), a neighbour, to watch TV news.
The whole day they spent in the house of Jayakumar (A-10).
On the
morning of 23.5.1991 Sivarasan left the house and came back at about 8.30 a.m.
on a red Kawasaki Bajaj motor cycle. He dropped Nalini (A-1) to her office on
the motor cycle. Since the office on that day was not working Nalini (A-1) went
to Royapettah house to her mother. She learnt that in the morning Sivarasan had
come there and gave details of the incident to Murugan (A-3) and Bhagyanathan
(A-20). In the evening Nalini (A-1) accompanied by Murugan (A-3) went to her
house at Villivakkam. She got the key of the house from Rani (PW-90).
On the
morning of 25.5.1991 Sivarasan told Nalini (A-1) that they all should go out of
Madras and go to Tirupathi. Nalini (A-1) and Murugan (A-3) after locking the
house and handing over the key to Rani (PW-90) went to Royapettah house. In the
afternoon Sivarasan, Nalini (A-1), Murugan (A-3), Padma (A-21) and Subha went
in a tourist taxi to Tirupathi. They returned on the next day. In Tirupathi
Nalini (A-1) did Angapradakshnam. Rooms in Tirupathi were taken in the name of
taxi driver V. Ramasmy (PW-107). Taxi was arranged by Bhagyanathan (A-20) from
Sriram Travels of R. Shankar (PW-117) and S. Vaidyanathan (PW-104). It was on
the suggestion of Sivarasan that nobody would suspect if Padma (A-21) also
accompanied them to Tirupathi. Before leaving for Tirupathi Nalini (A-1) went
to her neighbour Gajalakshmi (PW-189) and told her that she had arranged for
Abhishekam at Pillaiyar Temple for 26.5.1991 and that as she would not be
available Gajalakshmi (PW-189) might attend the Abhishekam. While going to
Tirupathi Sivarasan and Subha were picked up from Parrys Corner and on return
they were dropped there. Padma (A-21) went to her Royapettah house.
Murugan
(A-3) and Nalini (A-1) went to Villivakkam house where they packed up their
belongings and came to stay at Royapettah house. Murugan (A-3) arranged a house
for him at Madipakkam on 28.5.1991 where Nalini (A-1) and he could hide.
However, he started staying in the press of Bhagyanathan (A-20). Nalini (A-1)
continued to attend her office till 7.6.1991. On 7.6.1991 she gave a plastic
cover containing Rs.25,000/- to her colleague N. Sujaya Narayan (PW-96) and
requested her to keep the same in her table drawer. Three days earlier Murugan
(A-3) had come to the office of Nalini (A-1) and took her to a lady doctor to
know if Nalini (A-1) was pregnant. That day they stayed in Madipakkam house. On
6.6.1991 Nalini (A-1) asked her sister Kalyani to go to Villivakkam house and
settle the rent arrears with the landlord there. On 7.6.1991 as per earlier programme
Nalini (A-1) and Murugan (A-3) went to Ashtalaxmi temple at Besant Nagar where
Subha and Sivarasan also came.
Sivarasan
said that CBI was making detailed inquiries and invited Nalini (A-1) to go to
Sri Lanka with him. Nalini (A-1) declined. He then told her to take Subha to a
doctor as she was very weak. Nalini (A-1) took Subha to Asian Hospital at
Besant Nagar and doctor advised her to take rest and prescribed some medicines.
Sivarasan and Subha then left by an auto. Nalini (A-1) and Murugan (A-3) also
returned. Nalini (A-1) went to see the lady doctor, who confirmed that she was
pregnant.
On the
morning of 8.6.1991 Nalini (A-1) suggested to her mother that they all should
commit suicide. This was because of the fear that CBI was looking for them.
Nalini (A-1) brought some poison from a nearby shop but then they decided not
to commit suicide. She and Murugan (A-3) decided to go out of Madras. On the
morning of 9.6.1991 Nalini (A-1) went to her office. It was Sunday. She took
out the amount of Rs.25,000/- kept by N. Sujaya Narayan (PW-96) in her table
drawer. Nalini (A-1) then wrote a resignation letter (Exh. P-471) on a slip of
paper and kept it on the table of N. Sujaya Narayan (PW-96). She handed over
the key of her office to maid servant of N. Sujaya Narayan (PW-96). She did not
attend the office from 10.6.1991. Murugan (A-3) and she left for Tirupathi by
bus and stayed there in a lodge. The lodge was taken in an assumed name
"Lalitha with one other". Murugan (A-3) tonsured his head. On
11.6.1991 they left Tirupathi and went to Madurai and stayed in the house of R.
Ravi Srinivasan (PW-115). Nalini (A-1) had known to R. Ravi Srinivasan (PW-115)
as she had worked with him as his steno.
Before
coming to the house of R. Ravi Srinivasan (PW-115) Nalini (A-1) had called him
up from Tirupathi on phone and asked him whether she could stay with her
husband in his house for few days. Nalini (A-1) told R. Ravi Srinivasan
(PW-115) that she had married one Sri Lankan citizen and introduced Murugan
(A-3) as her brother-in-law by name Raju.
While
they were all sitting for breakfast a telephone call came for Muthupandian, who
was sub-inspector of police. R.
Ravi
Srinivasan (PW-115) sent his maid servant to call Muthupandian. He was,
however, not in his house. Nalini (A-1) was quite perplexed when she asked R.
Ravi Srinivasan (PW-115) how he knew the police. He told her that Muthupandian
was his neighbour and he had given the telephone number of R. Ravi Srinivasan
(PW-115). He then asked Nalini (A-1) as to why she was afraid of police to
which she replied that since she had married a Sri Lankan and her parents did
not like that and that they had lodged a complaint with the police.
On the
morning of 12.6.1991 Nalini (A-1) woke up and told R. Ravi Srinivasan (PW-115)
that they were going to Meenakshi Temple and will come back later. When the
newspapers came that day R. Ravi Srinivasan (PW-115) found a notice published
with the caption "Do you know these women, who are connected with Rajiv's
assassination". In that notice there was description of Nalini (A-1)
mentioned.
R.
Ravi Srinivasan (PW-115) gave information on telephone to SIT at about 10.00
a.m. Nalini (A-1) and Murugan (A-3), however, did not return from the temple.
Murugan (A-3) had left his cap (MO-395) in the house which R. Ravi Srinivasan
(PW-115) handed over to the police. From Madurai Nalini (A-1) and Murugan (A-3)
went to Villupuram and then to Devangere near Bangalore on 13.6.1991 and stayed
there in the house of Sasikala (PW-132). There Nalini (A-1) introduced Murugan
(A-3) as her brother-in-law Thas (Doss) to Sasikala (PW-132). Sasikala (PW-132)
met Nalini (A-1) earlier in a common acquaintance house and had conversed with
her. Nalini (A-1) told Sasikala (PW-132) that she was two months pregnant.
Husband of Sasikala (PW-132) came to the house in the evening. He asked Nalini
(A-1) how and when she got married. Nalini (A-1) said it was a long story and
it would take time to narrate. While she was narrating her story Murugan (A-3)
stopped her mid way and said they had to go to Madras urgently. During the
course of their stay Nalini (A-1) told Sasikala (PW-132) that her husband was a
Sri Lankan citizen and that he had brought two girls to see Madras. Sasikala
(PW-132) in her statement then says as under :
"Then
Nalini told me that she showed them beach and market. Then Nalini told me that
those girls told her that they have to see Rajiv Gandhi's meeting which is to
be held at Sriperumbudur on May 21, 1991 and so that she took them to the Rajiv
Gandhi meeting and one girl died in it. Nalini told me that since the police
had suspected her husband, he gave the sum of Rupees twenty five thousand and
asked her to go with his brother and later he will come and bring her. She told
me that her husband told her that he will come and take her after the election
was over and there will be tight police security in the seashore. Nalini told
me that since the police suspect them, they came to this area. On hearing this
I was frightened. Then my husband came to our house I told him about this
matter, separately. He also frightened. Then Thas told us that we should not
tell about this with anybody else." Both Nalini (A-1) and Murugan (A-3)
left for the bus stand and were dropped there by husband of Sasikala (PW-132).
While
at Sasikala's (PW-132) place they bought new cloths.
Nalini
(A-1) left behind in the house of Sasikala (PW-132) her old dress which was
seized by the CBI (Exh. P-634) and later identified in court by Sasikala
(PW-132) as that of Nalini (A-1). Sasikala (PW-132) identified both Nalini
(A-1) and Murugan (A-3) as the persons who stayed in her house. Sasikala
(PW-132) also said that Nalini (A-1) told her that her husband had brought two
girls from Sri Lanka to Madras for sight seeing. After being dropped at the bus
stand Nalini (A-1) and Murugan (A-3) came to Bangalore.
From
there they picked up a bus for Villupuram and from Villupuram to Madras. It was
on 14.6.1991 when they got down at Saidapet bus stand, Madras they were
arrested.
Confession
of Bhagyanathan (A-20) bears out what Nalini (A-1) said in her confession.
Apart from the fact that we find truthfulness in the version given by Nalini
(A-1), it also stands corroborated by material particulars.
We may
briefly note what Bhagyanathan (A-20) said in his confession. In 1988 he got
acquainted with Muthuraja, an Indian and strong LTTE sympathizer. It was
through Muthuraja that Baby Subramaniam became known to Bhagyanathan (A-20)
when he was working at Suba Studio. Various persons connected with LTTE used to
come to Suba Studio to meet Baby Subramaniam. In the course of time
Bhagyanathan (A-20) was also attracted towards LTTE. In 1989 Bhagyanathan
(A-20) used to stay in the house of Muthuraja during nights. He then came in
contact with Arivu (A-18), a diploma holder in Electronics and Communications.
Arivu (A-18) was meeting Baby Subramaniam everyday. He was selling books and
collecting news for the political propaganda wing of LTTE.
Baby
Subramanian was senior member of LTTE and was incharge of political wing of
LTTE in Tamil Nadu. At the suggestion of Muthuraja, Bhagyanathan (A-20)
purchased the press being run by Baby Subramaniam in 1990. He bought it for a
petty sum of Rs.5,000/- though he purportedly bought it for Rs.51,000/-. He was
told not to pay the balance amount and instead he was required to print
monthlies of Tamileelam and Urumal which were being published from the press.
Baby Subramaniam left for Srilanka in the end of May, 1990.
Arivu
(A-18) and Irumborai (A-19) also went along with him.
They,
however, returned after about four or five months.
Irumborai
(A-19) came to be known to Bhagyanathan (A-20) through Baby Subramaniam as he
was also in the political wing of LTTE.
During
last months of 1990 State Government had taken strong steps against LTTE
because of the killing of EPRLF leader Padmanabha and his associates at Madras.
It had become difficult for LTTE to operate freely in India and now they were
doing so clandestinely. Arivu (A-18) and Irumborai (A-19) when on their return
came from Sri Lanka brought with them photographs and literature published by
LTTE showing weapons seized by LTTE from IPKF. These were distributed by Arivu
(A-18) to Tamil magazines and to various supporters of LTTE movement. LTTE was
having a office of its political wing in Madras which was sealed and some
persons were arrested by the police. That was around November, 1990. According
to Bhagyanathan (A-20) it was at the instance of Muthuraja that he allowed
Murugan (A-3) to reside with their family at Royapettah house though that was initially
objected by Padma (A-21). Murugan (A-3) told Bhagyanathan (A-20) that he had
come to India to learn English. Subsequently, however, he told him that he
belonged to Intelligence Wing of LTTE under the charge of Pottu Amman.
Bhagyanathan (A-20) was put in fear, the time he purchased the press from Baby
Subramaniam that he and his family might have to face consequences if he
operated against LTTE.
When
Murugan (A-3) needed a person to assist him Bhagyanathan (A-20) introduced
Haribabu to him. Haribabu had also worked with Suba Sundaram (A-22) as
photographer.
He was
also known to Muthuraja and was interested in LTTE.
He
would come to the meetings conducted in support of LTTE, take photographs and
give them to Suba Sundaram (A-22) and Muthuraja. He was being paid anything
from Rs.100/- to Rs.1000/- a month.
In
April, 1991 there was change of Government and LTTE men were searched and
arrested with the result that Arivu (A-18) also started residing in Royapettah
house.
Murugan
(A-3) joined English speaking course in an institute in Madras. At the request
of Muthuraja LTTE publications, photographs and posters were shifted, which
were kept in the house of M. Sankari (PW-210), to the house of V. Radhakrishnan
(PW-231) (MO594 to 632). The material which was shifted included the 'Black
Book' (B.B.) in three volumes. In the third volume (MO-609) there was a diagram
of electric circuit. Prosecution has tried to infer that the electric circuit
used in the waist belt-bomb to kill Rajiv Gandhi was identical to the diagram
in MO-609. The material was shifted by Arivu (A-18), Bhagyanathan (A-20) and
Haribabu. P. Vadivelu (PW-202) is a tempo driver in whose tempo the material
was shifted from the house of M. Sankari (PW-210) to the house of V.
Radhakrishnan (PW-231). V. Radhakrishnan (PW-231) is working in the Customs
Department of the State Government. He was familiar with Arivu (A-18) and Suba
Sundaram (A-22). In January, 1991 Arivu (A-18) had asked him for a house for
keeping his books. V. Radhakrishnan (PW-231) told him that he was not having
any house at Madras but had one in his village.
Arivu
(A-18) agreed for that house and in March, he sent his books in a tempo with
two persons. When the books were being kept there Arivu (A-18) had also come.
After seeing that the books related to LTTE movement V. Radhakrishnan (PW-231)
asked Arivu (A-18) to remove those books on which Arivu (A-18) said that he
would do so within a month or two months time. A sum of Rs.50/- was paid by him
to the mother of V. Radhakrishnan (PW-231) towards rent. All this material was
subsequently seized by the police.
Various
persons connected with LTTE activities in Tamil Nadu came to be known to
Bhagyanathan (A-20) since they used to come either to meet Suba Sundaram (A-22)
or Baby Subramaniam or Murugan (A-3). In his letter (Exh.P-453) Bhagyanathan
(A-20) to Baby Subramaniam said that he was running the press properly though
he had shifted the press to another place and that he had informed Arivu (A-18)
about that and he was keeping contact with him. He also described the working
of the press. The letter was recovered during course of investigation.
Bhagyanathan (A-20) learnt about the attending the meeting of Rajiv Gandhi and
Jayalalitha and of V.P. Singh and also about Subha and Dhanu from his sister
Nalini (A-1). Bhagyanathan (A-20) in his confession said that around 7.00 p.m.
on 20.5.1991 Haribabu came to their house when K. Bharathi (PW-233), his other
sister Kalyani, Nalini (A-1), Murugan (A-3), Arivu (A-18) and he were there in
the house. He said at the instance of Haribabu he did get from Arivu (A18) a
Kodak colour roll which he handed over to Haribabu. But there is no charge
against Bhagyanathan (A-20) that he handed over the film roll to Haribabu.
Rather this charge is against Arivu (A-18) of handing over the Kodak colour
film roll to Haribabu. According to Bhagyanathan (A-20) on 23.5.1991 when
Nalini (A-1) came to Royapettah house she told him as to how Sivarasan asked
her to take leave on 21.5.1991; how they all went to Sriperumbudur by bus when
during travel from Madras to Sriperumbudur Nalini (A-1) came to know that Dhanu
was about to assassinate Rajiv Gandhi;
how
after reaching the place of meeting Sivarasan took Dhanu with him and by paying
Rs.500/- to woman constable they moved to the front row and Haribabu took
photos; and finally how they escaped after the blast. On 21.5.1991 Bhagyanathan
(A-20) and Arivu (A-18) had gone to see a movie at 9.30 p.m.
and
when they returned they came to know that Rajiv Gandhi had been assassinated.
After reaching home they informed Murugan (A-3) and others about this. Murugan
(A-3) did not express any surprise or shock. Next morning video and audio
cassettes belonging to Arivu (A-18) were removed from Royapettah house and
taken to the house of Veeramani, a friend of Arivu (A-18).
On
23.5.1991 Sivarasan came to Royapettah house and informed the death of
Haribabu. Arivu (A-18) and Murugan (A-3) were there at that time. Bhagyanathan
(A20) and Arivu (A-18) went to Subha Studio to get the address of Haribabu.
Murugan
(A3) sent Rs.1000/- to the family of Haribabu which money was handed over by
Bhagyanathan (A-20) there. At this stage Bhagyanathan (A-20) also learnt that
Haribabu had taken a camera from K. Ravi Shankar (PW-151) to get photograph of
garlanding Rajiv Gandhi as was told by Haribabu to K. Ravi Shankar (PW-151).
When Bhagyanathan (A-20) told this fact to Suba Sundaram (A-22) he said not to
open his mouth in this regard. But Ravi Shanker (PW-151) does not say of any
conversation he had with Haribabu when he took the camera (MO-1). Bhagyanathan
(A-20) said that he compelled his mother Padma (A-21) to go to Tirupathy along
with Nalini (A-1), Murugan (A-3), Sivarasan and Subha in the car arranged by
him. He burnt LTTE stickers and Prabhakaran's stickers.
On 25.5.1991
Dhanu's photo, which had been taken by Haribabu, was published in the papers.
On 26.5.1991 Sivarasan's photo was published. On 27.5.1991 Murugan (A-3) asked
Bhagyanathan (A-20) to meet Sivarasan at Mount Road Post Office. They both went
by auto. Sivarasan gave Bhagyanathan (A-20) the motor cycle key and a bag
containing documents of the motor cycle and asked him to take away the motor
cycle (MO-82) and conceal it, which had been parked nearby. He warned them that
even though he was not there they may be watched by somebody. He also said that
he would arrange a cyanide capsule for Nalini (A-1). Fearing arrest by the
police Bhagyanathan (A-20) allowed Murugan (A-3) to stay in his press for four
or five days. Thereafter he was arrested by the police.
MO-82
Kawasaki Bajaj Motorcycle used by Sivarasan was subsequently seized by the
police during investigation from the press of Bhagyanathan (A-20).
We may
at this stage note a letter (Exh. P-128) dated 7.9.1991 written by Trichi
Santhan (deceased accused) to Irumborai (A-19) when he was on his way to Sri
Lanka.
This
letter was seized from Irumborai (A-19). In this Trichy Santhan gave
instructions to Irumborai (A-19) what he was to tell Prabhakaran in Sri Lanka.
Photocopy of this letter is Exh.P-131. But another letter (Exh.P-129) which was
seized from Irumborai (A-19) was one addressed by Trichy Santhan to
Prabhakaran. He is complaining about the mishandling of the whole affair by
Sivarasan and about other things. Letter of Irumborai (A-19) gives him instructions
as to what he should tell prabhakaran and what he should not. Some of these
instructions are :- "Don't speak as though you knew in advance about
Rajiv's incident.
Speak
about the persons who are monthly paid, because we are caught only while going
to make payments to them.
Speak
about the prevailing political situation/also about the leader.
Speak
in details about the mistake committed in our association with the supporters
of Raghuvaran like Arivu/person connected with the press of Baby Anna/
Haribabu/Subha Sundaram. Name of the movement would not have come to light, had
it been done through our own people as done in Padmanabha's case. Movement
behind Arivu, Subha Sundaram and presence of our emblems in the press are these
not evidence?" From these instructions prosecution wants to infer that
Irumborai (A-19) was member of the conspiracy to kill Rajiv Gandhi and so was
Trichy Santhan (DA), Arivu (A-18), Haribabu Suba Sundaram (A-22) and perhaps
Bhagyanathan (A-20), who was running the press earlier run by Baby Subramaniam.
We, however, do not think that advantage can be drawn by the prosecution from
this letter. It is a post-conspiracy letter. It does not show if Trichy Santhan
was a conspirator. There is no evidence of Trichy Santhan being a member of the
conspiracy to kill Rajiv Gandhi. He was one of the persons who committed
suicide in Bangalore.
Then
any knowledge of conspiracy is not enough to implicate a person as a member of
the conspiracy.
Padma
(A-21) did not know if Murugan (A-3) was an LTTE activist when he came to stay
in her house at the instance of Muthuraja, who told her that his house was
being watched by police. Only later on she came to know that Murugan (A-3) was
an LTTE activist. He helped her financially as financial condition of Padma (A-21)
was not sound. Padma (A-21) had even borrowed money from M.
Chandra
(PW-214) (Rs.4000/-), who was working as a maid in the neighbourhood of Kalyani
Nursing Home, where Padma (A-21) was working and where her employer had been
admitted.
This
amount Padma (A-21) returned three months prior to the death of Rajiv Gandhi.
Padma (A-21) had also borrowed money from R. Janaki (PW-226) whom she knew.
This amount she returned in the month of March, 1991. From the notebook of
Murugan (A-3) (MO-286), which was seized during the course of investigation,
the amounts paid by him to Padma (A-21) have been mentioned. Padma (A-21)
introduced Murugan (A-3) to K. Bharathi (PW-233) as the boy who had been sent
by Muthuraja and had come from Tirunelveli to learn English.
Whenever
Sivarasan came to the house of Padma (A-21) she found that Sivarasan, Murugan
(A-3), Arivu (A-18) and Bhagyanathan (A-20) "used to discuss matters in
low tone".
On
20.5.1991 a day before the assassination of Rajiv Gandhi Dhanu had sprain in
her leg. Nalini (A-1) suggested Sivarasan to take Subha and Dhanu to Kalyani
Nursing Home for treatment of Dhanu where her mother Padma (A-21) was working.
K. Rajalakshmi (PW-76), who was working as a pharmacist in Kalyani Medical
Centre, stated on the basis of the records maintained in the Centre that six
tablets of Brufen were given to Padma (A-21) on 20.5.1991. Sivarasan asked
Padma (A-21) to prescribe medicine for Dhanu as she was having sprain in her
leg. Dhanu, however, refused to show her leg. She asked for pain-killer. She
was given six brufen tablets. Later in the evening at about 8.30 p.m. on
20.5.1991 when Padma (A-21) came back home she learnt through Kalyani, K.
Bharathi (PW-233) and Arivu (A-18) that Nalini (A-1), Murugan (A3) and Haribabu
had come and after finishing their dinner they had left. Sivarasan also met
Nalini (A-1) in the house. Next day Padma (A-21) returned from her duty at 4.00
p.m. After Arivu (A-18) and Bhagyanathan (A-20) came back from the late night
show they told her that Rajiv Gandhi had been assassinated in a bomb blast. On
23.5.1991 Nalini (A-1) when came to the Royapettah house she informed Padma
(A-21) that she had gone along with Sivarasan, Subha, Dhanu and Haribabu to
Sriperumbudur on the night of 21.5.1991 for Rajiv Gandhi's assassination. This
made Padma (A-21) worried. She was more concerned about Nalini (A-1) and
Murugan (A-3). When on the morning of 24.5.1991 Dhanu's photo was published in
the papers Padma (A-21) was frightened and was in fear of her arrest. On
26.5.1991 after return from Tirupathi Nalini (A-1) vacated her Villivakkam
house and she and Murugan (A-3) came to the house of Padma (A-21). From
27.5.1991 onwards Nalini (A-1) was going to her office while Murugan (A-3) was
staying in the house. On 27.5.1991 Murugan (A-3) gave Padma (A-21) one Code
Sheet belonging to LTTE, meant for transmitting secret messages through
wireless, so that it might not be seized by the police. He asked her to keep
that safely hidden. Padma (A-21) gave that Code Sheet to her co-nurse Devasena
Raj (PW-73) for safe custody.
Devasena
Raj (PW-73) in her statement said that it was on the morning of 7.5.1991 when
she was going for duty that Padma (A-21) asked her to keep one brown cover in
her locker. Padma (A-21) said it was important. MO-106 is the brown cover and
papers which were in the cover are MO-107 and MO-108. These were taken into
possession by the police during investigation. Both Padma (A-21) and
Bhagyanathan (A20) were arrested on 12.6.1991. There is a wireless message
dated 12.6.1991 sent by Sivarasan from Wireless Station 910 to Station 91 of
Pottu Amman which reads "the brother of officer-girl, her mother were
arrested".
Reference
to office-girl is to Nalini (A1).
Murugan
(A-3) is a Srilankan national. He joined LTTE movement in 1988. He is hardcore
LTTE activist. He took training in shooting, drill, political classes and
weaponary. He used to train new entrants. He spent two months in Yalpanam
(Jaffna) fort and was also guarding the prison there. He subjected prisoners to
torture in order to elicit information. Over thirty persons died due to the
torture inflicted on them by various methods. Murugan (A-3) in his confession
described the set up of LTTE. He said, among them, Prabhakaran (absconding
accused) was the world leader, Mathiah was political leader, Pottu Amman
(absconding accused) was leader of spy wing and the man incharge of military
was Palraj. Shanthi was incharge of intelligence wing of women in LTTE and her
next in command was Akila (absconding accused). Murugan (A-3) told Pottu Amman
that he did not like the job he was doing. Pottu Amman asked him to go to India
for an important job. In January, 1991 Murugan (A-3) joined the suicide squad
of LTTE. He was given the job of procuring the sketch of the interior of Chennai
Fort, Police Headquarters at Chennai and various other police stations with
their locations. He was also asked to take photographs and videographs of those
places. He was given two gold biscuits weighing one kilo each and a sum of
Rs.2000/- in cash. He was told that when he reached Indian soil he would be met
by Sivarasan who would take him to Kanthan at Madras. Kanthan would arrange a
house for him and if any news were to be given by Murugan (A-3), these were to
be sent through wireless set of Kanthan and if any further amount was required
Kanthan was to give the same. In the third week of January, 1991 Murugan (A-3)
reached Kodiakkarai on Indian soil. Along with him one Mukunthan came, who was
a smuggler. Sivarasan met him there. He told him that though his name was
Raghuvaran he was having the name of Sivarasan in India and should be called by
that name. From there both Sivarasan and Murugan (A-3) came to Madras and went
to the house of Robert Payas (A-9). Kanthan met Murugan (A-3) in the house of
Robert Payas (A-9). He was having a red colour Yamaha motorcycle.
Kanthan
and Sivarasan were quite close to each other. One Nisanthan was assisting
Kanthan. After staying in the house of Robert Payas (A-9) for five days, in the
first week of February, 1991 arrangements for his stay in Royapettah house of
Padma (A-21) were made. This was as per plan of Muthuraja as stated by Murugan
(A-3). Here Murugan (A-3) came in contact with Nalini (A-1) and other members
of the family. Murugan (A3) did go to an institute for learning English for two
or three days and thereafter he stopped.
Because
of his influence Nalini (A-1) became very much attracted to LTTE movement. In
March, 1991 Sivarasan asked Murugan (A-3) to find out from Padma (A21) if she
would come with him to Delhi to arrange a house for their stay. Padma (A-21)
did not agree. When Sivarasan asked Murugan (A-3) about this he felt that there
was some plan for serious act like murder. However, he did not ask for any
details from Sivarasan. On his request Bhagyanathan (A-20) introduced Haribabu
as his confidential man to Murugan (A-3). In the third week of February, 1991
Murugan (A-3) and Haribabu went to Vellore and saw the Fort where certain
persons belonging to LTTE were arrested and detained. Haribabu of his own went
to Vellore three or four times and collected the structure of the jail
interiors and maps as desired by Murugan (A-3). These were sent to Pottu Amman
through Kanthan's code message. Murugan (A-3) was snubbed that he should do
that work only which was entrusted to him at Madras and he was to do his duty
without questioning. Pottu Amman told Murugan (A-3) that if he was asked to
watch a particular shop he should not watch the next shop. Haribabu was doing
the job of taking photographs and videograph of St. George Fort, Chennai, Fort
buildings, DGP Office, Police stations and their locations. Murugan (A-3) asked
Bhagyanathan (A20) and Arivu (A-18) also to take photographs of these places.
After collecting the same he sent them to Sri Lanka. In the last week of March,
1991 Sivarasan asked Murugan (A3) that he had plan to garland Rajiv Gandhi for
the first time in a public meeting and asked him if he could arrange for an
Indian girl for that purpose. When the name of Rajiv Gandhi was mentioned
Murugan (A-3) understood that the next target was Rajiv Gandhi. As Rajiv Gandhi
was responsible for the atrocities committed by IPKF, there were strong
feelings among the women folk to wreak vengeance on him. Murugan (A-3)
understood that Sivarasan had come with a plan to murder Rajiv Gandhi but
Sivarasan neither told that nor confirmed about that to Murugan (A-3). Murugan
(A-3) said he would arrange for an Indian girl. Nalini (A-1) was thus thought
of. Again in the first week of May, 1991 Sivarasan told Murugan (A-3) that he
had brought two girls Subha and Dhanu from Sri Lanka and he required an Indian
girl for him to finish the job as both Subha and Dhanu would speak Tamil in Sri
Lankan dialect and in order to mix with the crowd without any suspicion he felt
the need of an Indian Tamil girl. They then decided to make use of Nalini
(A-1). Murugan (A-3) knew Subha and Dhanu as the women working with LTTE.
Murugan (A-3) attended public meeting of Rajiv Gandhi and Jayalalitha on
18.4.1991 along with Nalini (A-1) at Madras. Haribabu had also come to that
meeting and took photographs of Jayalalitha and Rajiv Gandhi. Murugan (A-3),
Subha, Dhanu, Haribabu and Nalini (A-1) went to the public meeting of V.P.
Singh on 7.5.1991.
That
was to rehearse if Dhanu and Subha could go to the dais and garland V.P. Singh.
Nalini (A-1) was assigned to take photographs. This was a "dry run".
A fabricated press accredited card prepared by Haribabu was given to Murugan
(A-3) (Exh. P-521). This press accredited card with Murugan's (A-3) photo and
name was seized from the house taken on rent by Murugan (A-3) at Madiapakkam.
Forged press accreditation photo card was also given by Haribabu to Sivarasan.
This was for them to gain access to VIP. When Murugan (A-3) got instructions to
go to Sri Lanka he purchased some articles and got collected other things. He
reached Kodiakkarai on the Indian soil on 14.5.1991 and stayed there upto
17.5.1991. Since no boat came he returned to Madras. The boxes which he was
carrying he left at Kodiakkarai with M. Mariappan (PW-86), an employee of
Shanmugham(DA). Those were subsequently recovered and seized and letters
written by Subha, Dhanu and Bhagyanathan (A-20) (Exh. P-95, P-96 and P-453)
were found. Two volumes of "Satanic Force" (MO-125 and 126), video
cassettes showing various parts of Fort St. George (MO-323), photographs of DGP
Office etc. (Mos-256-259) were also found. Murugan (A-3) reached Madras on
18.5.1991 and stayed with Nalini (A-1). While at Kodiakkarai, Murugan (A-3) met
Shankar (A-4) and gave him a slip of paper (Exh.P-1062) containing the name:
"NaliniThass-419493". On 20.5.1991 Sivarasan came to Royapettah house
to instruct them to be ready for the meeting of Rajiv Gandhi on the next day.
Murugan (A-3) went to the house of Haribabu and since Haribabu was not
available he asked his sister to tell Haribabu to go to Royapettah house. On
the night of 21.5.1991 Murugan (A-3) was in Royapettah house. When Arivu (A-18)
and Bhagyanathan (A-20) came at 1.30 a.m. after seeing late night show they
told him about Rajiv Gandhi's assassination by human bomb.
From
this Murugan (A-3) understood that Sivarasan had finished his task. Now he was
anxcious about Nalini (A-1).
While
at Tirupathi on 25.5.1991 Sivarasan told Murugan (A-3) about the belt bomb. He
told him there were two switches and after switching the first switch on, Dhanu
asked Sivarasan to go away. Murugan (A-3) when asked Sivarasan the reasons for
killing of Rajiv Gandhi he replied that Kasi Anandhan (PW-242) had met Rajiv
Gandhi at Delhi and was told that the meeting was very cordial there and if
Rajiv Gandhi came to power he would help LTTE movement. Prabhakaran showed the
letter written by Kasi Anandhan (PW-242) suggesting cordial relations to Pottu
Amman and said that people like Kasi Anandhan (PW-242) should be removed from
the movement. When Sivarasan met Prabhakaran he told him that "we must
teach a lesson to Rajiv Gandhi through the girls since IPKF dishonoured
women". From this Murugan (A-3) understood that decision to assassinate
Rajiv Gandhi was taken by Prabhakaran. When on 7.6.1991 Murugan (A-3) met
Sivarasan at Astalakshmi Temple it was decided that Murugan (A-3) would
continue the task of Sivarasan and these tasks were to take care of old
Vijayanandan (A-5) living in the house of Vanan; to send Arivu (A-18) to Delhi
and also to contact Santhan (A-2). Sivarasan also said that they must go back
to Sri Lanka on or before June 10/11, 1991 and that he was arranging the boat
for the purpose from Nagapattinam.
Santhan
(A-2) is a Sri Lankan national. He knew Sivarasan as they both belonged to same
town in Sri Lanka.
According
to Santhan (A-2) important decisions like murder of any body could be taken
only by Prabhakaran. Santhan (A-2) knew that Sivarasan was a member of military
wing of LTTE movement. He knew the set up of LTTE, its activities and its
skirmishes with IPKF. In February, 1988 Sivarasan asked Santhan (A2) if he
wished to continue his education at Madras, LTTE would make arrangements for
that. Santhan (A-2) accepted the offer. He and Sivarasan came to India on
15.2.1990. They reached Kodiakkarai by boat and overnight stayed in the house
of Shanmugam(DA). Next day they went to Madras and to the house of one
Nagarajan, a smuggler and a Sri Lankan Tamil. Sivarasan, Nagarajan and
Shanmugavadivelu (A-15) took Santhan (A-2) to Madras Institute of Engineering
Technology where he got admission. Nagarajan was introduced as uncle of Santhan
(A-2). Fees and expenses were paid by Sivarasan. Santhan (A-2) was residing in
the hostel.
Santhan
(A-2) in his confession has described as to how Padmanabha, leader of EPRLF and
other leaders of EPRLF were killed by Sivarasan and other LTTE tigers David,
Danial @ Dinesh Kumar and Ravi on 19.6.1990 and how they were able to effect
the escape back to Sri Lanka. Santhan (A-2) though himself did not take part in
the killing was entrusted with the duty to watch the place where meeting of
EPRLF was being held and to give that information to Sivarasan. He also escaped
with Sivarasan and other Sri Lankans. Pottu Amman welcomed them and praised
them by patting their shoulders.
Prabhakaran
also met them and shook hands with David, who was incharge of Padmanabha's
murder. Because of this incident Santhan (A-2) discontinued his studies. P.S. Padmanabhan
(PW-187) was a student of Madras Institute of Engineering Technology. He
identified Santhan (A-2) as Raja who was studying in that Institute. He said
Santhan (A-2) studied in the institute only for a couple of days and thereafter
he did not see him. In the last week of April, 1990 Pottu Amman called him and
asked him to get ready on ((SCO LYRIX 6.1 )) (A-10) and his wife Shanthi
(A-11). That night Santhan (A-2) stayed in the house of Jayakumar (A-10) with
Sivarasan. Next day Santhan (A-2) went to the house of Haribabu. When
Haribabu's mother asked Santhan (A-2) his native place he told her that he was
from Pariyakulam, Madurai. Santhan (A-2) stayed in the house of Haribabu for
about a week. On 12.6.1991 Santhan (A-2) met Sivarasan who inquired from him
about his Switzerland visit. Santhan (A-2) said he had inquired about that from
a travel agent P. Veerappan (PW-102) who told him that his passport would be
ready within a week. Sivarasan remarked that if he did not go to Switzerland
LTTE would suffer a loss of Rs.1,00,000/-.
P.
Veerappan (PW-102) said that he was doing the job of getting passports and
renewal of old passports and also getting visas. He knew C. Vamadevan (PW114)
who started the business of brokerage of letting houses on rent.
In
that connection Vamadevan (PW-114) came in contact with Shanmugavadivelu
(A-15). In the end of April, Shanmugavadivelu (A-15) met Vamadevan (PW-114) and
asked him if he could suggest some agent to send his brother-inlaw to a foreign
country. Vamadevan (PW-114) thought of P. Veerappan (PW-102) and took Shanmugavadivelu
(A-15) to him.
When
P. Veerappan (PW-102) asked Shanmugavadivelu (A-15) as to which country his
brother-in-law belonged to he replied that he belonged to Madras only. P.
Veerappan (PW-102) told him that he had a friend who would arrange for his
brother-in-law to go to a foreign country. He asked Shanmugavadivelu (A-15) to
bring necessary documents such as passport, ration card, school certificate,
etc. and his brother-in-law should also come along with him.
Shanmugavadivelu
(A-15) was told that the expenses of visa, ticket and foreign exchange for the
purpose would be Rs.80,000/- and Rs.50,000/- were required in advance. In the
first week of May, 1991 Shanmugavadivelu (A-15) brought his brother-in-law and
introduced him to P. Veerappan (PW-102). He asked him certain questions. After
two or three days C. Vamadevan (PW114) and Shanmugavadivelu (A-15) came to P.
Veerappan (PW-102) and gave him Rs.50,000/-.
Shanmugavadivelu
(A-15) said that other documents he will bring within a few days. Shanmugavadivelu
(A-15) again met P. Veerappan (PW-102) two/three times and told him that
necessary documents were getting ready. In the second week of July, 1991
brother-in-law of Shanmugavadivelu (A-15) came to P. Veerappan (PW-102) and
asked him if papers were ready for his foreign trip. He told that documents
have still not been given to him. P. Veerappan (PW-102) identified Santhan
(A-2), who was introduced to him as brother-in-law by Shanmugavadivelu (A-15).
P. Veerappan (PW-102) was, however, unable to identify if Shanmugavadivelu
(A-15) was the person who brought Santhan (A-2) to him though Vamadevan
(PW-114) identified both Santhan (A-2) and Shanmugavadivelu (A-15) in court.
Santhan
(A-2) told Sivarasan that he was not comfortable staying in the house of Haribabu.
Sivarasan then took him to the house of Jayakumar (A-10) on 13.5.1991.
On
15.5.1991 Sivarasan gave a letter to Santhan (A-2) and asked him to give it to
Kanthan, who was in Robert Payas's (A-9) house. Santhan (A-2) gave the letter
to Kanthan who in turn gave him Rs.5 lacs and asked him to give the sum to
Sivarasan. Santhan (A-2) accordingly paid the amount to Sivarasan who took
Rs.2.00 lacs and asked him to keep the balance with him. On 17.5.1991 Sivarasan
and Santhan (A-2) went to Eashwari Lodge and met Shankar (A-4). Sivarasan took
Rs.10,000/- from Santhan (A-2) and gave that to Shankar (A4). On 18.5.1991
Sivarasan again got Rs.20,000/- from Santhan (A-2). He asked Santhan (A-2) to
go to the house of Robert Payas (A-9) where he gave Rs.4,000/- to Ruban (A-6).
Then
both Robert Payas (A-9) and Santhan (A-2) went to Pondy Bazaar and purchased
clothes and a watch for Ruban (A-6).
Ruban
(A-6) came to stay at Robert Payas's (A-9) house only a day before. At the
instance of Sivarasan, Santhan (A-2) brought Ruban (A-6) to Marina Beach on
19.5.1991. Sivarasan and Ruban (A-6) talked to each other and then all three
went to the house of Vijayendran (PW-111), a Sri Lankan national.
After
that all four of them and one more boy went to Central Station of Railway. A send
off was given to Ruban (A-6), Vijayendran (PW-111) and the boy on a train to
Delhi on way to Jaipur.
Santhan
(A-2) said that Ruban (A-6) had lost one of his legs in bomb blast and that
journey was to take treatment for that. More money was given by Kanthan to
Santhan (A-2) who in turn gave that back to Sivarasan.
Sivarasan
asked Santhan (A-2) to furnish him the account of money he received from
Kanthan which account Sivarasan had to give to a man going to Sri Lanka. The
account which Santhan (A-2) wrote as told to him by Sivarasan was as under :-
"Income:
Received
from Kanthan Through Santhan Rs.9,50,000 Received from Kanthan by Sivarasan
Rs.9,50,000 Expenditure To X Y Rs. 3,00,000 Delta (murugan) Rs. 25,000 Rs.
5,000 A.T. Rs. 1,00,000 Rs. 3,50,000 Rs. 1,00,000 To Y X through Delta Rs.
5,00,000 To self (Sivarasan) Rs. 15,000 Sivarasan then asked Santhan (A-2) as
to why he had not shown the amount of Rs.50,000/- which was given to Santhan
(A-2). He asked Santhan (A-2) that out of that amount Rs.25,000/- be paid to
Murugan (A-3) and Rs.5,000/- each to Jayakumar (A-10) and Keerthi. These
amounts Santhan (A-2) paid as directed after the assassination of Rajiv Gandhi.
On 20.5.1991 Santhan (A-2), Jayakumar (A-10) and Sivarasan were in the house of
Jayakumar (A10). Before that on 16.5.1991 Sivarasan had told Santhan (A-2) that
Prabhakaran had paid special attention on Santhan (A-2) after the murder of
Padmanabha and important works were allotted to him and all this was on account
of the cooperation given by Santhan (A-2) in Padmanabha case.
Santhan
(A-2) said that Sivarasan also told him that he was going to help Subha and
Dhanu to finish Rajiv Gandhi. In Jayakumar's (A-10) house Santhan (A-2) stayed
upto 28.5.1991. D.J. Swaminathan (PW-85) in his deposition said that Santhan
(A-2) stayed in the house of Jayakumar (A-10) from 16.5.1991 to 26.5.1991.
On
21.5.1991 Santhan (A-2) saw Sivarasan in white kurtapyjama. Sivarasan inserted
a white cloth bag containing a pistol in his hip pocket and asked Santhan (A-2)
whether the gun was protruding outside the dress. To this Santhan (A-2) replied
in the negative. The pistol was Czechoslovakia make. Cloth bag was stitched by
Shanthi (A-11) two days earlier. A pistol (MO-79) was seized by P.P.
Chandrasekara Nair (PW-271) from the house at Konanakunte (Bangalore) where
Sivarasan, Subha and others committed suicide. Sivarasan then went out and
returned around mid-night when Santhan (A-2) was sleeping. Sivarasan woke him
up and told him that Rajiv Gandhi and Dhanu had died. He also told that he had
brought one sister who was a helper of LTTE. His reference was to Nalini (A-1).
Next morning Sivarasan, Subha and Nalini (A-1) went to the house of a neighbour
to watch TV. On 28.5.1991 Santhan (A-2) went to Tirupathi in the assumed name of
Kumaresan. On his return journey from Tirupathi he saw the picture of Sivarasan
in Kurta Pyjama in a newspaper. He went to the house of Robert Payas (A-9) and
not to the house of Jayakumar (A-10). On 30.5.1991 Robert Payas (A-9), his wife
Prema, sister Latha and Santhan (A-2) went to Thiruchendur and planned to stay
in a cottage there. Receptionist there, on hearing Santhan (A2), asked him his
address. He gave the address as No. 30, Vanniar Street, Choolaimedu. Santhan
(A-2) then left the place fearing that they would be trapped if the
receptionist asked the PIN code of Choolaimedu. From Thiruchendur they came to
Madurai and after staying there for a while left for Madras reaching there
early morning.
Robert
Payas (A-9) and his family returned to Porur house while Santhan (A-2) went to
K.K. Nagar. In between he had been meeting Sivarasan and getting instructions
from him.
He
said Sivarasan told him that thereafter Murugan (A-3) would look after his work
and that of Kanthan, i.e., to send Keerthi to Colombo, Athirai (A-8) to Delhi,
to send money to Ruben (A-6); provision of a house for Shankar (Shankar (A-4));
and arranging money for such works. Sivarasan was frantically trying to escape
to Sri Lanka. Santhan went to the house of P. Thirumathi Vimala (PW-62) to meet
Athirai (A-8) who was staying there. He took Shanmugavadivelu (A-15) along with
him.
P.
Thirumathi Vimala (PW-62) said that Santhan (A-2) did come to her house and
said that he was acquainted with Athirai (A8) that he knew her already and that
he had come to see her. She told him that she was having problem and asked him
to take away Athirai (A-8) immediately. He said he would do that. He wanted a
letter for Dixon (DA) who was staying in Gowri Karunakaran's house, a relative
of P. Thirumathi Vimala (PW-62). That letter was delivered at Gowri
Karunakaran's house. Santhan (A-2) got a reply while he was still in the house
of P. Thirumathi Vimala (PW62).
At his
request Santhan (A-2) was taken to the house of Gowri Karunakaran. When he met
Dixon he knew that he was a member of LTTE. A few days later Santhan (A-2)
again came to the house of P. Thirumathi Vimala (PW-62) and told her that
Shanmugavadivelu's (A-15) house had been searched by the CBI and had caught him
and that perhaps CBI would come to the house of P. Thirumathi Vimala (PW-62)
also since Athirai (A-8) who was staying there was not holding passport and
that it would be problem for her. He said he had, therefore, come to take
Athirai (A-8) as directed by Sivarasan. Athirai (A-8) then went along with
Santhan (A-2). Before leaving, Athirai (A-8) left Rs.8,000/- with P. Thirumathi
Vimala (PW-62). Around 1.7.1991 when P.
Thirumathi
Vimala (PW-62) came to her house she found Santhan (A-2) and Athirai (A-8)
waiting for her. Athirai (A-8) wanted her money back. P. Thirumathi Vimala
(PW-62) said that she never expected them to come back immediately and that she
had already spent Rs.1,500 out of that money for certain purchases and was left
with Rs.6,500/-. They said it was alright and asked her to give that money to
them. They then left. Kangasabapathy (A-7) had also come along with Santhan
(A-2) and Athirai (A-8) but afterwards had left before P. Thirumathi Vimala
(PW-62) returned to her house.
Santhan
(A-2) then received a message from Dixon that he wanted to meet him. Dixon told
Santhan (A-2) that all their wireless messages were spied by Tamil Nadu police.
Santhan
(A-2) took Athirai (A-8) to Pamal house where he also stayed. On the night of
1.7.1991 Santhan (A-2) made Athirai (A-8) to get in the train at Central
Railway Station to Delhi and then went to Pamal house and stayed there.
Though
Santhan (A-2) in his confession said that he saw off Athirai (A-8) at the
Central Railway Station but evidence shows that he saw off both Kanagasabapathy
(A-7) and Athirai (A-8) on 1.7.1991 to New Delhi.
In
letter (Exh.P-129) dated 7.9.1991 written by deceased accused Trichy Santhan to
Prabhakaran he mentioned that arrest of Santhan (A-2) was a great danger to
LTTE and that members of the movement had been captured alive and that members
had made disclosure right from Padmanabha incident.
Confession
statement of Shanmugavadivelu @ Thambi Anna (A15) was recorded on 18.5.1992
while he was arrested on 16.5.1992. He is a Sri Lankan national and gives his
family background. He was owning a lorry along with another in Sri Lanka and
doing business there. However, his business was hit because of war between LTTE
and Sri Lankan army. His house was damaged in 1987 by bomb lodged by Sri Lankan
army. He then decided to stay in India. Since 1985 while in Sri Lanka LTTE had
started collecting money from each family for its war efforts. He left Colombo
on 19.6.1987 and came to Madras with his wife and two children and his sister's
son. Initially he stayed with his elder sister's son Dr. Thiru Vadivel
(Dentist). Then he rented a house where he started living with his family. In
1988 Dr. Thiru Vadivel went back to Sri Lanka hoping that situation would
normalize after the presence of IPKF in Sri Lanka.
Shanmugavadivelu
(A-15) got the telephone No. 864249 of Dr. Thiru Vadivel installed in his
house. That telephone always remained in the name of Dr. Thiru Vadivel.
Shanmugavadivelu
(A-15) started lorry service along with his wife's brother Arvinda Das. One
Karunakaran was working as a lorry contractor in Madras harbour. 35% of the
profit was taken by Karunakaran and rest 65% was shared between
Shanmugavadivelu (A-15) and Arvinda Das. According to Shanmugavadivelu (A-15)
Arvinda Das was disbursing money to Sri Lankan Tamils there from lorry service.
He was also receiving money from Sri Lanka at times for distribution as per
instructions received on telephone by him.
Shanmugavadivelu
(A-15) knew P. Thirumathi Vimala (PW-62) from Sri Lanka. She had come to India
three or four years earlier to Shanmugavadivelu (A-15). She shifted to her
house at Royapettah in 1990. P. Thirumathi Vimala (PW-62) was known to wife of
Shanmugavadivelu (A-15). They were on visiting terms. One child was born to
Shanmugavadivelu (A-15) while in India. One day two persons by the name
Sivarasan and Santhan (A-2) came to the house of Shanmugavadivelu (A-15) and
wanted to give a letter to P. Thirumathi Vimala (PW-62). Shanmugavadivelu
(A-15) took them to the house of P. Thirumathi Vimala (PW-62). When Sivarasan
and Santhan (A-2) expected some money from Shanmugavadivelu (A-15) he told them
that that matter was attended to by Arvinda Das. Sivarasan said that whenever
Santhan (A-2) would come and ask for money that be given to him. When
Shanmugavadivelu (A-15) took them to P. Thirumathi Vimala's (PW-62) house she
was not at home. He, however, introduced Sivarasan to her daughters who were
aged 15 and 16 years. After four or five days Santhan (A-2) again came to the
house of Shanmugavadivelu (A-15) and asked to be taken to the house of P.
Thirumathi Vimala (PW-62) which again Shanmugavadivelu (A-15) did. At that time
also P. Thirumathi Vimala (PW-62) was not at home. One week before Rajiv
Gandhi's assassination Santhan (A-2) came to the house of Shanmugavadivelu
(A-15) and gave him a bundle containing Rs.1.25 lacs for safe custody.
Shanmugavadivelu (A-15) had helped Santhan (A-2) to get admission in M.I.E.T.
Institute
through Nagaraja. After four or five days Santhan (A-2) again came and this
time gave Rs.3.20 lacs to Shanmugavadivelu (A-15). This money Santhan (A-2)
took back subsequently. One day when he came to get some money from
Shanmugavadivelu (A-15) by that time photo of Sivarasan connected with the
assassination of Rajiv Gandhi was published in newspaper. Shanmugavadivelu
(A-15) asked Santhan (A-2) about Sivarasan and his photo appearing in paper to
which Santhan (A-2) said that he need not worry.
Before
the assassination of Rajiv Gandhi one-day P. Thirumathi Vimala (PW-62) with her
daughter and Athirai (A-8) came to the house of Shanmugavadivelu (A-15).
Athirai (A-8) said that she expected a phone call from foreign country and told
Shanmugavadivelu (A-15) that she might be informed about that. Daughter of P.
Thirumathi Vimala (PW-62) told Shanmugavadivelu (A15) that Athirai (A-8) was
Sivarasan's person. Next day when phone call came which was attended to and the
person who spoke on the phone said that he was Athirai's (A-8) brother. He
asked to call Athirai (A-8) and said that he would call again within an hour.
Shanmugavadivelu
(A-15) went and called Athirai (A-8).
After
one hour phone call came but Shanmugavadivelu (A-15) did not know what were
they talking about. On May 30/31, 1991 Athirai (A-8) again came to the house of
Shanmugavadivelu (A-15) to receive a phone call about which Shanmugavadivelu
(A-15) did not know. Wife of Shanmugavadivelu (A-15) did not like Athirai (A-8)
when she came to know that she was LTTE person. Wife of Shanmugavadivelu (A-15)
had strong dislike for LTTE because on one occasion they kidnapped their son aged
four years and on other two brothers-in-law including Arvinda Dass were
kidnapped. LTTE used to ask for money before releasing the kidnapped but no one
did make any complaint about that.
Wife
of Shanmugavadivelu (A-15) had thus developed a great hatred for LTTE. When
Sivarasan and Santhan (A-2) came to the house of Shanmugavadivelu (A-15) for
the first time they had noted his phone number. Shanmugavadivelu (A15) does not
talk of any help rendered by him to Santhan (A-2) to go abroad and for that
purpose to get passport and visa for him or about any conversation between him
and P. Veerappan (PW-102) and C. Vamadevan (PW114). In one of the papers seized
from Ruban (A6) at Jaipur telephone number of Shanmugavadivelu (A-15) 864249 is
mentioned. From this prosecution seeks to draw an inference that Ruban (A-6)
was sent to Jaipur by Santhan (A-2) and Sivarasan on 17.5.1991 for fixing a
hide out and he was given telephone number of Shanmugavadivelu (A-15) as his
contact number.
Shanmugavadivelu
(A-15) was known to Sivarasan and Santhan (A-2) as early as 1990 and had helped
Santhan (A-2) to get admission in Madras Institute of Engineering Technology.
There
is no confession of Ruban (A-6). Vijayendran (PW-111) is a Sri Lankan national.
He came to India in 1979, studied here, wrote many books and acted in films.
Sivarasan
met Vijayendran (PW-111) in the second week of April, 1991 at railway platform
bookstall and introduced himself. During conversation Sivarasan told him that
he was leaving for Sri Lanka in a week's time. Vijayendran (PW-111) had not
received any letter from his home in Sri Lanka for more than one and a half
years. He asked Sivarasan to hand over his letter to his mother, brothers and
also to receive a reply to that. Sivarasan after two days of the meeting came
to the house of Vijayendran (PW-111) to collect the letter. Sivarasan again met
him on 11.5.1991 bringing to him reply dated 8.5.1991 to his letter. He
addressed Vijayendran (PW111) as brother.
Vijayendran
(PW-111) expressed gratitude to Sivarasan for his help. Once Sivarasan came to
the house of Vijayendran (PW-111) with Santhan (A-2). Sivarasan requested
Vijayendran (PW-111) to accompany Ruban (A-6), who was introduced as Suresh
Kumar, to Jaipur to fix an artificial limb as he did not have left leg.
Vijayendran (PW-111) asked whether there was no doctor available in Madras but
Sivarasan said that in India Dr. Sethi was a specialist in that medical field
and was based in Jaipur and he wanted treatment for Ruban (A-6) from him.
Vijayendran (PW-111) agreed. He, however, told Sivarasan that he would take
another person along with him as he himself did not know Hindi. Sivarasan gave
him Rs.15,000/- in cash to meet the medical expenses and the conveyance
charges. He asked Vijayendran (PW-111) to buy tickets of G.T. Express for Delhi
leaving on 17.5.1991. The railway tickets were got reserved by Vijayendran
(PW-111) on 14.5.1991. Ruban (A-6), Vijayendran (PW-111) and a boy called Ajas
Ali left by G.T.
Express
on 17.5.1991. Sivarasan and Santhan (A-2) had come to see them off. Sivarasan
told Vijayendran (PW-111) that Santhan (A-2) would come to him to receive any
letter which might be given to him by Ruban (A-6) on his return.
Vijayendran
(PW-111) said that Sivarasan asked him to use his name as Maharaja in which
name he was writing his poems.
After
arriving at Delhi the group then went to Jaipur on the evening of 19.5.1991.
They stayed in Golden Lodge in the names of Ajas Ali, Suresh Kumar and
Maharaja. Next day they went to meet the doctor. While at Jaipur on 22.5.1991
Vijayendran (PW-111) came to know about the assassination of Rajiv Gandhi at
Sriperumbudur. He said they got into panic as they could be suspected as
Tamilians. Ruban (A-6) suggested to vacate the lodge. Next day in the evening
they changed to Vikram Lodge. Vijayendran (PW-111) met Mr.Rajan, Manager of the
Lodge and asked him to help Ruban (A-6) for getting treatment as Dr. Sethi had
given them appointment for 13.6.1991. He along with Ajas Ali left Jaipur on
24.5.1991 for Madras reaching there on the night of 27.5.1991. Ruban (A-6) told
him that he would write letter to him addressed as Maharaja and to hand over
that to Santhan (A-2). Ruban (A-6) gave him a letter which had already been
written by him. Vijayendran (PW-111) saw the photo of Sivarasan published in
newspaper on 29.5.1991 with announcement that his whereabouts be informed as he
was the main person involved in the assassination of Rajiv Gandhi.
That
shook Vijayendran (PW-111). On 30.5.1991 Sivarasan came to him and inquired
about Ruban (A-6) if he had given any letter. The letter which Ruban (A-6) had
written was handed over to Sivarasan. Vijayendran (PW-111) asked about his
picture published in the newspapers. At this he gave sarcastic smile and told
him in authoritative tone that he was going to Sri Lanka and would return after
three months and then left. One more letter was received from Ruban (A-6) by
Vijayendran (PW-111) on 3/4.6.1991. On 7.6.1991 Santhan (A-2) came to collect
that letter. As seen above Santhan (A-2) gave Vijayendran (PW-111) a sum of
Rs.2,000/- and asked him to send it to Ruban (A-6) by telegraphic money order.
Entries in the lodge registers at Jaipur were made by Vijayendran (PW-111)
(Exh.P-111 and 523).
Ruban
(A-6) was one of the nine persons who had clandestinely landed at Indian soil
in a boat from Sri Lanka on 1.5.1991. In his confession Robert Payas (A-9) said
that he met an LTTE boy who had come to his house along with Indrankutti on
9.5.1991. He said the name of that boy was Ruban @ Suresh. He had lost one of
his legs in bomb blast in Sri Lanka and had come to India along with Sivarasan
for his treatment.
Y.R.
Nagarajan (PW-106) was working as receptionist in Golden Lodge in Jaipur. He
has testified to the stay of Vijayendran (PW-111), Ruban (A-6) and Ajas Ali. He
said Ruban (A-6) did not have left leg. Ruban (A-6) stayed in Jaipur till
20.6.1991 when he was arrested. Search was effected in the room in the lodge
where Ruban (A-6) was staying. One of the documents seized is a telephone index
book (MO-659) containing telephone numbers of Robert Payas (A-9) and
Shanmugavadivelu (A-15). In a bunch of papers (MO-667) seized on 15.6.1991 from
the house of Murugan (A-3) at Madipakkam, in one of the papers there was Jaipur
address of Ruban (A-6). A letter (Exh.P-1200) dated 18.6.1991 written by
Santhan (A-2) to Ruban (A-6) at Vikram Lodge address was also recovered from
the lodge. In this letter Santhan (A-2) had advised Ruben (A-6) to again shift
from his present place of stay to another safe place. This is an inland letter
written after the death of Rajiv Gandhi. This letter is stated to have been
handed over by Rajan, Manager of Vikram Lodge, to police inspector R.D. Kalia
(PW-236).
It is
not the original letter rather a Xerox copy. Original is stated to have been lost
in the court and as such secondary evidence was allowed to be led. This
document is proved by the handwriting expert K. Ramakrishnan (PW-262) but only
the address is said to be in the writing of Santhan (A-2). There is no evidence
about the contents of the letters as if written by Santhan (A-2). In the
notebook (MO-159) there is entry (Exh.P-439) giving details of expenses
incurred for Ruban (A-6). In the confession of Irumborai (A-19) he has
mentioned about the deceased accused Jamuna @ Jameela an injured LTTE tigress
staying in Neyveli in Tamil Nadu for getting an artificial leg fixed as she had
lost her leg in the fight at Jaffna against the Army. Ruban (A-6) did not get
artificial limb in Jaipur and it was fixed in Madras itself while he was in
judicial custody.
Arivu
(A-18) was little less than 20 years of age on the date of assassination of
Rajiv Gandhi. He was sympathizer of LTTE movement. In 1986 he took part in an
agitation and was imprisoned for 15 days in Madras. Suba Sundaram (A-22) was
known to his father. Arivu (A-18) joined his studio (Suba Studio) in May, 1989.
Muthuraja and Baby Subramaniam used to visit Suba Studio. Arivu (A-18) became
close to them and started working for LTTE. He started selling and distributing
LTTE literature. He used to sell these books in public meetings. In Suba Studio
he also came in contact with Bhagyanathan (A-20) and deceased accused Haribabu,
who were also working there. Even after they had left Suba Studio they used to
come there. On account of the influence of Baby Subramaniam and his assistant
Muthuraja both Bhagyanathan (A-20) and Haribabu were attracted towards LTTE
movement and got involved there.
When
Arivu (A-18) came to Madras in May, 1989 he started staying with Bhagyanathan
(A-20) and also with Muthuraja.
Place
of Muthuraja was used by LTTE people. In connection with LTTE work Arivu (A-18)
used to visit Bangalore quite often. Arivu (A-18) also got in contact with
Suresh Master (DA) and Trichy Santhan. Both were having important place in
LTTE. Arivu (A-18) was being paid by Trichy Santhan for the work done by him
for LTTE. He was getting a fixed amount every month. After the shooting
incident of killing of Padmanabha and others by LTTE at Madras offices of LTTE
were closed and thereafter it was an underground movement.
Arivu
(A-18) went to Sri Lanka with Baby Subramaniam in June, 1990. Irumborai (A-19)
also went with them. In Sri Lanka Arivu (A-18) met Prabhakaran and other
leaders and assured them to give full support for LTTE movement. During his
stay in Sri Lanka there was war between LTTE and Sri Lankan Army. Then he
learnt about the atrocities committed by IPKF and a feeling of revenge came to
his mind. He and Irumborai (A-19) came back to India in the second week of
October, 1990 with other wounded LTTE soldiers. Now he was full-fledged worker
of LTTE. It was from February, 1991 that Arivu (A-18) started staying with
Bhagyanathan (A-20).
It was
on account of the fact that President Rule was extended in January, 1991 and
police was taking strong action against LTTE. Arivu (A-18) left his own
residence and went to stay with Bhagyanathan (A-20). After Muthuraja went to
Sri Lanka his job was taken over by Arivu (A-18).
He was
getting money from deceased accused Suresh Master and Trichy Santhan for
meeting his expenses and was also paying to M. Sankari (PW-210), sister of
Muthuraja. Arivu (A-18) in his confession statement said that Murugan (A-3) had
come to Tamil Nadu from Sri Lanka for an important work of LTTE and in this
work Haribabu was helping him and for that Haribabu had been receiving monthly
salary from Murugan (A-3). Murugan (A-3) had been appointed in the spy wing of
LTTE. Arivu (A-18) was recording TV news in VCR in Royapettah house. In March,
1991 he went with Murugan (A-3) to Vellore for LTTE work as in Vellore Fort and
Jail Sri Lankan Tamils and LTTE personnel were kept in custody.
Blast
of Vellore Fort and Jail and releasing of LTTE militants was one of the LTTE
works in India. Various people connected with LTTE would come to the house of
Bhagyanathan (A-20). Arivu (A-18) said when these people were talking among
themselves he understood that it was for a very important and dangerous act and
he had a strong suspicion that the target would be Rajiv Gandhi.
In
April, 1991 when Sivarasan came to the house of Padma (A-21) he asked Arivu
(A-18) if he was prepared to work with him. Arivu (A-18) agreed to work for him
as Sivarasan was a senior LTTE member. Bhagyanathan (A-20) had already accepted
to work for Sivarasan. Before going to Sri Lanka Muthuraja has handed over his
work to Arivu (A-18) and also instructed Bhagyanathan (A-20) to give all help
to Arivu (A-18) as may be needed for the movement. Muthuraja had also requested
Nalini (A-1) to provide all help to Arivu (A-18) in his absence. Photos and
publications of LTTE movement and other books which were with Muthuraja were
kept by Arivu (A-18). In March, 1991 he shifted them to the house of V.
Radhakrishnan (PW-231), a friend of Arivu (A-18). These contained a 3 volume
Black Book and in the 3rd volume of the book there was a diagram of an electric
circuit similar to one used for the belt bomb by the assassin Dhanu. Arivu
(A-18) said that when the material was being transported Bhagyanathan (A-20)
was also with him.
On
3.5.1991 Arivu (A-18) met Sivarasan in India and at that time deceased accused
Gokul @ Nero and Murugan (A-3) were also with him. Sivarasan asked Arivu (A-18)
to buy a large size car battery, clips and other articles. Arivu (A-18) went to
a shop along with Nero and bought battery, wire and other articles. Apart from
other things battery was meant for a wireless set which Sivarasan wanted to
install, by which he would contact LTTE Headquarters in Sri Lanka.
While
buying battery he gave his name as Rajan and also wrong address. Sivarasan also
told Arivu (A-18) that he wanted a motorcycle to facilitate his travel and for
the purpose he had come to India. He asked Arivu (A-18) to make arrangements
for it as he himself did not want his name to be exposed. Arivu (A-18) arranged
one Kawasaki Bajaj Motorcycle (Registration No. TN-07-A-5203). He took
Sivarasan to the showroom on 4.5.1991 and bought the motorcycle in his own name
but giving a wrong address. With the same wrong address Arivu (A18) had also
opened a bank account in the bank. Sivarasan had given money for the purchase
of the motorcycle. Arivu (A-18) also bought 9-volt battery (golden power) and
gave that to Sivarasan. Arivu (A-18) said in his confession that Sivarasan used
this (Battery) only to blast the bomb. On 7.5.1991 Arivu (A-18) had also gone
to attend the public meeting of V.P. Singh and there he saw Nalini (A-1),
Subha, Dhanu and Murugan (A-3). These three women were trying to step on
towards the stage. Nalini (A-1) was requesting the organizers of the meeting
and the police while Subha and Dhanu were standing with rose garlands in their
hands. Haribabu was also seen on the stage. Arivu (A-18) did not see Sivarasan.
Arivu (A-18) knew that Subha and Dhanu were lady tigresses of LTTE brought from
Jaffna in Sri Lanka by Sivarasan for his job and they were "going and
coming with Nalini (A-1)". After the end of the public meeting Murugan
(A-3) gave a colour film roll to Arivu (A-18) for developing. None of the
pictures had come out clearly. Arivu (A-18) also bought a multi meter for Sivarasan
for use to test the electrical equipments. He had also bought earth wire.
Sivarasan asked Arivu (A-18) to look after Vijayanandan (A-5), who was a senior
LTTE leader. Vijayanandan (A-5) had come to India along with Sivarasan in the
group of nine persons arriving on 1.5.1991. Vijayanandan (A-5) was staying in
Komala Vilas lodge. Arivu (A-18) met him and took him to the house of N. Vasantha
Kumar (PW-75). Vijayanandan (A-5) was to buy some books for the LTTE movement.
In his confession Arivu (A-18) described N. Vasantha Kumar (PW-75) as his
partner. He also described N. Vasantha Kumar (PW-75) as an LTTE member and
close to Sivarasan. Once he said he had gone with N. Vasantha Kumar (PW75) to
the house of Trichy Santhan (DA).
N.
Vasantha Kumar (PW75) was involved in publishing the LTTE propaganda book
"Satanic Force" which contained articles relating to atrocities
committed by IPKF. It was Trichy Santhan (DA) who was giving finance for that.
On 20.5.1991 Arivu (A-18) learnt that in the evening when Nalini (A-1), Murugan
(A-3) and Haribabu were in the house of Bhagyanathan (A-20) Sivarasan had a
talk with Nalini (A-1) and Haribabu. Padma (A-21) had also come back from
hospital at 8.00 p.m. According to Arivu (A-18) Sivarasan had a talk regarding
the public meeting of Rajiv Gandhi to be held on the next day at Sriperumbudur.
He gave a Kodak colour film roll to Haribabu. After having their food Haribabu,
Murugan (A-3) and Nalini (A-1) left. On 21.5.1991 Arivu (A-18) and Bhagyanathan
(A-20) went to see late night movie and when they returned from the show they
heard the news that Rajiv Gandhi was murdered. Murugan (A-3) confirmed it. On
22.5.1991 Arivu (A-18) packed his goods from the house of Padma (A-21) and
cleared them one by one and kept at the houses of his friends. On 23.5.1991
Sivarasan came to the house of Padma (A-21) in the morning and gave details
about the incident resulting in the assassination of Rajiv Gandhi. He also told
them about the unexpected death of Haribabu in the bomb blast. He asked Arivu
(A-18) to go to Suba Sundaram (A-22) to see the progress in getting the body of
Haribabu. That evening Nalini (A1) also came to the house of Padma (A-21) late
in the evening and told about the murder of Rajiv Gandhi.
Arivu
(A-18) did not feel safe in the house of Bhagyanathan (A-20). Murugan (A-3) had
already hidden himself at Bhagyanathan's Press. Arivu (A-18) had a fear that he
might be found so he then went and stayed with his parents at Jolarpet. Before
going to Jolarpet Murugan (A-3) had asked Arivu (A-18) to come to Gandhi Beach
on 10.6.1991 in the evening at 7 O'clock to discuss about further proceedings.
Arivu
(A-18) came to Gandhi Beach but Murugan (A-3) was not there. He also searched
for Bhagyanathan (A-20) next day but again could not meet him. After few days
Arivu (A-18) was arrested.
N.
Vasantha Kumar (PW-75) is an artist. In 1984 he met a person by the name
Raghavan in a bookshop who came to the shop to buy books for LTTE. When
Raghavan came to know that N. Vasantha Kumar (PW-75) was an artist he asked him
if he would print books for LTTE organization. N. Vasantha Kumar (PW-75)
agreed. Raghavan introduced himself to Baby Subramaniam and Nithyanandam,
President of LTTE Propaganda Committee. N. Vasantha Kumar (PW-75) was promised
Rs.1000/- for his labour in getting the books printed for LTTE. In his
deposition N. Vasantha Kumar (PW-75) has described as to how he had become
close to top rank leaders of LTTE including Pottu Amman, Prabhakaran, Kasi
Anandan and others. He also visited LTTE training camp near Mettur in Tamil
Nadu. N. Vasantha Kumar (PW-75) in partnership with Basheer Ahamad also
published magazine called 'Pudhu Yugam'.
The
publication was stopped after two issues. In 1988 N. Vasantha Kumar (PW-75) was
engaged to print calendars and some other pamphlets for LTTE at a monthly
salary of Rs.1500/-. He got printed various pamphlets like 'Indian Military
Offensive', 'An unjust war against Tamils', 'Indo-Sri Lanka Accord', 'LTTE
point of view', etc. In 1989 when DMK came to power in Tamil Nadu Baby
Subramaniam was moving about openly in all places in an auto. He met N. Vasantha
Kumar (PW-75) and asked him to print a book by the name 'Socialistic Tamil
Ezham'. That book gave the political programme of LTTE. The book was got
printed by N. Vasantha Kumar (PW-75) and his work was appreciated by
Prabhakaran. Later Baby Subramaniam asked N. Vasantha Kumar (PW-75) to publish
a big book by the name "Satanic Force" containing the atrocities of
IPKF and other articles criticizing Rajiv Gandhi. N. Vasantha Kumar (PW75) was
promised Rs.2000/- per month for the work in printing the book. A separate flat
was hired for the purpose. All expenses of printing the book and hiring the
flat, etc.
were
met by Baby Subramaniam. The material for the book "Satanic Force"
was supplied by Baby Subramaniam. The book contained statements of LTTE
leaders, news published in India and foreign countries, essays, comments,
advertisements, cartoons and statements of Sri Lankan Tamilians who had
suffered. The book also contained collections of photographs. N. Vasantha Kumar
(PW-75) designed the book. Paper for the book was purchased in the name of
Ramesh, a member of LTTE for Rs.3,20,000/-. N. Vasantha Kumar (PW-75) had also
gone with Ramesh to buy the paper. Ramesh gave a bogus address to the
shopkeeper for preparation of the bill. "Satanic Force" is in two
parts which contained information up to March, 1990. N. Vasantha Kumar (PW-75)
said he used to often meet Baby Subramaniam in Suba Studio. Arivu (A-18) and
Irumborai (A-19) were always with Baby Subramaniam. Since the book
"Satanic Force" was against Indian Peace Keeping Force and Rajiv
Gandhi it was thought not to mention that it was printed in India. Baby
Subramaniam asked N. Vasantha Kumar (PW-75) to show that the book was printed
in U.K. Some copies for the books when finished were sent to Sri Lanka to Baby
Subramaniam and the mode of transport was informed to Baby Subramaniam.
Thereafter
Baby Subramaniam went to Jaffna in Sri Lanka accompanied by Arivu (A18) and
Irumborai (A-19). N. Vasantha Kumar (PW-75) then described the attempt made by
him to get the payment of the book to be made to various parties. Four sets of
the books were printed and ready.
Two
sets were kept by N. Vasantha Kumar (PW75) and two sets were given by him to
Arivu (A-18). N. Vasantha Kumar (PW-75) said he received a letter from
Prabhakaran appreciating his work who told him that he had written letter to
Trichy Santhan (DA) who was in charge at Trichy to make the payment for the
book. Prabhakaran also wrote that N. Vasantha Kumar (PW-75) could come to Sri
Lanka whenever he wished. He said he tore the letter after reading that.
On 2
or 3.5.1991 N. Vasantha Kumar (PW-75) and Arivu (A-18) went to Trichy to get
payment from Trichy Santhan. In the morning Arivu (A-18) took N. Vasantha Kumar
(PW-75) to a house at Ramalinga Nagar where Irumborai (A-19) was also present
along with some other workers. At about 11.00 a.m.
Trichy
Santhan (DA) came. Arivu (A-18) introduced N. Vasantha Kumar (PW-75) to him.
Trichy Santhan (DA) paid Rs.90,000/- to N. Vasantha Kumar (PW-75) and promised
to pay the balance through Arivu (A-18). They then returned to Madras. In the
first week of May, 1991 Arivu (A-18) came to the house of N. Vasantha Kumar
(PW-75) with Vijayanandan (A-5). Arivu (A-18) asked him to help Vijayanandan
(A-5) in purchasing the books for LTTE library. N. Vasantha Kumar (PW-75) made
Vijayanandan (A-5) to stay in his adjoining flat. Vijayanandan (A-5) told N.
Vasantha Kumar (PW-75) that he was a supporter of LTTE and that Pottu Amman had
called him and had asked him to take charge of the library and for that purpose
he had come to purchase the books. He also told him that about seven or eight
days ago he had come to Kodiakkarai with eight other persons illegally in an LTTE
boat. When N. Vasantha Kumar (PW-75) asked him if he had the list of books to
be purchased, he replied that he did not have the list and that he would
purchase the books directly. N. Vasantha Kumar (PW-75) sent Basheer Ahmad for
helping Vijayanandan (A-5) in purchasing the books.
Vijayanandan
(A-5) had purchased about 400 books.
Vijayanandan
(A-5) used to talk about the atrocities committed by IPKF in Sri Lanka and his
hatred towards Rajiv Gandhi. He gave him a book 'Alisiya' and its Tamil
manuscript and told N. Vasantha Kumar (PW-75) that Pottu Amman had asked him to
print three thousand copies of the book in the letter press. Vijayanandan (A-5)
for that purpose gave Rs.10,000/- and again Rs.20,000/-. He also gave N.
Vasantha Kumar (PW-75) a list of books which he could not purchase and asked
him to purchase those books and for that purpose also he gave N. Vasantha Kumar
(PW-75) Rs.5,500/-. On 10.5.1991 Arivu (A-18) came to meet N. Vasantha Kumar
(PW-75) with Sivarasan on a Kawasaki Bajaj motorcycle. Sivarasan had come to
see Vijayanandan (A-5).
All
three of them talked for about ten minutes and then Arivu (A-18) and Sivarasan
left. N. Vasantha Kumar (PW-75) wanted to visit Moogambigai on 19.5.1991. He,
therefore, asked Arivu (A-18) to take Vijayanandan (A-5) with him.
Arivu
(A-18) promised that he would come and take him. On 17.5.1991 early in the
morning at 6.00 a.m. Irumborai (A-19) came to the house of N. Vasantha Kumar
(PW-75) and inquired about Arivu (A-18). When told Arivu (A-18) had not come
Irumborai (A-19) left leaving a message for Arivu (A-18) to meet him urgently.
Later when Arivu (A-18) came N. Vasantha Kumar (PW-75) informed him
accordingly. Again he asked Arivu (A-18) to take Vijayanandan (A-5) with him.
On the
morning of 18.5.1991 Sivarasan came on motorcycle and took Vijayanandan (A-5)
with him. He asked Vijayanandan (A-5) if he had purchased the books.
Vijayanandan (A-5) replied that he had purchased everything. Sivarasan told
Vijayanandan (A-5) that he would give him an address where he could stay and
asked him to leave immediately.
Vijayanandan
(A-5) packed his dresses and left. While leaving he told N. Vasantha Kumar
(PW-75) that he would take the books later. On the morning of 19.5.1991 Arivu
(A-18) again came to the house of N. Vasantha Kumar (PW-75) and told him that
Trichy Santhan had sent Rs.75,000/- for the book "Satanic Force". N.
Vasantha Kumar (PW-75) told him that since he was leaving for the tour the
money could be given by Arivu (A-18) to Balcon Press. N. Vasantha Kumar (PW-75)
after his tour with his family and friends returned to Madras. While away he
learnt about the assassination of Rajiv Gandhi through news broadcast on radio
on the morning of 22.5.1991 by a bomb blast at Sriperumbudur while attending
the meeting. On 29.5.1991 picture of Sivarasan was published in the Hindu
newspaper.
N.
Vasantha Kumar (PW-75) recognized Sivarasan who had been brought to his house
by Arivu (A-18). On 30.5.1991 Arivu (A18) again came to meet N. Vasantha Kumar
(PW-75) and gave him Rs.25,000/-. He was asked about the photo of Sivarasan and
whereabouts of Sivarasan and if Arivu (A-18) was having any connection with the
murder. At this Arivu (A-18) laughed sarcastically and left without any reply.
Due to fear N. Vasantha Kumar (PW-75) did not inform the matter to anybody. At
Balcon Press where Arivu (A-18) had gone to hand over Rs.75,000/- he came to
know that police was in search of him. He was afraid and left Madras and went
to his friend at Neyveli. In his absence on 4.6.1991 Vijayanandan (A-5) had
come to his house and gave his wife a bag, Rs.5,000/- and three sarees and told
her that he would come and collect the same later. N. Vasantha Kumar (PW-75)
returned from Neyveli and then with his family left Madras and stayed at a
place outside the city. At this point of time he learnt the name of Sivarasan
though earlier he was never introduced to him by that name. On 18.1.1992 one
CBI inspector came to meet N. Vasantha Kumar (PW-75) and asked him to appear at
Malligai police station where he identified the books "Satanic Force"
got printed by him. N. Vasantha Kumar (PW-75) identified various material got
printed by him from time to time. He identified the notes regarding the books,
etc. purchased by Vijayanandan (A-5) when he had come to the house of N.
Vasantha Kumar (PW-75) and N. Vasantha Kumar (PW-75) seen him writing
(Exh.P-351). He also identified the books 'Alisiya' and its Tamil manuscript
(MO-113 and 114). He also identified various other documents and the articles
recovered from the house.
Delip
Chordia (PW-88) is a dealer of tyres and batteries. The name of his firm is
International Tyres Service from whose shop Arivu (A-18) purchased the battery.
He
identified the battery (MO-209) sold to one Rajan on 3.5.1991. Battery (MO-209)
was seized by M. Narayanan (PW-281), D.S.P. from the pit dug in the kitchen of
the house occupied by Vijayan (A-12). Mohanraj (PW-254), wireless expert,
stated that a wireless set could be operated using the 12 volt battery like
MO-209. Wireless set was installed in the house of Vijayan (A-12) by making use
of battery MO-209 for communication with LTTE leaders in Sri Lanka which was
operated by deceased accused Nero, who was a wireless operator and came to
India in nine member group on 1.5.1991.
R.
Ravichandran (PW-95) is a salesman of the showroom from where Kawasaki Bajaj
motorcycle (MO-82) bearing registration No. TN-07-A-5203 was purchased by Arivu
(A-18). The address which Arivu (A-18) gave while buying motorcycle was the
address of Padma (A-21) when she was staying in Kalyani Nursing Home quarters.
At the relevant time of purchase of motorcycle she was, however, staying in
Royapettah house.
N.
Moideen (PW-91) was working as a salesman in a shop in Royapettah High Road. He
said that in the second week of May, 1991 he sold two golden power batteries
for Rs.46. He was asked if he could identify the man whom police officers had
brought to the shop as the person to whom he sold the batteries. He identified
Arivu (A-18).
G.J.
Srinivasan (PW-252), Assistant Director, Tamil Nadu Forensic Science
Laboratory, Madras after examining the portion of 9 volt golden power battery
(MO-678) recovered from the scene of the crime gave opinion that these were the
portions of 9 volt golden power battery.
Lt.
Col. Manik Sabharwal (PW-157), Bomb expert and Dr. P. Chandrasekaran (PW-280),
Director, TNFSL, Madras gave opinion that 9 volt golden power battery was used
as power source in the belt bomb used by Dhanu. From the statement of N.
Vasantha Kumar (PW-75) it was seen that Arivu (A-18) was connected with the
printing and publication of propaganda material for LTTE including the book
"Satanic Force". Dr. R. Kuppusamy (PW-194) said in his statement that
after examining the exposed frames of negatives used by Haribabu at the scene of
crime (Exh.P-735) that these were from Kodak colour film and that was used for
camera (MO-1).
The
unexposed portion of the Kodak colour film is MO-542 which was cut and removed
from Exh.P-735. The material which had been removed by Arivu (A-18) from the
house of Padma (A-21) after learning the assassination of Rajiv Gandhi, was
subsequently recovered on the basis of disclosure statement (Exh.P-1343). In
his letter (Exh.P128) written by Trichy Santhan to Irumborai (A-19) he
mentioned about the mistake committed in LTTE with the supporters of Sivarasan
like Arivu (A-18) connected with Baby Anna.
Athirai
(A-8) is a Sri Lankan national. At the very young age of 13 years she got
involved in LTTE movement.
She
learnt how to prepare code sheets for conveying messages, making of bombs and
driving. In the military camp she got training to use AK-47 rifle. She also got
training in photography and videography. Her brothers and sisters are settled
in Germany or Switzerland. In her confession she said that one of the
principles of LTTE is that it does not brook any opposition and the undisputed
leader of LTTE is Prabhakaran. She gave the names of various LTTE leaders in
whose contacts she came. She said Pottu Amman is incharge of Intelligence
Branch of LTTE and sister Shanthi and Akila are also in that branch. Athirai
(A-8) said that her friend, who was 24 years of age and LTTE wireless operator
died in fight with IPKF in 1988. Her own boy friend also died in 1989 in a raid
by IPKF. Athirai (A-8) also got training in the political wing of LTTE. She had
been explained as to how Prabhakaran was compelled to sign the Indo-Sri Lankan
Accord and how IPKF instead of protecting Tamilians in Sri Lanka was fighting
against them and committing atrocities on the innocent Tamilians there.
She said
about the organizations of Black Tigers and Black Women Tigers whose members
would sacrifice their lives in suicide daring acts. Athirai (A-8) said she was
able to recognize all the persons in the LTTE organization. Dhanu, she said,
belonged to suicide squad. She was a black woman tiger. She did not wear
spectacles but for the purpose of not being identified in Rajiv Gandhi murder
case she wore spectacles. Subha also belonged to army branch of LTTE.
Both
had received the same training in the military camp of LTTE in Sri Lanka. Subha
might have come along with Dhanu to encourage her and to give training to her
and to tie belt bomb. In March, 1991 Athirai (A-8) met Pottu Amman who
introduced her to Kanagasabapathy (A-7). Pottu Amman told her that Kanagasabapathy
(A-7) was a helper in LTTE and would be coming with her to Delhi to make
arrangements for her stay. The arrangement was that Athirai (A-8) would go to
Delhi purportedly to learn Hindi or computer. She understood that the
arrangement was with a view to gather information regarding certain marked
places in Delhi and the work was in connection with the organization, and
further that if persons belonging to LTTE came to Delhi they would be staying
there in her house and would finish their work without any suspicion.
Relatives
of Kanagasabapathy (A-7) were in Madras. He had already been to Delhi earlier.
Athirai (A-8) and Kanagasabapathy (A-7) came to India in the end of April,
1991. They came in a fully armed boat of LTTE. On reaching Indian soil they
went to the house of V. Kantha Raja (PW-60) @ Chokan, another LTTE sympathizer.
That place was Kodiakkarai. From there V. Kantha Raja (PW-60) took them to
Madras and they went to the house of Jayakumari (PW-109) who was a relative of
Kanagasabapathy (A-7). While they were staying in the house of Jayakumari
(PW-109) Sivarasan came to meet her which was a pre-arranged meeting earlier by
Pottu Amman. Sivarasan gave money to Athirai (A-8) for expenses and for her
stay in Delhi. It appeared to Athirai (A-8) that Sivarasan was incharge of her.
Athirai (A-8) said in her confession that later on she came to understand that
when occasion would arise Sivarasan and other LTTE people would come for their
purposes to Delhi and would be staying in the house taken by her. Sivarasan
also gave money to Kanagasabapathy (A-7) for expenses. Once when Sivarasan came
to the house of Jayakumari (PW-109), Athirai (A-8) told him that there were all
male members in the house of Jayakumari (PW-109). He, therefore, took her to
the house of P. Thirumathi Vimala (PW-62). Athirai (A-8) said that that house
was arranged through Shanmugavadivelu (A-15) as both P. Thirumathi Vimala
(PW-62) and Shanmugavadivelu (A-15) are sympathizers of LTTE. Athirai (A-8)
would either go to the house of Shanmugavadivelu (A-15) or Thangam Stores, a
store nearby, to telephone her elder brothers in Germany. P. Thirumathi Vimala
(PW-62) or her daughter would company her. Athirai (A-8), P. Thirumathi Vimala
(PW-62), her family members and her father then went outside Madras on
excursion from 8.5.1991 to 14.5.1991. P. Thirumathi Vimala (PW-62) in her
statement said that on 5.5.1991 Shanmugavadivelu (A-15) with some other person
had come to her house in her absence. That person had brought a letter from her
mother in Sri Lanka for her. The letter (Exh.P-209) was left in the house. Next
day the boy aged about 22 or 23 years came to her house. He was wearing pant
and shirt and was also wearing spectacles. P. Thirumathi Vimala (PW-62) said
she could not find if that person was having artificial eye in his left eye. By
the time that person came she had read the letter. Shanmugavadivelu (A-15) was
not there at that time. That person introduced himself as Raghu (Sivarasan). On
account of the letter from her mother P. Thirumathi Vimala (PW-62) asked
Sivarasan what help she could offer him. Sivarasan said that he brought a lady
with him who had to go to Germany and that her name was Gowri (Athirai (A-8))
and he wanted a secured place for her to stay. Sivarasan told P. Thirumathi Vimala
(PW-62) that she being mother of daughters might accept his request to allow
Athirai (A-8) to stay in her house. He said Athirai (A-8) would leave within a
month. P. Thirumathi Vimala (PW-62) agreed. On 7.5.1991 Sivarasan brought
Athirai (A8) along with him to stay with P. Thirumathi Vimala (PW-62). On
16.5.1991 Sivarasan again came to meet Athirai (A-8) and gave her Rs.10,000/-
to meet her expenses. In between Sivarasan asked Kanagasabapathy (A-7) to make
efforts to arrange the house for himself (Kanagasabapathy (A-7)) and for
Athirai's (A-8) stay at Delhi and for this purpose he gave Rs.23,000/- to him.
Kanagasabapathy
(A-7) accompanied by one Vanan, whom she did not know, left for Delhi on
20.5.1991. Sivarasan came to meet Athirai (A-8) one day after the assassination
of Rajiv Gandhi and told her that it was difficult to take charge of her as
police might arrest him. He told her that Santhan (A-2) would take charge of
her. Speaking about the assassination of Rajiv Gandhi Sivarasan laughed. After
his return from Delhi Kanagasabapathy (A-7) did not meet Athirai (A-8). He,
therefore, shifted from the house of Jayakumari (PW-109) due to police
surveillance. Sivarasan met Athirai (A-8) on 3.6.1991. Thereafter Santhan (A-2)
used to visit her frequently. Sivarasan, Kanagasabapathy (A-7), Manju, daughter
of P. Thirumathi Vimala (PW-62) and Athirai (A-8) used to meet at Marina Beach
and talked about the status of Sri Lankan Tamilians as compared to status of
Tamilians in India. In one of these meetings Kanagasabapathy (A-7) told Athirai
(A-8) that he had arranged a double bed room house at Delhi. They decided to go
to Delhi on 1.7.1991. Three days before that day Santhan (A-2) came and told
Athirai (A-8) that police was interrogating Shanmugavadivelu (A-15) and it
would be better for her not to stay with P. Thirumathi Vimala (PW-62) any
further. He took Athirai (A-8) to the house of one Rajagopal at Pammal and
introduced her to him as Sasikala. Santhan (A-2) himself went in hiding.
Athirai (A-8) went to the house of P. Thirumathi Vimala (PW-62) for taking
leave of her that she and Kanagasabapathy (A-7) were going to Trichy as they
did not like to be caught by police. Rajagopal and Santhan (A-2) then took them
to the railway station from where they boarded a train for Delhi. At Delhi they
were taken into police custody.
On The
morning of 15.5.1991 Athirai (A-8), who was staying with P. Thirumathi Vimala
(PW-62) wanted to make a phone call from the house of Shanmugavadivelu (A-15).
Anju, daughter of P. Thirumathi Vimala (PW-62) went along with her but found
the house of Shanmugavadivelu (A-15) locked and came back. P. Thirumathi Vimala
(PW-62) then took Athirai (A-8) again to the house of Shanmugavadivelu (A-15)
for making a phone call but the house was locked at that time too. She then
advised that they could make a call from Thangam Stores which was near to her
house. Athirai (A8) said that they gave their address to the shopkeeper who
would immediately come and inform them if there was a call for Athirai (A-8).
On 21.5.91 Athirai (A-8) was still staying with P. Thirumathi Vimala (PW-62).
When P. Thirumathi Vimala (PW-62) saw the photograph of Sivarasan in the
newspaper with the news that he was connected with the murder of Rajiv Gandhi
she told this to Athirai (A-8). P. Thirumathi Vimala (PW-62) asked Athirai
(A-8) if Sivarasan was the person connected with the murder of Rajiv Gandhi and
whether he brought Athirai (A-8) along with him. Athirai (A-8) said it was not
so and that Sivarasan was a paper reporter and that he might have gone there
(Sriperumbudur) and that by mistake his photograph would have been published.
Athirai (A-8) told P. Thirumathi Vimala (PW-62) that she need not get scared
about that and that it would not be so. On 3.6.1991 when P. Thirumathi Vimala (PW-62)
came back from her school in the afternoon and was climbing stairs to go to her
house Sivarasan and Athirai (A-8) were coming down from the upper stairs
talking to each other. P. Thirumathi Vimala (PW-62) was shocked and scared and
asked Sivarasan as to why he acted in that way. She said her children and
grand-father at home were crying bitterly and that he should take away Athirai
(A-8) from there and asked him not to come to her house any further. Sivarasan
said that he would not come thereafter and that persons who would identify him
and give information about him would meet with the same fate as Padmanabha and
that it would apply to whomsoever it might be. Saying this he went away and did
not come thereafter. P. Thirumathi Vimala (PW62) told Athirai (A-8) also not to
stay there any further and asked her to go away. At this Athirai (A-8) cried
and said she did not have anyone else other than P. Thirumathi Vimala (PW-62)
and that Sivarasan had already gone away. She pleaded that she be permitted to
stay on. P. Thirumathi Vimala (PW-62) kept quiet. She read in the papers
requiring all Sri Lankan refugees to get their names registered.
Since
Athirai (A-8) was not having any passport or any other document P. Thirumathi
Vimala (PW-62) sent her daughter Manju along with Athirai (A-8) to get Athirai
(A-8) registered as refugee. They returned and said it had been done.
Application form requesting for issuance of identification card for Athirai
(A-8) is Exh.P-214 and the application for getting name registered is Exh.P215.
These were filled and signed by Athirai (A-8) and bear her photograph fixed on
it. One day when P. Thirumathi Vimala (PW-62) returned from her school she was
told by her children that uncle of Athirai (A-8) by the name Kangasabapathy had
come. At this P. Thirumathi Vimala (PW-62) confronted with Athirai (A-8) that
from where her uncle had come when she earlier had told her that she had no one
to go to. She said that her uncle had come from Trichy and she knew about that
only when he came. Next day Kanagasabapathy (A-7) again came and P. Thirumathi
Vimala (PW-62) accordingly asked him as to why they were hatching conspiracy at
her house and that photograph of the person who brought Athirai (A-8) had been
published in the newspapers. She asked him to take away Athirai (A-8).
Kanagasabapathy
(A-7) said that he was going to Trichy and would come back again and take her
away. After few days Santhan (A-2) came. P. Thirumathi Vimala (PW-62) asked him
also to take away Athirai (A-8). A few days thereafter Santhan (A-2) had come
to the house of P. Thirumathi Vimala (PW-62) and informed her that CBI had come
to the house of Shanmugavadivelu (A-15) and conducted search there and had
caught him. He said CBI might come to her house also and since Athirai (A-8)
was not holding a passport it would be a problem for her and therefore he had
to take Athirai (A-8) as directed by Sivarasan. Athirai (A-8) then went with
Santhan (A-2).
Kanagasabapathy
(A-7) is a Sri Lankan national. He did not make any confession. He came to
India in the last week of April, 1991 along with Athirai (A-8). He was having a
genuine passport (MO-558) which was seized from him. He did not come to India
through proper channel but landed at Kodiakkarai with Athirai (A8). Jayakumari
(PW-109), who is also a Sri Lankan national, came to India in 1986 through
proper channel. In between she went to Sri Lanka after her marriage and again
returned to India in March, 1988. At that time Kanagasabapathy (A-7) who is her
uncle (her mother's sister's husband) had also come along with her.
Kanagasabapathy
(A-7) went back to Sri Lanka in August, 1988. In September, 1989 he again came
to India to attend his son's wedding and then returned to Sri Lanka. On the
morning of 26.4.1991 he came to the house of Jayakumari (PW-109) along with a
young girl, Athirai (A-8) and another person. Kanagasabapathy (A-7) told
Jayakumari (PW-109) that Athirai's (A-8) name was Gowri and she belonged to Sri
Lanka and that her mother had expired in military attack and that she had come
to study computer and journalism at Delhi. He also said that Athirai (A-8)
would not talk much due to the grief of her mother's death. He did not
introduce the other person but addressed him as brother, who left in the
afternoon. Following day Kanagasabapathy (A-7) and Athirai (A-8) went to a book
shop at Mount Road to buy some books.
They
purchased there Delhi Road map. They were also searching for a book containing
addresses of VIPs but it was not available. On 2.5.1991 that person who had
come with Kanagasabapathy (A-7) and Athirai (A-8) on 26.4.1991 came with
Sivarasan. On 7.5.1991 Sivarasan again came and took Athirai (A-8) with him.
Before leaving Athirai (A-8) told Jayakumari (PW-109) that she would be staying
at her brother's place and later she would go to Delhi. On 10.5.1991 Sivarasan
again came on motorcycle and took along with him Kanagasabapathy (A-7). Later
Kanagasabapathy (A-7) came back to the house and took his brief case, etc. and
told Jayakumari (PW-109) that he was leaving for Delhi and would return after a
week. On 30/31.5.1991 Kanagasabapathy (A-7) with two more persons came to the
house of Jayakumari (PW-109) in an auto. He stayed in the house while other two
left. Jayakumari (PW-109) informed Kanagasabapathy (A-7) that police was searching
houses of Sri Lankans stating that Sri Lankans were involved in Rajiv Gandhi
murder case and she asked him to register in the police station. He declined
and left the house at about 9.00 p.m. He left behind a brief case which
Jayakumari (PW-109) opened and found that it contained airlines tickets and a
letter written by a person from Tamil Nadu House, Delhi. This letter was
written to a person serving in Delhi Airport Authority to assist
Kanagasabapathy (A7). Kanagasabapathy (A-7) kept on coming to the house of
Jayakumari (PW-109).
He
asked her to give the telephone number of Athirai (A-8).
Jayakumari
(PW-109) knew earlier that Sivarasan was having one eye and when it was
published in the newspaper in the second week of June, 1991 that a person
connected with the murder of Rajiv Gandhi was having one eye, she inquired from
Kanagasabapathy (A-7) about Sivarasan and his connection with him.
Kanagasabapathy (A-7) told her that she was imagining things and if she
entertained in her mind anything harmful to Kanagasabapathy (A-7) or Athirai
(A-8) God would punish her. Jayakumari (PW-109) did give telephone number of
Athirai (A-8) to Kanagasabapathy (A7) and said he was putting them in
unnecessary problem. He said he would not come if she gave him the telephone
number. It is only through newspapers that Jayakumari (PW-109) came to know the
name of the person as Sivarasan, who had come to her house for the first time
on 2.5.1991. Athirai (A-8) telephoned Jayakumari (PW-109) on 17.6.1991 and gave
telephone number as 8250228 and told her to give the number to Kanagasabapathy
(A-7). That number was given by Jayakumari (PW-109) to Kanagasabapathy (A-7).
On 29.6.1991 Kanagasabapathy (A-7) again came to the house of Jayakumari
(PW-109), took his belongings and said that he was leaving for Delhi and from
where he would go to Johannesburg. When on 30/31.5.1991 Kanagasabapathy (A-7)
with two other persons came they told her that they had come from Delhi by
aeroplane. Kanagasabapathy (A-7) opened an account in Canara Bank and he gave
the address of Jayakumari (PW-109).
The
account opening form is Exh.P-516. On 20.5.1991 Kanagasabapathy (A-7) went to
Delhi by flight with one Vanan and stayed in Hotel Krishna there. K. Thiagarajan
(PW-57) helped Kanagasabapathy (A-7) to get a house on rent at Moti Bagh in
Delhi on monthly rent of Rs.2,000 and an advance of Rs.6,000/-. He was also
staying in Krishna Hotel, Delhi. That Kanagasabapathy (A-7) and Vanan travelled
by air is evident by flight coupons of Indian Airlines (Exh.P-1329 and Exh.P-1330).
In the note book (MO-159), diaries (MO-180 and Exh.P-1253), which are of
Sivarasan, amounts have been shown to have been paid to Kanagasabapathy (A-7)
and Athirai (A-8) and also to Vanan.
In the
wireless message (Exh.P-407) dated 14.6.1991 Sivarasan informed Pottu Amman
that there was no news of Kanagasabapathy (A-7) who had gone to Delhi. This
wireless message had been intercepted by T.P. Sitther (PW-78) and decoded by S.
Mani (PW-84). On both the occasions at Delhi Kanagasabapathy (A-7) first time
with Vanan and second time with Athirai (A-8) stayed in the Krishna Hotel.
Ramkumar (PW-196), partner of the Krishna hotel has given statement with
reference to the registers of arrival and departure (Exh.P-931) kept in the
hotel. He had identified Kanagasabapathy (A-7) and Athirai (A-8). According to
his record K. Thiagarajan (PW-57) along with Rajiv Pant stayed in the hotel
from 19.5.1991 to 1.6.1991 and Kanagasabapathy (A-7) and Vanna stayed from
20.5.1991 to 29.5.1991. Entry in the hotel register on 3.7.1991 was made by
Kanagasabapathy (A-7). They declared their nationality as Indian. Purpose of
visit of Kanagasabapathy (A-7) was mentioned as business and that of Athirai
(A-8) studies and place from where they arrived is mentioned as Madras. On 4.7.1991
both Kanagasabapathy (A-7) and Athirai (A-8) were arrested by the CBI at
Krishna Hotel, Delhi.
Vijayanandan
(A-5) is a Sri Lankan national. He came to India on 1.5.1991 and was one of the
members of the nine members group. He made no confession. A forged passport
(MO-559) was recovered from him and seized during investigation. P.G. Abeykoon
Bandara (PW-185) who was Deputy Controller, Deptt. of Immigration and
Emigration, Sri Lanka had testified that the passport (MO559) was a forged
document. On arrival from Sri Lanka Vijayanandan (A-5) stayed in Komala Vilas
Lodge, Madras. He made entry (Exh.P-497) in the arrival register of the Lodge
(Exh.P496).
He
wrote that he had come from Madurai and was a teacher by profession. The reason
which he gave for coming to Madras was "wedding". This had been
testified by A. Ravindra Reddy (PW-100) Manager of Komala Vilas Lodge. Document
Exh.P-351 is a slip of paper recovered from the residence of N. Vasantha Kumar
(PW-75). This slip of paper has been marked as Exh.P-351 in the statement of N.
Vasantha Kumar (PW-75) when he said that he could identify the document
regarding the books, etc. purchased by Vijayanandan (A-5) when he was staying
in his house. It is doubtful if such a statement is enough to prove the
document. This document was put to the accused in his statement under Section
313 Cr.P.C. which he denied. This document shows the arrival of Vijayanandan
(A-5) at Kodiakkarai on Indian soil on 1.5.1991 and then his coming to stay in
Komala Vilas Lodge.
In
diary (MO-180) of Sivarasan seized from the house of Jayakumar (A-10) it is
mentioned that a sum of Rs.50,000/- was paid to Vijayanandan (A-5) on 8.5.1991.
There is also an entry in this diary which shows that Sivarasan was to meet
Vijayanandan (A-5) on 18.5.1991 in the morning from 9 to 12. That he did come
to the house of N. Vasantha Kumar (PW-75) has been spoken to by N. Vasantha
Kumar (PW-75).
Shankar
(A-4) is a Sri Lankan national. He is also one of the nine members' group who
came to India in a boat on 1.5.1991. At Kodiakkarai where the boat came Shankar
(A-4) stayed with one Jagadeesan till 15.5.1991 and then came to Madras and
stayed at Easwari Lodge from 16.5.1991 to 23.5.1991. Before coming over to
Madras Shankar (A-4) met Murugan (A-3) at Kodiakkarai when Murugan (A-3) was
going for Jaffna but could not leave as boat had not arrived from Sri Lanka.
Murugan (A-3) gave him a slip of paper containing (Ext. 1062) his name 'Thass'
and name of Nalini (A-1) and her telephone number 419493. Santhan (A-2) and
Sivarasan met Shankar (A-4) at Easwari Lodge and gave him Rs.10,000/-. Santhan
(A-2) and Sivarasan knew the place of stay of Shankar (A-4). On 23.5.1991
Shankar (A-4) sought help of S. Kalyan Krishnan (PW-58) owner of the Easwari
Lodge to contact Sivarasan or Robert Payas (A-9) on telephone number 2343402 of
Ebenezer Stores. Shankar (A4) was arrested on 7.6.1991 at Thiruthuraipoondi
near Nagapattinam. Exh.P-401 is a wireless message from Sivarasan to Pottu
Amman dated 9.6.1991 which reads :- "....There is news that one of my
associates was caught at Nagapattinam and he has told all the news, things
about me....". In letter (Exh.P-129) dated 7.9.1991 from Trichy Santhan
(DA) to Prabhakaran it was mentioned that CBI had caught the Shanmugham (DA)
only after it was disclosed by Shankar (A-4) Murugan (A-3), Robert Payas (A-9)
and Santhan (A-2) that all had come (from Sri Lanka) and landed at Shanmugham's
place. In diary (Exh.P-1253) of Sivarasan the fact that Rs.10,000/- was paid to
Shankar (A-4) was mentioned. In note book (MO-159) of Sivarasan there is again
a mention of payment of Rs.5,000/- by Sivarasan to Shankar (A-4) (Exh.P-439).
Ch. Gandhi (PW-267) is hand-writing expert and has proved the hand-writing of
Sivarasan.
S.
Kalyan Krishnan (PW-58) is running Easwari Lodge. With reference to his guest
register maintained in his lodge he said that on the evening of 16.5.1991 one
Jagadeesan came to his lodge to take a room. He said he was regular customer
for the past about 20 or 25 years. He said later a guest whose name he came to
know was Shankar (A-4) joined Jagadeesan. Though Jagadeesan left Shankar (A-4)
continued to stay in the lodge. On 23.5.1991 Shankar (A-4) told S. Kalyan
Krishnan (PW-58) that he was vacating the room and was going to his native
place. He wanted to make a phone call. He gave a slip of paper on which it was
written in ink as "Payas house, Sivarasa," and a telephone number was
also mentioned. S. Kalyan Krishnan (PW-58) telephoned that number and was told
that Payas house was situated at a distance of about 11/2 furlong and message
could not be conveyed. He, however, got the address of Robert Payas (A-9) and
made a note of that on the slip of paper given by Shankar (A-4). That slip of
paper (Exh.P164) was identified by S. Kalyan Krishnan (PW-58). The address in
pencil on the slip (Exh.P-164) was in the hand of S. Kalyan Krishnan (PW-58).
This slip he kept with him and wrote another slip (Exh.P-1645) giving the
details of the address of Robert Payas's (A-9) house to Shankar (A-4). S.
Kalyan Krishnan (PW-58) also explained to Shankar (A-4) a route to go to Robert
Payas (A9) house. There is, however, nothing in the evidence to show that
Shankar (A-4) did go to the house of Robert Payas (A-9).
Robert
Payas (A-9), his wife Prema, sister Premlatha, brother-in-law Jayakumar (A-10),
his wife Shanthi (A-11) and some other 30 or 35 Tamils had come to India in
September, 1990 from Sri Lanka and got themselves registered as refugees on
20.9.1990. As noted above Prema, wife of Robert Payas (A-9) and Jayakumar (A-10)
are brother and sister. Shanthi (A-11) is Indian national. Others are all Sri
Lankan nationals. Shanmughalingam is the father of Prema and Jayakumar (A-10).
In his confession Robert Payas (A-9) said that he had been helping LTTE since
1985 during war first with Sri Lankan army and thereafter with Indian army
IPKF. He said a rival organization EPRLF betrayed them to IPKF which caught
hold of them and kept them in custody for 15 days. IPKF also raided their
houses and beat up the ladies severely. He said at that time due to the action
of IPKF his son aged 1-1/2 months died. He said they had developed hatred
towards IPKF and even EPRLF. According to him IPKF was subjecting common people
to great sufferings like committing murders, rape and other kinds of ill-treatments
and harassment. Jayakumar (A-10) was a frequent visitor to Tamil Nadu. Porur
house of Jayakumar (A-10) was rented through M. Utham Singh (PW56) proprietor
of Ebenezer Stores who was paid commission. Jayakumar (A-10) also shifted to
another house in Kodungaiyur. These two houses were arranged in such a way as
to accommodate LTTE people comfortably. In the Porur house many LTTE personnel
came to visit or even to stay there. Robert Payas (A-9) opened a Savings Bank
account in the Central Bank of India in his name. He said Kanthan had purchased
one red colour Yamaha motorcycle bearing registration No. TN-09-A-8213 in the
name Raja. Nishanthan had made arrangement for purchase of the motorcycle while
Kanthan made the payment. Kanthan, Nishanthan and Sivarasan were making use of
the motorcycle. Robert Payas (A9) said that he knew that Sivarasan and Kanthan
had come to India for some dreaded jobs and it was a known fact about LTTE's
activities and its hand in assassinating Padmanabha and his friends in Madras.
After some time Sivarasan started staying in the house of Jayakumar (A-10).
Sivarasan used to come over to the residence of Robert Payas (A-9) frequently
and to meet Kanthan and Santhan (A-2). In February, 1991 Sivarasan had come to
Porur house along with Murugan (A-3), who stayed with Robert Payas (A9) for two
days and thereafter went to stay at Royapettah house. Murugan (A-3) was a
frequent visitor to the house of Robert Payas (A-9).
He
would come over there along with Sivarasan or of his own.
He would
come to take money from Kanthan or even to see Sivarasan. They used to assemble
in the house of Robert Payas (A9) and plan works for their "movement"
and then they would execute those works as per their plans. LTTE members would
have contacts with Sivarasan, Kanthan, Nishanthan through the telephone number
2343402 installed in Ebenezer Stores of M. Utham Singh (PW56). Even calls would
come from Colombo, Canada and England. T. Soundara Pandian (PW-54), who was
working in Ebenezer Stores, would bring the messages. In the absence of
Sivarasan, Kanthan and Nishanthan those messages would be received by Robert
Payas (A-9) to help them. Kanthan only used to arrange for the money and give
them to all for the conspiratorial work of LTTE. He would bring gold biscuits,
encash them and give money to Sivarasan, Murugan (A-3) and other LTTE members.
Indirankutty,
another LTTE activist, would come from Trichy quite frequently. He would also
help persons like Sivarasan and Kanthan. In the beginning of May, 1991 Sivarasan
brought Santhan (A-2) to the house of Robert Payas (A-9).
Santhan
(A-2) stayed there for two days and then at Haribabu's house. On 5.5.1991
Robert Payas (A-9), Santhan (A-2), Murugan (A-3), Haribabu, Arivu (A-18) and
Sivarasan all met at Marina Beach. On 9.5.1991 Indirankutty came to Robert
Payas (A-9) with Ruban (A-6) who had lost one of his legs in a bomb blast in
Sri Lanka and had come to India with Sivarasan for medical treatment. Robert
Payas (A-9) helped Sivarasan to get a learning licence for motorcycle. He could
not get a regular licence as he had lost one of his eyes. A week before the
assassination of Rajiv Gandhi Sivarasan and Kanthan had come to the residence
of Robert Payas (A-9) and they had a conference. Kanthan gave money to
Sivarasan. Robert Payas (A-9) said that that money was used for their
conspiracy work. Between 15.5.1991 to 21.5.1991 Santhan (A-2) came to the
residence of Robert Payas (A-9) three times, first time when he came Kanthan
gave him Rs.2.00 lacs to hand over the same to Sivarasan who was staying at the
residence of Jayakumar (A-10), second time Santhan (A-2) got Rs.5.00 lacs and
went away. One or two days later Robert Payas (A-9) and Santhan (A-2) went to
market to make certain purchases for Ruban (A-6) which were needed for his
journey to Jaipur and back. Ruban (A-6) was staying with Robert Payas (A-9).
Robert Payas (A-9) also mentioned the name of Vanan being an LTTE member. He
said in the month of May he had gone to the residence of Vanan.
There
he met Vijayanandan (A-5) who had come to India in the boat along with
Sivarasan, Santhan (A-2) and others in the beginning of May, 1991. According to
Robert Payas (A-9) Sivarasan and Santhan (A-2) would also be going over to the
residence of Vanan. On his first visit to Delhi, Kanagasabapathy (A-7) had gone
along with Vanan. This Vanan has not been examined. Robert Payas (A-9) said in
his confession that between 15.5.1991 and 20.5.1991 Ramanan, Santhan (A-2),
Rangam and Kanthan had come to his residence several times in connection with
the LTTE conspiracy and they used to receive phone calls from Sivarasan through
Ebenezer Stores. On 21.5.1991 Robert Payas (A9) was at his residence. On
22.5.1991 he got the news of Rajiv Gandhi assassination. He did not leave his
residence on 23.5.1991 expecting message from Sivarasan. On 24.5.1991 Sivarasan
came to his house in his Kawasaki Bajaj motorcycle to meet Kanthan but Kanthan
was not there. On 25.5.1991 when Kanthan came on his red Yamaha motorcycle
Robert Payas (A-9) told him that Sivarasan had come the previous day looking
for him. On 27.5.1991 Santhan (A-2) came to the residence of Robert Payas (A-9)
and they all decided to leave Madras in order to escape from the police. On
28.5.1991 they bought tickets in assumed names and went to Thiruchendur by
night bus on 29.5.1991. They did not check in any lodge in Thiruchendur and on
30.5.1991 again by night bus came to Madurai on 31.5.1991. Robert Payas (A-9)
said they took ladies with them to avoid any suspicion. For Madurai also they
took night bus and reached Madras on 1.6.1991. Santhan (A-2) went to some other
place. Robert Payas (A-9) sent his wife and his younger sister to the residence
of his uncle in Vadapalani and he himself went to the residence of one Loga in
Nasapakkam to hide. On 3.6.1991 he went to Vadapalani and brought back his
family to the Porur house. He did not receive any information either from
Sivarasan or Kanthan and in a few days he was arrested by CBI. According to
Robert Payas (A-9) all of his expenses were met by Kanthan who also paid for
the expenses of other LTTE members staying in his house Jayakumar (A-10), who
is husband of Shanthi (A-11) gave a confession. He also talks of war first
between Sri Lankan army and LTTE and then LTTE and IPKF. He said that Robert
Payas (A9), his sister's husband, was helping LTTE in his native village. In
one raid made by IPKF Robert Payas (A-9) and Jayakumar (A-10) were caught and
kept in a camp.
Though
Jayakumar (A-10) was released after a few days but not Robert Payas (A-9).
Lives had become miserable because of raids by IPKF. They were now having close
contacts with LTTE movement who were providing them even financial help.
In
September, 1990 Jayakumar (A-10) said LTTE "people" told Robert Payas
(A-9) and him to go and stay in Madras with instructions to keep houses ready
for their purpose. He said on account of the atrocities committed jointly by
IPKF and EPRLF, the LTTE movement had thought to teach a lesson to the leaders
in India and to the persons belonging to EPRLF hiding in Madras. Since they
were sent by LTTE movement to India they did not give two sovereigns of gold
and pay Rs.1500/- for each of the person coming to India which LTTE was
charging. After getting themselves registered at Rameshwaram as refugees they
all went to stay at Madras. Nishanthan, Saravanan, Raja @ Kalapathy, all LTTE
people, arranged Porur house which was rented out in the name of Jayakumar
(A-10). Nishanthan and Kumaradoss stayed in Porur house with Robert Payas (A-9)
and Jayakumar (A-10) families. After about one week of stay in Porur house
another LTTE activist Kanthan also came and stayed in the house. Since both
Jayakumar (A-10) and Robert Payas (A-9) were unemployed Kanthan was giving them
money. In fact Kanthan was providing money for all the matters of LTTE movement
in Madras. A wireless set was installed at Porur house after Kanthan had come
to stay there. He and Nishanthan @ Nixon used to talk to the movement at Jaffna
by wireless. Another supporter of LTTE Indirankutty also used to come to Porur
house in white Maruti van bearing registration number TAY-9444 from Trichy. He
would also get money from Kanthan. Jayakumar (A-10) also talks of buying a
motorcycle by Kanthan in the name of Shanmugaraja, an LTTE man through Sarvanan
and Kalapathi @ Raja. Jayakumar (A-10) said that Robert Payas (A-9) and Kanthan
told him that a high ranking person from the movement would come to India
during the second week of December and that his name was Sivarasan and was
coming to India with a dangerous plot. It was decided that another house should
be arranged by Jayakumar (A-10) for his stay. It was so thought that since
Jayakumar (A-10) would be staying with family nobody would have suspicion on
Sivarasan. Kanthan also told Jayakumar (A-10) that Sivarasan would give him the
required money for all the expenses. Accordingly Kodungaiyur house was rented
with the help of Ramaswamy, father-in-law of Jayakumar (A-10). The house was
taken in the name of Ramaswamy.
Jayakumar
(A-10) moved with his family to that house in December, 1990 and after a
fortnight or so Robert Payas (A-9) brought Sivarasan to his house and told him
that Sivarasan would stay there. Jayakumar (A-10) was told that he should be
helpful to Sivarasan and to all the activities of the movement. Jayakumar
(A-10) said "that Sivarasan was sent to India by the movement to fulfil a
dangerous plot".
Sivarasan
had brought a suitcase with him in which he kept his dresses, AK-47 rifle, a
diary and a pistol. Whenever he would go out he would take pistol with him kept
concealed in a thick book where he had made a cavity. From January to April,
1991 Sivarasan went to Sri Lanka two or three times and returned. On 2.5.1991
when he returned from Sri Lanka he brought two LTTE lady tigresses Dhanu and
Subha.
Jayakumar
(A10) said it was known to him that "Sivarasan had brought those two LTTE
movement lady tigers with a murder plan". He said it was also known to him
that Sivarasan and lady tigresses had decided to wreak vengeance for the
atrocities committed by IPKF. After staying in the house of Jayakumar (A-10)
for a day or so those two girls went to stay in the house of Vijayan (A-12) and
Bhaskaran (A-14), his father-in-law. Sivarasan also bought one red colour Bajaj
Kawasaki motorcycle which he kept in the house of Vijayan (A-12). Subha and
Dhanu would often come to the house of Jayakumar (A-10). Shanthi (A-11) would
go with them for shopping. Sivarasan would visit the house of Vijayan (A-12)
daily. One day when Sivarasan came to stay in the house of Jayakumar (A-10) he
brought Santhan (A-2), who was his "partner". Jayakumar (A-10) said
that he knew that Santhan (A-2) was in connivance with Sivarasan in all the
activities and that Santhan (A-2) was assisting Sivarasan "for the
dangerous work which he would carry out".
Since
Jayakumar (A-10) had no work Sivarasan gave him Rs.35,000/- and asked him to
start a business of grinding coffee seeds. On 19.4.1991 Jayakumar (A-10) paid
Rs.20,000/- as advance and took a shop on rent in the name of his wife Shanthi
(A-11) at a monthly rent of Rs.450/-.
He
bought coffee seeds grinding machine also for Rs.15,000/-. Then he applied for
a telephone connection paying Rs.8,000/- for his shop. He applied for telephone
connection in the name of his wife Shanthi (A-11).
Telephone
connection was applied for the convenience of Sivarasan and other persons of
LTTE movement to contact among themselves. Whenever Subha and Dhanu came to the
house of Jayakumar (A-10) Sivarasan would take them separately and talk to them
secretly. A few days before the assassination of Rajiv Gandhi Sivarasan told
Jayakumar (A-10) to stitch a cloth cover for his pistol which Shanthi (A-11)
did. If the gun was put in the cover it would not be visible to others. Then
Sivarasan also got one kurta and pyzama. The measurements were provided by
Jayakumar (A-10) as Sivarasan was not willing to go to the tailoring shop.
One
day Shanthi (A-11) also took Subha to nearby tailoring shop and got dresses
stitched for her. Jayakumar (A-10) was quite often visiting the house of Robert
Payas (A-9). In the month of May, 1991 he had seen Sivarasan, Kanthan, Santhan
(A-2) and Murugan (A-3) in that house. There they would confer about the plot.
Then Jayakumar (A-10) added "about a week before the murder of Rajiv
Gandhi, Sivarasan had talked with Santhan (A-2) about his murder plan".
Sivarasan
left the house of Jayakumar (A-10) on the morning of 21.5.1991 and returned at
1 O'clock and went to his room.
He
changed his dress and now he wore kurta-pyzama. He hid a pistol in his dress.
He was supposed to go to the public meeting of Rajiv Gandhi at Sriperumbudur.
From the house of Jayakumar (A-10) he went to the house of Vijayan (A-12). He
returned at 12.30 in the night with Subha and Nalini (A-1).
It was
confirmed that Rajiv Gandhi was murdered by Dhanu.
Sivarasan
then went upstairs to talk about the incident with Santhan (A-2). In the
morning of 22.5.1991 Santhan (A-2) went out and bought newspaper. Afterwards
Subha and Nalini (A-1) went to watch news on TV to the neigbour's house (D.J. Swaminathan
(PW-85)) while Sivarasan went to the house of Vijayan (A-12). On 23.5.1991 in
the morning Sivarasan went out with Nalini (A-1) and then took Subha and left
her at the house of Vijayan (A-12). When he came back in the night he said that
he had decided to leave within a day or two.
He
kept all his things in a suitcase which included his cloths and that of Subha,
two big dictionaries and notebooks which Sivarasan was keeping, took the pistol
separately and packed the bullets in a separate parcel. In the notebooks
Sivarasan used to write his income and expenses. In the suitcase he also kept
photos, passports, cassettes and the artificial eye which he used to wear. On
his directions Jayakumar (A-10) dug a pit in the corner of the kitchen where he
placed the suitcase and parcel of bullets and covered the pit with a concrete
slab that he had bought, again on the instructions of Sivarasan. Jayakumar
(A-10) then painted the area in such a way that nobody could find out. All
these things were seized on 26.6.1991 as disclosed in the confession statement
of Jayakumar (A-10). Sivarasan then left but Santhan (A-2) kept on staying in
the house for two or three days. Then he also left as Sivarasan had instructed
Jayakumar (A10) to change the house. Before leaving he gave Rs.5,000/- to Jayakumar
(A-10). On the same day or the following day Nero (DA) another partner of
Sivarasan came and received a bag from Jayakumar (A-10) as per instructions of
Sivarasan. Earlier also Nero had come to the house of Jayakumar (A-10). He was
connected with the LTTE movement and a helper of Sivarasan.
M.
Utham Singh (PW-56) is the owner of Ebenezer Stores in Porur locality. T.
Soundara Pandian (PW-54) was working as assistant in his shop. Telephone number
2343402 was installed in his shop premises. One person by name Shanmugham got
acquainted with M. Utham Singh (PW-56) as he had been buying provisions from
his shop. Rajakalapathy and his wife, father-in-law and motherin-law were also
residing with Shanmugham. In September, 1990 two Sri Lankan Tamilians came to M.
Utham Singh (PW-56) on a red colour Yamaha motorcycle and asked him whether
there was any house available for rent. House of Dr. G.J. Srinivasan (PW-252)
in the said locality was newly built. Dr. G.J. Srinivasan (PW-252) wanted the
house to be let out and for that purpose he had kept a key with M. Utham Singh
(PW-56) for him to show the house to any one who wanted to take the same on
rent. When M. Utham Singh (PW56) asked those two persons if they would give the
name of any acquaintance in the area they told him about Rajakalapathy. When M.
Utham Singh (PW-56) asked them to bring Rajakalapathy he came with them.
The
house in question was shown and they liked the same.
Those
two persons, who came on the motorcycle, were Sarvanan and Nishanthan @ Nixon.
Rate of rent and the advance amount payable was agreed to during discussion
with Dr. G.J.
Srinivasan
(PW-252). On the request of Dr. G.J. Srinivasan (PW252) as to how many members
would be staying in that house Sarvanan furnished the list of seven members on
a white piece of paper (Exh.P-153), who were K. Kumaralingam, K. Kumaradoss, K.
Premalatha, K. Nishanthan, S. Jayakumar, J. Shanthi and K. Prema. Families of
Robert Payas (A-9) and Jayakumar (A-10) then occupied the house. They used to
purchase provision from the shop of M. Utham Singh (PW-56). Robert Payas (A-9)
told M. Utham Singh (PW56) that his relatives were living abroad and requested
him if they made any phone call for Robert Payas (A-9) he might call him. To
this M. Utham Singh (PW-56) agreed. Jayakumar (A-10) also used to receive calls
from Germany and Robert Payas (A-9) from Italy and Denmark. Robert Payas (A-9)
also introduced Kanthan to M. Utham Singh (PW-56), who also requested for the
facility of receiving phone calls. M. Utham Singh (PW-56) said that when these
persons used to attend the calls they would speak only in cerebral 'yes',
'correct', 'O.K.' and some time 'I will come'. Either M. Utham Singh (PW-56) or
his assistant T. Soundara Pandian (PW-54) would go to the house of Robert Payas
(A-9) to tell them of the receipt of the call. On 22.5.1991 M. Utham Singh
(PW-56) did not open the shop because of some ceremony in his house. On
23.5.1991 T. Soundara Pandian (PW-54) came to open the shop in the morning at
7.00 a.m. M. Utham Singh (PW-56) himself did not go. At about 12.30 noon M.
Utham Singh (PW-56) made a call to the shop and asked how was the business. T. Soundara
Pandian (PW-54) told him that it was on an average.
M.
Utham Singh (PW-56) instructed him to close the shop and go home since riots
had broken out in certain areas. At about 1.30 p.m. T. Soundara Pandian (PW-54)
came to the house of M. Utham Singh (PW-56) and told him that he had received a
call from one Shankar, who was staying in some lodging house and had requested
him to call Robert Payas (A-9) or Sivarasan to which T. Soundara Pandian
(PW-54) had replied that he was the only person in the shop and could not go to
give the message. He said after two minutes of that call Shankar again called
him and asked him to give the address of the shop. According to M. Utham Singh
(PW-56) neither Robert Payas (A-9) nor Jayakumar (A-10) was engaged in any
work. In December, 1990 Jayakumar (A-10) shifted from Porur house though still
he would be visiting the shop of M. Utham Singh (PW-56) to purchase provisions.
Rent agreement was executed bearing signatures of Dr. G.J.
Srinivasan
(PW-252) and M. Utham Singh (PW-56). In fact there were two agreements one for
rent (Exh.P-154) and one for fitting and fixtures (Exh.P-155).
T.
Soundara Pandian (PW-54) employee of M. Utham Singh (PW56) said that Robert
Payas (A-9) and Jayakumar (A-10) used to get phone calls from the shop Ebenezer
Stores of which M. Utham Singh (PW56) was the proprietor. The phone calls used
to come from foreign countries and local calls were also received. Apart from
Robert Payas (A-9) and Jayakumar (A-10) Kanthan, Sivarasan and Nixon also used
to come to the shop to receive phone calls. Some time T.
Soundara
Pandian (PW-54) would go to Porur house to leave a message that telephone had
come. He said on second day of the death of Rajiv Gandhi he came to the shop as
usual.
There
was a telephone call and the person who called wanted him to call either
Sivarasan or Robert Payas (A-9). When T.
Soundara
Pandian (PW-54) declined because of riots nearby the phone was disconnected.
After two or three minutes again phone call came and caller identified himself
as Shankar and he said that he was the person who spoke earlier and wanted him
to call Sivarasan or Robert Payas (A-9) urgently. T. Soundara Pandian (PW-54)
told him that he was alone in the shop and could not go to call them. That
person (Shankar) said he was speaking from a lodge and he wanted to have the
address of Robert Payas's (A-9) house.
T.
Soundara Pandian (PW-54) told him that he did not know the number of the house
of Robert Payas (A-9) but that house was next to Ebenezer Stores. He,
therefore, gave the address of Ebenezer Stores. He said he told M. Utham Singh
(PW56) about this call of Shankar.
Robert
Payas (A-9) and Sivarasan had gone to Studio Memory Makers of S. Raghu (PW-59)
on 15.12.1990 for getting passport size photographs. They also went to Kavitha
Driving School of T. Panneer Selvam (PW-61) on 4.4.1991 and 9.5.1991 to take
Driving licence. Robert Payas (A-9) lived in the neighbourhood of Dr. Claud
Fernandez (PW-197), a Dentist. Dr. Claud Fernandez (PW197) knew Robert Payas
(A-9) as he was President of the residents' association of that area. Robert
Payas (A-9) and his friend had come to the clinic of Dr. Claud Fernandez (PW-197)
for treatment.
The
name of his friend was Ramanan. Second time he came with his another friend
whose name was Murugan (A-3). On 23.7.1991 police had come from Malligai CBI
headquarters to the residence of Robert Payas (A-9) and recovered his passport and
other small items. Dr. Claud Fernandez (PW-197) was witness of the recovery. He
said assassination of Rajiv Gandhi took place on 21.5.1991 and "when they
are feeling sad, on 22nd evening at about 6 or 7 p.m. we heard a sound of blast
from the house of Robert Payas (A-9). That was the sound of crackers". He
said he could not see the persons when he came out but above the house of
Robert Payas (A-9) it was filled with smoke.
K.
Kottammal (PW-63) is the owner of Kodungaiyur house where Jayakumar (A-10) and
Shanthi (A-11) started living from 18.12.1990. As noted above the house was
taken on rent in the name of Ramaswamy, father of Shanthi (A-11).
Rent
agreement is Exh.P-217, which bears the signature Ramaswamy and husband of K.
Kottammal (PW-63). K. Kottammal (PW-63) identified the signature of her
husband.
D.J.
Swaminathan (PW-85) was living in house number E-152, Kodungaiyur. It was next
to the house of Jayakumar (A-10) and Shanthi (A-11) which is house No. E-153.
He met Sivarasan who was staying in that house and who told him that he lost
his left eye in an accident. In the first week of May, 1991 he saw Sivarasan
and two girls coming in an auto to the house of Jayakumar (A-10). Their names
were Subha and Dhanu. They stayed for about two days and thereafter D.J.
Swaminathan (PW-85) said he did not see them while Sivarasan continued to stay
in the house. In the first week of May, 1991 Sivarasan came on a new Kawasaki
Bajaj bike. The bike was driven by another person. That was without
registration number. Both these persons stayed in the house of Jayakumar (A10).
He stayed there till 26.5.1991. On the morning of 22.5.1991 when D.J.
Swaminathan
(PW-85) put on the TV to hear the news about the Rajiv Gandhi assassination
Sivarasan, Nalini (A-1) and Subha also came to his house. After the news was
over some one in the family of D.J. Swaminathan (PW-85) remarked that it would
be the work of Liberation Tigers only. Sivarasan asked how could they say so.
The reply was given that Tamil people could not do such kind of job. Sivarasan
then left the place without saying anything. The witness said that they
(presumably Sivarasan, Subha and Nalini (A-1)) were telling that not even rice
was available for cooking. Since all the shops were closed on account of
assassination of Rajiv Gandhi the witness told them that "I will give
rice, if wanted". They declined the offer. At about 12.00 noon they
distributed sweet mixed with grated coconut which made the witness wonder. On
the morning of 23.5.1991 Sivarasan took Nalini (A-1) on his bike. D.J.
Swaminathan (PW-85) said that he did not see Subha thereafter. Sivarasan stayed
in that house for three days. He saw Santhan (A-2) till 26.5.1991. He saw the
photograph of Dhanu on television in the end of May, 1991. When he had seen
Dhanu first time she did not wear spectacles. Initially, therefore, witness
said he could not identify her in the photograph if it was Dhanu.
Two
days thereafter Sivarasan's photograph was shown on T.V. Now D.J. Swaminathan
(PW-85) got suspicious. On 2.6.1991 he dialed telephone number 100 and gave the
information.
When
he told the person receiving the call that Sivarasan and Dhanu stayed in the
house of Jayakumar (A-10) no one made any inquiry. He did not give his address.
Again in the second week of June, 1991 he himself went to the office of CBI
headquarters, Malligai and stated the facts he knew.
His
statement was recorded. On 26.6.1991 house of Jayakumar (A-10) was searched. At
that time Shanthi (A-11) and her father Ramaswamy were there in the house.
Various articles were seized. On 7.7.1991 CBI officers with Jayakumar (A-10)
came to his Kodungaiyur house. They were not having key of the house. Lock was
broken open. Jayakumar (A-10) entered the house and showed the place in the
kitchen at the left side. A slab at that place was removed and it was found
that there was a pit 2-1/2 fit deep. From that pit Jayakumar (A-10) took out a
plastic bag and a suitcase (Aristocrat make). In that bag one belt and two
packets of bullets containing 25 and 18 bullets were found. From the suit case
a dictionary was taken out which was cut out inside so that a pistol could be
kept there. There was one article like artificial eye and five recorded small
micro cassettes, photographs (MO-163 to MO-166), passport (MO-161) in the name of
Thillaiambalam Suthendraraja, notebooks (MO-158, MO-159 and MO-160) and diaries
were also found and recovered. A list was prepared (Exh.P-437) which bears the
signatures of the witness D.J. Swaminathan (PW85). D.J. Swaminathan (PW-85) has
identified photograph of Sivarasan in colour photographs (MO-163 and MO-164)
and black and white photographs (MO-165 and MO-166). Colour photograph (MO-169)
and black and white photographs (MO-170 and MO-171) are the photographs of
Santhan (A-2).
S.
Meera (PW-200) was living in the neighbourhood of Jayakumar (A-10) in the same
locality. She and Shanthi (A-11) became friends and were visiting each other.
When S. Meera (PW200) asked Shanthi (A-11) as to who was the person wearing
spectacles, she said he was her uncle and had a welding shop at Kodungaiyur.
Jayakumar (A-10) was not doing any work and was remaining idle at home. Some
time in the first week of May, 1991 Sivarasan and two women came in an auto at
8.00 p.m. One day in the first week of May itself Sivarasan brought a car
battery on his cycle to the house of Jayakumar (A-10). He, however, took away
that battery same evening itself. The two girls Subha and Dhanu used to come to
the house of Jayakumar (A-10) on ladies' bicycle now and then. S. Meera
(PW-200) said she did not know the names of Sivarasan, Subha and Dhanu in the
first instance but she came to know only when their names were published in the
newspapers or telecast on T.V. She said many people kept on coming and going in
the month of May, 1991 in the house of Jayakumar (A-10). One such person was
husband of Jayakumar's (A10) younger sister as told to S. Meera (PW-200) by
Shanthi (A-11). S. Meera (PW-200) said she was not staying in her house from
7.5.1991 to 23.5.1991 and that she had gone to her mother-inlaw's house.
M.
Janarthanam (PW-71) said that he let out his shop to Shanthi (A-11), wife of
Jayakumar (A-10) in Kodungaiyur and received Rs.20,000/- as advance though he
executed the agreement for Rs.4,500/- only in the month of April, 1991. The
purpose of letting was to run a coffee grinding shop. On 25.7.1991 M.
Janarthanam (PW-71) was called to Malligai office of CBI headquarters where he
handed over the agreement (Exh.P-338). He had also given a letter of consent
(Exh.P-339) to Shanthi (A-11) for installing the coffee grinding machine in the
shop, which he also handed over to the police. During his statement M. Janarthanam
(PW-71) was asked to identify Jayakumar (A-10), who had approached him for
running out the shop along with his brother-in-law Damodaran. M. Janarthanam
(PW-71) identified Bhagyanathan (A-20) as Jayakumar (A-10). M. Janarthanam
(PW-71) said that on 29.1.1992 Ramaswamy, father of Shanthi (A-11) came to the
shop and removed the grinding machine and other equipments. He also asked for
refund of advance of Rs.20,000/- which the witness did not give.
Shanthi
(A-11) wrote a letter (Exh.P-343) on 13.8.1992 to M. Janarthanam (PW-71) from
the prison for the purpose but M. Janarthanam (PW-71) said that letter from
Jayakumar (A-10) should also come. Then Shanthi (A-11) and Jayakumar (A-10)
wrote a letter (Exh.P-344) to M. Janarthanam (PW-71) from the prison. In his
statement M. Janarthanam (PW-71) further stated that the Judge questioned him
in the court to which he replied he did receive Rs.20,000/- advance and said
that he had no objection to return that back. The Judge passed the order on
3.11.1992 that the settlement might be made out of court. M. Janarthanam
(PW-71) said that afterwards Ramaswamy called on him and obtained receipt
(Exh.P-342) from him on 26.12.1992 and he returned the amount of Rs.20,000/-.
V.
Kannan (PW-199) sold the coffee grinding machine for Rs.15,000/-. Receipt
showing the coffee grinding machine is Exh.P-971. Both Jayakumar (A-10) and
Shanthi (A-11) had come to V. Kannan (PW-199) to buy the machine.
Sowmya
Narayanan (PW-70) is one of the staff members from Telecom Department and he
has identified application for telephone connection (Exh.P-336) by Shanthi
(A-11) in OYT scheme for the shop premises. The application was registered on
22.4.1991. A sum of Rs.8,000/- is shown to have been paid with the application.
In the
diary (MO-180) of Sivarasan seized from the house of Jayakumar (A-10) there is
mention of a sum of Rs.10,000/- on 11.4.1991 for telephone.
Jayakumar
(A-10) stated to have made disclosure statement to the police on 9.7.1991
(Exh,P-1436) on the basis of which it is stated that Jayakumar (A-10) took the
police to Kodungaiyur house and recoveries made. The trial Judge has strongly
commented on the conduct of the police in recording the disclosure statement to
boost its case and has criticized the investigating officer in adopting such a
course. In the disclosure statement Jayakumar (A10) said that on 21.5.1991
Sivarasan had dug a pit in the kitchen and kept a brief suitcase and a plastic
bag and then covered the same with a cement slab. He said Sivarasan told him
not to disclose that to any one and not to give the material placed in the pit
to any one except to him.
Vijayan
(A-12), whose confession was recorded, was a lorry driver in Sri Lanka. He
started his own workshop and during the period 1987-89 he used to repair
vehicles of LTTE. When IPKF came to Sri Lanka his work was affected. Selvaluxmi
(A-13) is his wife. She is daughter of Velayudam @ Bhaskaran (A-14). Vijayan (A-12)
decided to come to India in 1990 as his wife was pregnant and he thought that
in India she would get necessary medical facility. One Kutty told him that he
would make arrangements for him to go to India without making any payment to
LTTE. Kutty introduced Vijayan (A-12) to Sivarasan who told him that if he
worked for LTTE his expenses would be looked after by the LTTE.
Sivarasan
told him to take a house on rent and to stay there and that persons belonging
to LTTE would come and stay in that house for their work. While staying at
Tuticorin, Vijayan (A-12) worked in Tuticorin Port Trust and at SPIC as daily
wage earning Rs.20 to Rs.30/- per day. His wife gave birth to a son on
17.10.1990. After Vijayan (A-12) settled in his house in Madras as described earlier
Sivarasan along with Chokkan @ Sabapathi and Munusami, LTTE workers came to his
house. Sivarasan told Vijayan (A-12) that in the first week of May, 1991 he
would bring some LTTE men for an important work and he asked him to make
necessary arrangements for their stay. He was also cautioned by him not to tell
that to anybody. Sivarasan again came on 2.5.1991 with Gokul @ Nero, an LTTE
activist. Both came with a suitcase containing wireless set and other things.
Sivarasan
then informed Vijayan (A-12) that he would bring two LTTE women to the house.
He gave him Rs.10,000/- for his expenses. After three or four days Sivarasan
took him to a place nearby and gave him a big car battery and asked him to take
that to his house. The battery was for fixing a wireless set. Vijayan (A-12)
gave that battery to Nero.
Same
day Sivarasan brought a black and white TV and kept the same in the house. He
said that he had bought this for the family of Vijayan (A-12). Sivarasan asked
Nero to have a link with Sri Lanka through wireless which Nero was able to
achieve within two/three days. Whenever Nero spoke on the wireless he would use
to say from 910 to 91. Vijayan (A-12) bought a battery charger from a shop at
Mount Road, Madras and also other articles of furniture. Sivarasan paid for
all. On 6.5.1991 Sivarasan brought Dhanu and Subha to Vijayan's (A-12) house.
That day his father-in-law Bhaskaran (A-14) had also come from Tuticorin. These
two women would keep their important things in a black bag and would always
carry that whenever they went out. Sivarasan gave money to Vijayan (A-12) to
buy two cycles for the women. Subha and Dhanu would go out on Friday and would
come on Monday morning. On 16/17-5-1991 Sivarasan asked Vijayan (A-12) to dig a
pit in the kitchen to hide the wireless set and guns. Vijayan (A12), Sivarasan
and Nero dug the pit. On the morning of 21.5.1991 Sivarasan came to the house
of Vijayan (A-12). He gave some message to Nero to be transmitted on wireless.
Then he said something to Subha and Dhanu who got ready by 12 O'clock after
having their lunch. Sivarasan again came at 12.30 p.m. wearing a Kurta-Pyzama
with a camera in his hand. He asked Dhanu and Subha to get ready. Vijayan
(A-12) said usually his wife would help Subha to wear saree. On that day, however,
Subha and Dhanu both closed the door of their room and got dressed. They took
about half an hour to dress. Subha was wearing a saree; Dhanu was wearing
orange colour kurta and green colour dupatta. She was wearing spectacles.
Generally
she did not wear spectacles in the house. A photo session started. 10
photographs were taken among themselves with the camera Sivarasan had brought.
Vijayan (A-12) took photographs of Subha, Dhanu and Sivarasan together. Dhanu
had put on over make-up on her face. Sivarasan asked Vijayan (A12) and Nero to
go and bring an auto. He told them not to bring the auto near the house and to
stop that near the bus stand away from the house. This arrangement was so that
auto driver would not be able to identify the house. They brought the auto as
instructed. Sivarasan, Subha and Dhanu walked up to the auto. Nero went with
them but came back and then gave some message through wireless.
He
used to speak daily through wireless once in the morning and once in evening.
On the morning of 22.5.1991, Sivarasan came to the house of Vijayan (A-12) and
said that the work was over and that the Rajiv Gandhi was murdered. He asked
Nero to send the message to Sri Lanka through wireless and himself went to
sleep. Sivarasan would write on a piece of paper in a language which was not
understandable and would give that to Nero to send that message through
wireless.
After
lunch Sivarasan went away. On 23.5.1991 he came on a cycle, took the motorcycle
and again went away. He used to keep the motorcycle in the house of Vijayan
(A-12). From the evening of 23.5.1991 Sivarasan, Subha and Nero were staying in
the house of Vijayan (A-12). Nero used to keep his gun (AK-47) always ready.
All these three used to watch carefully if police was coming. This watching started
from the day Dhanu's photograph appeared in the newspapers.
Sivarasan
used to go out with his pistol. While sleeping he used to keep it under his
pillow. He and Subha went to Tirupathi on 25.5.1991 and came back the next day
in the night. Vijayan (A-12) said that Sivarasan used to say if police would
come to arrest him he would kill a dozen of policemen and then only he would be
caught. On 27.5.1991 he took out the motorcycle and hid somewhere. Vijayan
(A-12) did not see the motorcycle afterwards. In the end of May, 1991
Sivarasan's photo also appeared in the newspapers.
Vijayan
(A-12) used to buy all the newspapers which Nero would read and tell Sivarasan
the progress of investigation made by the police in the case. One day Sivarasan
took off his moustache. Movements of Sivarasan got limited after his photo
appeared in the newspapers. He used to go out on foot and would give messages
to LTTE men. One day in the first week of June, 1991, Sivarasan said that Nero
had spoken to Jaffna through wireless and arrangements were made for their
escape from India by boat. Sivarasan took Subha somewhere and returned on
10.6.1991. He said they had gone to Coimbatore. That day Nero told Sivarasan
that he spoke through wireless and that there was some problem and that boat
won't be coming from Jaffna. By this time photo of Subha also appeared in the
newspapers which scared Subha.
Sivarasan
then put Subha's dresses in a black bag and took that out somewhere and hid it.
On that day only Santhan (A-2), who was a close companion of Vijayan (A-12),
came for the first time. On 12.6.1991 Sivarasan came to Vijayan's (A-12) house
and told him that it was very difficult to stay like that. They should buy
photos of Rajiv Gandhi, M.G.R. and Jayalalitha and keep them in front of the room
and in that way nobody would doubt them. This Vijayan (A-12) did.
Sivarasan
paid him Rs.100/- for that. After few days Sivarasan asked Bhaskaran (A-14) to
get help from his relative to arrange for some other house. Bhaskaran (A-14)
went to his relative N. Chokkanathan (PW97) to look for some other house but
said that N. Chokkanathan (PW-97) was of no use and it was difficult to get
another house.
Sivarasan
said he would seek help of some other person to see the house. On 23.6.1991 he
gave a message to Nero to be transmitted through wireless. Nero told Sivarasan
that that was the last message to be given. After that Sivarasan and Nero took
off the antenna and wires and kept the wireless set in the pit which had been
dug in the kitchen. After a day or two Santhan (A-2) brought another person to
take Sivarasan and Subha with him. Later, Vijayan (A-12) came to know that his
name was Suresh Master (DA). In the evening they brought an auto. The plan was
that Sivarasan, Subha, Nero and Suresh Master would all go together. Thereafter
Vijayan (A-12) said he did not see all of them. Vijayan (A-12) and family then
decided to go to Tuticorin and after staying for one week returned to their
house to take the things and to vacate the house but by that time the police came
and arrested Vijayan (A-12).
Mangaleswaran
(PW-234) and Rose D. Nayagam (PW-235) respectively were in charge of
Rameshwaram and Tuticorin refugee camps and they have testified to the
registration of stay of Vijayan (A-12), his wife Selvaluxmi (A-13) and his
father-in-law Bhaskaran (A-14) in the refugee camps, as refugees coming from
Sri Lanka.
J.
Duraisamy Naidu (PW-82) is the owner of the house which was taken on rent by
Vijayan (A-12). Tenant agreement (Exh.P-426) was executed. The house was
occupied on 23.4.1991. The tenant agreement bears signature of Vijayan (A-12)
for Plot No. 12, Eveready Colony, No. 12 at Kodungaiyur. Rent agreement was
taken into possession by the police.
Esylen
Mantel (PW-99), who was living in Plot No. 14, Eveready Colony, Kodungaiyur,
said that Vijayan (A-12), his wife Selvaluxmi (A-13) and his father-in-law
Bhaskaran (A-14) were staying in the neighbouring house. Esylen Mantel (PW-99)
said in the first week of May, 1991 two auto rikshaws had come to the house of
Vijayan (A-12). In one auto there were two ladies and in the other there were
two gents. The girls names came to be known to Esylen Mantel (PW-99) as Subha
and Dhanu and the gents' as Sivarasan and Nero. Esylen Mantel (PW-99) said they
also brought a TV to the house of Vijayan (A-12) and fixed the antenna on the
terrace. They also fixed two casuarina tree posts on the terrace and connected
the black wire between posts with the wire connection inside the house of
Vijayan (A-12). On 21.5.1991 at about 2.00 p.m. Esylen Mantel (PW-99) saw
Sivarasan, Subha and Dhanu standing at the bus stand at Kodungaiyur. Next day
the witness came to know about the assassination of Rajiv Gandhi on TV news.
Esylen Mantel (PW-99) saw Sivarasan, Subha and Nero at Vijayan's (A-12) house
on 24.5.1991 but did not see Dhanu. Same day Dhanu's photograph was published
in the newspapers. Esylen Mantel (PW-99) suspected that it was the same girl
who was seen by her at the bus stand. On 29.5.1991 Sivarasan's photo was also
published. Now it was confirmed to Esylen Mantel (PW-99) that all these persons
were involved in the assassination of Rajiv Gandhi. She developed fear on that
account. Vijayan (A-12) came to the house of Esylen Mantel (PW-99) in the
second week of June, 1991 and borrowed a driller stating that he wanted to fix
a regulator for the fan. Since he did not return the driller same day Esylen
Mantel (PW-99) went to the house of Vijayan (A-12). On reaching there she saw
Sivarasan standing in the hall with one left eye closed. Earlier Esylen Mantel
(PW-99) had seen him wearing spectacles. Now he was not wearing spectacles.
When
she asked Selvaluxmi (A-13) as to what happened to the eye of Sivarasan she
told her that he lost his eye while playing. One day Esylen Mantel (PW-99) saw
Sivarasan sitting on the steps of the house of Vijayan (A-12). She went near
him, wished him and asked him if he was employed somewhere. Sivarasan said he
was unemployed and was trying to get a job in Dubai. At that time she noticed
he had two eyes. Left eye looked like an artificial eye. Now he did not have
even mustache and did not wear spectacles. Mother of Esylen Mantel (PW-99) went
to CBI office at Malligai to give information. But because of fear of LTTE she
did not do so. She said they should watch the house to collect more clues and
then to inform CBI. Thereafter they were keeping watch on Vijayan's (A-12)
house and noticing the movements on that house. On 26.6.1991 at 7.30 a.m.
Esylen Mantel (PW-99) saw Vijayan (A-12) taking Bhaskaran (A-14) on a cycle.
While passing in front of her house Bhaskaran (A-14) told Esylen Mantel (PW-99)
that he was going to Madurai.
That
day Sivarasan was not in the house of Vijayan (A12).
Vijayan
(A-12) said Sivarasan had gone to Madurai to get a job and would return in a
month or so. At that time there was a black boy in the house who was later
identified as Santhan (A-2). Vijayan (A-12) introduced Santhan (A-2) as his
brother who was a driver and was trying for a job in Dubai. On 1.7.1991 again
at 7.30 a.m. Esylen Mantel (PW-99) saw Vijayan (A-12) and Santhan (A2) going on
a cycle. After ten minutes Vijayan (A-12) came back alone and now he had
changed his dress too. Vijayan (A-12) told Esylen Mantel (PW-99) while passing
through her house that he was leaving for Madurai since he received a telegram
from his fatherin-law. Vijayan (A-12) also said that he would come back after
one and a half month or so. That day Vijayan (A-12) also told her that
Sivarasan would not be coming back as he was the most wanted person by CBI. On
2.7.1991 Esylen Mantel (PW-99) informed the CBI about the incident. She was
examined by the police and identified Santhan (A-2), Vijayan (A-12), Selvaluxmi
(A-13) and Bhaskaran (A-14) in the row of accused and Sivarasan, Subha and
Dhanu in photographs.
In
diary (MO-180) of Sivarasan it was mentioned against date 6.4.1991
"Vijayan (A-12) Veedu (house) - 15,000/-" meaning that Sivarasan had
paid Rs.15,000/- to Vijayan (A-12) for getting a house on rent in Madras.
L.D.N.J.
Wijesinghe (PW-67), Senior Superintendent of Police, Sri Lanka has spoken about
the wireless network of LTTE.
He
intercepted LTTE wireless transmissions. He said Nero was using wireless
station 910 and 91 while communicating with LTTE leaders in Jaffna. Wireless
station 91 belonged Pottu Amman in Sri Lanka and Station 910 is the wireless
station belonged to Sivarasan in India.
T.P.
Sitther (PW-78) is the wireless operator of Government of India in the Ministry
of Home Affairs. He has also testified regarding wireless messages monitored
during the period from 1988. He also deposed that station 91 belonged to Pottu
Amman and station 910 was used by Sivarasan.
Hashmuth
S. Setal (PW-98) is the owner of Barathi Cycle company and Barathi Cycle
Agency. He sold BSA Delux cycle to one P. Vijayan of Plot No. 12, Muthamizh
Nagar, Kodungaiyur, Madras as per bill (Exh.P-491). Cycle was sold on 8.5.1991.
He identified that cycle (MO-390). Another cycle BSA SLR was also sold to
Vijayan (A-12) on 8.5.1991 as per bill (Exh.P-493) having the same address.
Mohanraj
(PW-254) was working as officer-in-charge of International Monitoring Station
at Perungudi, Madras.
He has
testified that wireless Trans receivers (MO-770) could be operated by using 12
volt D.C. battery like MO-209.
N.
Chokkanathan (PW-97) is a distant relation of Bhaskaran (A-14). In his
deposition he said that he had met Bhaskaran (A14) in the year 1952 when he
went to Sri Lanka to seek a job. Then suddenly on 20.6.1991 Bhaskaran (A-14)
called on him. He entertained him and discussed about family matters. They went
for an evening movie show. That day Bhaskaran (A-14) slept in the house of N.
Chokkanathan (PW-97). After they had supper Bhaskaran (A-14) asked N. Chokkanathan
(PW-97) to get a big house rented for him in an outer area at a monthly rent of
Rs.2000/- to Rs.3000/-. N. Chokkanathan (PW-97) was surprised and said that a
house at the rate of Rs.300/- per month would be sufficient for his family.
Bhaskaran (A-14) said the house was not for him but was required for some
important persons. When N. Chokkanathan (PW-97) inquired who those important
persons were Bhaskaran (A-14) said it would create some problem if he disclosed
him and their names. N. Chokkanathan (PW-97) said that unless he revealed the
names of the important persons he would not take any step to search for a
house.
Then
Bhaskaran (A-14) told him that the house was meant for Sivarasan and Subha who
were involved in Rajiv Gandhi assassination case and whose photographs had been
exhibited in TV and posters. N. Chokkanathan (PW-97) said he was shocked and
asked what was the relation between him and those persons. Bhaskaran (A-14)
said that at that time he was residing in a house in Kodungaiyur area and that
those persons were residing there. When N. Chokkanathan (PW-97) refused to give
any help, Bhaskaran (A-14) then pleaded with N. Chokkanathan (PW-97) to at
least permit Subha to stay in his house for some time as a family member. N. Chokkanathan
(PW-97) again refused. That made Bhaskaran (A-14) angry. He refused to eat and
threatened N. Chokkanathan (PW-97) that he would kill him if he gave any
information to the police about him or Sivarasan or Subha.
Bhaskaran
(A-14) then left the house. Next day, i.e., 22.6.1991 with the assistance of
his relative one Srinivasan, with whom N. Chokkanathan (PW-97) discussed the
matter, they went to the office of Malligai CBI headquarters. N. Chokkanathan
(PW-97) gave his statement to the police. They sent him back saying that they
would call him after four days. He was again called by the CBI officials on
28.6.1991 when he was interrogated and his statement was recorded.
M.
Narayanan (PW-281) is D.S.P., CBI and one of the investigating officers. As far
as Bhaskaran (A-14) was concerned he said his presence was secured on 7.7.1991
but how that was done he was unable to say. He said he was brought to the
office of CBI on that day but who brought him again he was unable to tell. When
he was taken to the house of Vijayan (A-12) and was about to break open the
lock of the house Vijayan (A-12) and Selvaluxmi (A-13) with their child came
there. They were identified by Bhaskaran (A-14).
Vijayan
(A-12) had the key with which he opened the house.
Thereafter
seizure was effected. Vijayan (A-12) voluntarily pointed out the space in the
kitchen from which signal making articles were recovered. M. Narayanan (PW-281)
said that Vijayan (A-12) voluntarily pointed out towards the pit otherwise that
place could not have been found. He said N. Chokkanathan (PW-97) came to his
office on 23.6.1991 and was accompanied by Srinivasan. Statement of N.
Chokkanathan (PW-97) was not recorded at that time because of immediate action
was to be taken to locate the house and to make attempt to apprehend Bhaskaran
(A-14). Statement of N. Chokkanathan (PW-97) was recorded on 28.6.1991. As per
witness M. Narayanan (PW-281) the recovery was effected on 8.7.1991 on the
basis of the disclosure statement made by Vijayan (A-12) (Exh.P-1358). It has
come on record during the course of examination of the witness that recovery
had already been effected on 7.7.1991 (Exh.D-63). The trial court has accepted
Exh.D-63 and has rejected Exh.P-1358 and had adversely commented to the conduct
of the witness, the investigating officer, in allegedly manipulating the
recovery.
Ravi
(A-16) is an Indian national. He made confession. He was attracted towards
LTTE. He got training in military camp run by LTTE on Indian soil. He joined
LTTE movement and got deeply involved in it. In his confession he described the
details of the training he got and the oath he took. Ravi (A-16) also described
some of the activities of LTTE. He went to Sri Lanka as well where also he got
further training in military operations. Ravi (A-16) then came back to Madras
before Indo-Sri Lankan Accord was signed in 1987. In Madras he continued his
operation. During holidays, however, he would meet various LTTE personnel like
Kittu, Baby Subramaniam, etc. in the LTTE office at Indira Nagar in Madras.
When war started between IPKF and LTTE he said he was eager to go to Sri Lanka
to take part in the war operations against IPKF. He was kept under house arrest
in the month of June-July, 1988. On 8.8.1988, he along with 89 others,
belonging to LTTE cadre, was arrested and kept in lock-up in Madras Central
Jail. From there all these persons were sent to Sri Lanka by an Indian Air
Force plane.
Ravi
(A-16) said he was sent to Sri Lanka because it was thought that he was a Sri
Lankan national. In Sri Lanka firstly, they were kept in Indian Army camp. They
learnt about the rapes, murders and other atrocities committed by IPKF. They
developed a strong feeling of revenge. Ravi (A-16) was released in 1989. He
went to LTTE camp in Sri Lanka where he met various leaders. There he was
indoctrinated to start a movement so that entire Tamil people in the world
joined hands. Ravi (A16) said when he asked his role he was told to go to Tamil
Nadu and to select youths, who had got feeling for Tamil race and tell them
about the struggle of LTTE and the traitorous acts committed by India. Ravi
(A-16) said that India thus became their enemy and they were to fight for
'Tamils' nation. He was advocated for armed revolution to establish a separate
Tamil nation. Ravi (A16) was given a letter and was told that if he gave that
letter to the seashore incharge in India he would be given money for his expenses.
After coming to India Ravi (A-16) went to Selam along with other LTTE people.
He gave that letter to one Richard in Selam, who after reading the letter gave
him Rs.15,000/-. From there Ravi (A-16) went to Madras and was told to go to
Subha Studio at Royapettah to meet Muthuraja. It was in the second week of
January, 1990 that he came to Madras and met Muthuraja in Subha Studio and
apprised him about the instructions he got in Sri Lanka. He met Suseendran
(A-17), who was a member of Dravida Kazhagam. He was also told about the need
of armed revolutions in Tamil Nadu and the LTTE support of that. Initially they
were to collect youths. In his confession Ravi (A-16) further described as to
how ten persons were collected by Suseendran (A-17) and arrangements were made
for their training in Sri Lanka.
Ravi
(A16) also went to Sri Lanka. He further described his activities in India for
LTTE. He met Suseendran (A-17) again in May, 1990 at Coimbatore and asked him
to enroll more youths. By this time war had started between LTTE and Sri Lankan
Army. During these training days in Sri Lanka Ravi (A-16) had met Pottu Amman
as well who explained that to carry on the work assigned to Ravi (A-16) and
others it had to be done in three phases (1) to arrange houses for the stay of
LTTE cadre personnel, (2) to enroll more people and impart training to them and
(3) to develop seashore linkage and to form separate boat line, if possible.
Training in wireless operation was also given. In the month of December, 1990
Ravi (A-16), Suseendran (A-17) and two others were brought to a house in Jaffna
by Pottu Amman for the purpose of their return to Tamil Nadu. In this House
Sivarasan was introduced to Ravi (A-16) by Pottu Amman.
Pottu
Amman separately called Ravi (A-16) and told him that Sivarasan was also going
with them to Tamil Nadu and that he might be contacted if there was any need
for money for selection of personnel for the movement and it would be useful to
get suggestions from him. Pottu Amman also reminded him the incident of
Padmanabha case in Tamil Nadu and said some important matters would be going to
occur there and for that his role must be prominent one. He was, therefore,
told to follow the instructions of Sivarasan and consult him in case of any
doubt. They all were seen off by Pottu Amman. While they were waiting in the
boat Ravi (A-16) asked Sivarasan "about this is what work and how many
persons". He said "lesser man bigger target". Ravi (A-16)
further inquired whether it would be a big shot in Tamil Nadu politics and to
that Sivarasan replied that it was something bigger than that. Again when Ravi
(A-16) asked whether it could be Rajiv Gandhi but Sivarasan did not give any
reply directly and told him that they were going to perform and that "we
will see later" and the talk ended. In the training camp in Sri Lanka,
Ravi (A-16) said people would often speak about Rajiv Gandhi and IPKF and
showed their hatred and emotion and that was the reason why he asked Sivarasan
whether it was Rajiv Gandhi to which he replied that it was a big target. Ravi
(A-16) further in his confession said that there was no direct reply coming
out. Sivarasan, however, spoke his words in such a way that he confirmed his
suspicion. Ravi (A-16) gave his aunt's Longamadha (PW-206) address to Sivarasan
if he was to be contacted. They reached Kodiakkarai on Indian soil in the last
week of December, 1990. Sivarasan said that he would give his address and
telephone number to Ravi (A-16) in a few days' time. Firstly, they stayed in
the house of Shanmugham (DA). Sivarasan gave him Rs.2,000/- out of which he
gave Rs.500/- each to Suseendran (A-17) and two others.
After
ten days of their arrival they met again in Madras as arranged earlier.
Sivarasan gave Rs.3 lacs to Ravi (A-16),
1.5
lacs each on two different occasions and told Ravi (A-16) to buy a vehicle if
required for the movement.
Sivarasan
gave his contact telephone number 2343402 to Ravi (A-16) to contact him if
there was any urgent need and in case he was not there to contact Robert Payas
(A-9) and to give him the message. Sivarasan again gave him Rs.50,000/- out of
which he gave Rs.5,000/- each to Suseendran (A-17) and two others. At the end
of March, 1991 there was a message lying in the house of Longamadha (PW-206)
for Ravi (A-16) to meet Sivarasan. There was a wireless set brought by LTTE
cadre and Sivarasan asked Ravi (A16) to come with him to receive the set. They
then went to the house of Jayakumar (A-10). After taking the food while they
were sleeping on the terrace, Ravi (A-16) said that Sivarasan had once told him
to find out the airport security when a VIP would come. He said he did not
remember the name of the VIP. That night Sivarasan asked about the VIP security
and Ravi (A-16) told him that when great leaders come, first gate of the old airport
was used and that it was a narrow road and that the "place is advantageous
for us". Ravi (A-16) asked Sivarasan that three months had elapsed after
they had come to India and that nothing was done about the target. Sivarasan
told him that "we must not go in search of target and that target would
come searching us and we shall see at that time". He also said that it
might take place in near future if the election is declared. Sivarasan said
that in order to make wireless set functioning to contact Sri Lanka two or
three places of shore had to be separately arranged. Sivarasan then told Ravi
(A-16) to start a travel agency in Delhi and then asked him to send some person
to collect the details to Delhi. When Ravi (A-16) said that that would be an
expensive proposition Sivarasan replied that expenses need not be bothered.
Ravi (A-16) received another sum of Rs.2 lacs from Sivarasan.
After
15 days when Ravi (A-16) again met Sivarasan he gave him Rs.5 lacs to start
travel agency in Delhi. He, however, said travel agency need not be started
immediately but it was enough if arrangements are made. In his confession Ravi
(A-16) described the enrollment of some youths for training and for making
arrangements for them to go to Sri Lanka by boat for the purpose. Then he
described about attempt to get wireless connection with Sri Lanka. Again on one
visit to Kodiakkarai when Ravi (A-16) was staying in the house Shanmugham (DA),
Murugan (A-3) came there with a big Aristocrat suitcase. It was on
13/14.5.1991. Then he said that when he, Murugan (A-3) and one other person
Chokkan were sitting separately Chokkan asked that work of Sivarasan had not
yet occurred. Murugan (A-3) said that "where would it go without occurring
and it ought to occur". Nobody then talked about it later. Since boat did
not come Murugan (A-3) went back to Madras. Ravi (A-16) was to go to Sri Lanka.
The boat did come on 20.5.1991 but Chokkan did not allow Ravi (A-16) to go in
that boat as that boat was to carry goods for Sri Lanka.
On the
night of 21.5.1991 while Ravi (A-16) was sleeping in a hut opposite to the
house of Shanmugham (DA), in the mid night servant of Shanmugham told him that
Rajiv Gandhi had died in a bomb blast in Madras and with him 30 others also
died including Moopanar and Vazhapadi Ramamoorthy. He said that message came by
telephone to Shanmugham and he advised that Ravi (A-16) should not remain
there. Next day when Ravi (A-16) met Chokkan he said assassination of Rajiv
Gandhi was advantageous to LTTE.
Since
it was not certain that boat would come from Sri Lanka for Ravi (A16) and
others to return he gave his bag and Murugan's (A-3) suitcase to Chokkan and
asked him to give them to Shanmugham and went to Trichy. He gave a message to
Suseendran (A-17) to meet him at Madras on 26.5.1991. He himself reached Madras
on 24.5.1991. When he went to his aunt's (Longamadha (PW-206)) house he was
given a letter from Sivarasan dated 23.5.1991 addressed in the name of
'Prakash'. One day after Sivarasan came and took Ravi (A-16) out. He asked Ravi
(A-16) why he had not gone to Sri Lanka. Then Ravi (A-16) gave him the details.
Sivarasan asked him if the shore was clear and added that suspicion had arisen
on LTTE and there might be some problems to Sri Lankan Tamils. Sivarasan
wondered how the police came in possession of his photograph and that police
was searching him in connection with the murder of Rajiv Gandhi. That being so
he said that there would be problem for Subha and it would be better if she was
kept in the custody of Ravi (A-16) in the house of some Indian Tamil family.
When Ravi (A-16) met Suseendran (A-17) on 26.5.1991 he brought the problem to
his notice. Suseendran (A-17) said that if it was for few days there was no
problem in keeping Subha in his custody. Ravi (A-16) and Suseendran (A-17) met
Sivarasan in the evening. Then Ravi (A-16), Suseendran (A-17), Sivarasan and
Subha gathered at 9.00 p.m. at the bus stand from where Ravi (A-16) took leave.
After returning he informed Pottu Amman through wireless that Sivarasan had
left Subha in his and Suseendran's (A-17) custody. Ravi (A-16) sent a message
to Sivarasan that the shore was now clear. Ravi (A-16) along with Sivarasan
went to the house of Karpagam (PW-133), relative of Suseendran (A-17) at
Pollachi where Subha had been taken. Both Suseendran (A-17) and Subha were
there. Ravi (A-16), Suseendran (A-17), Sivarasan, Subha, Kanthan and Murugesan
collected at the seashore to take a boat for Sri Lanka.
That
was 10.6.1991. A message was, however, received that the boat got hit in the
sea near Jaffna and all 11 persons who were coming to India died. Yet another
attempt was made to leave India from another shore. Sivarasan said that
security would now be tightened. At this Ravi (A-16) told him that "we
would try, if not 'consume the capsule'." Ravi (A-16) said that problem
for leaving from Indian shore would get aggravated if there was any further
delay. In his confession then Ravi (A-16) described the attempts of the group
to leave India and their interse meetings to achieve that purpose and the
difficulty faced by them because of war in Sri Lanka. Ravi (A16) thought that
their position should be explained to Pottu Amman. He, therefore, contacted
Suseendran (A-17) for forming a wireless set connection and for that purpose to
arrange a house. In the last week of July, 1991 Suseendran (A-17) arranged a
house at Dindigul.
Kanthan
gave his wireless set to Ravi (A-16) telling him to keep that safe. Through
wireless set they could reach Jaffna and sent information that CBI was
searching for Kanthan and his picture had been published in newspapers and
asked them to arrange for a boat urgently. Later, Ravi (A-16) along with
Kanthan and another went to the house of Robert Payas (A-9). While Ravi (A-16)
stood outside Kanthan went inside the house through back entery and after a few
minutes came out. He told Ravi (A-16) that inmates of the house asked him not
to come to their house since police was searching him. Later Kanthan went to a
lonely house in Porur and when he returned he said that the old man in that
house had been arrested by CBI. On 20 or 21.7.1991 Suseendran (A-17) went to
Dindigul and gave information to Pottu Amman about the latest position. In his
confession Ravi (A-16) had shown his various attempts for him and others to
leave the country and his being in constant touch with Pottu Amman through
wireless set installed at Dindigul.
On
28.7.1991 Ravi (A-16) along with Kanthan and Ramanan went to Sri Lanka and met
Pottu Amman. Ravi (A-16) said when Pottu Amman asked as to the position of
Tamil Nadu he told him that there was no place even to stand in the existing
circumstances. Pottu Amman then asked him as to why Sivarasan went to
Bangalore. Ravi (A-16) said he did not know about Sivarasan's going to
Bangalore and that he had earlier informed Pottu Amman that he was not in
contact with Sivarasan. Ravi (A-16) gave Pottu Amman up-to-date position of the
investigation and the arrest of various persons.
Ultimately
Ravi (A-16) stated that he returned to India. He left Sri Lanka on 10.8.1991
with various weapons, 12 gold biscuits and 15 code sheets. The weapons included
2 SMG, 10 grenades, 1350 rounds and 5 pistols. Pottu Amman told Ravi (A-16)
that now weapons had been handed over to him, time had come for starting the
struggle and to fight against a very big super power and asked him to be
careful. He told Ravi (A-16) to decide targets and then suggested many other
things as to how to go about and use the arms and ammunition. They came to
India through a boat. He contacted Suseendran (A-17). 1350 rounds, 2 SMG and 5
grenades were dumped in a place by two LTTE men on the direction of Ravi
(A-16). Next morning they came to Dindigul with 2 walkie-talkie, 12 gold
biscuits (each weighing 120 grams), code sheets and 3 pistols. Jaffna was
informed through wireless set of Kanthan. Ravi (A-16) gave 6 biscuits, 2
grenades, one pistol and code sheets to Suseendran (A-17) and asked him to keep
them. One pistol Ravi (A16) kept with him and one he gave to one Sukumar. 6
gold biscuits were given to one Charles. On 12.8.1991 Ravi (A-16) left Dindigul
and reached Madras on the next day.
There
he got the news in papers that weapons hidden in the ground at Nambuthalai had
been taken by the customs. Pottu Amman was informed of this seizure. On
21.8.1991 Ravi (A-16) was arrested by the police. He was shown the letters and
other diaries of Sivarasan to identify the handwriting of Sivarasan. He
identified various persons in LTTE cadre, they being Chokkan, Arivu (A-18),
Yogi @ Yoga Ratnam, Shanmugham, Haribabu, Sivarasan, Aruna, Suba Sundaram
(A-22), Avadi Manoharan, Robert Payas (A-9), Ramanan, Jayakumar (A-10),
Kanthan, Murugan (A-3), Chinna Shanthan, Gundappa, Dixon and Irumborai (A-19).
Suseendran
(A-17) is another Indian Tamil living in Tamil Nadu. He also became LTTE
sympathizer and had been working for LTTE. He got contact with Muthuraja, Baby
Subramaniam and Kasi Anandhan (PW-242) and other persons belonging to LTTE. In
1989 he went to Sri Lanka and organized there a procession in support of LTTE.
In end of January, 1990 he came to know Ravi (A-16). They both discussed the
creation of separate Tamil Nadu and its liberation. Suseendran (A-17) did not
consider this offer seriously. After a few days Ravi (A-16) again talked to him
to which Suseendran (A-17) replied that though he felt confident but asked as
to how it was going to be attained.
Ravi
(A-16) said youths who were interested in getting separate Tamil Nadu could be
organized and involved in the struggle and that LTTE would help in giving arm
training to them. Suseendran (A-17) said he got interested and decided to
collect persons interested in separate Tamil Nadu. In his confession Suseendran
(A-17) then described the attempt to organize youths and then to make
arrangement for them to go to Sri Lanka for training. In Sri Lanka he met Pottu
Amman as well. He came to the training camp where Suseendran (A17) and others
were getting training. He told them that they should always be ready at right
time to attack important places in Tamil Nadu and that weapons and money required
for the struggle would be given by LTTE. He said that they must fight as one
under the leadership of Ravi (A-16). The movement which was to be started by
Ravi (A-16) and Suseendran (A-17) was called Tamil National Retrieval Troops
(as translated in English). In the end of December, 1990 Pottu Amman took him,
Ravi (A-16) and others to Jaffna. He took Ravi (A-16) sparately and talked to
him.
In the
house there was one person whose name was Sivarasan.
Then
Sivarasan, Pottu Amman and Ravi (A-16) talked together for a while. They then
left for Indian soil on boat and were seen off by Pottu Amman. In his further
confession Suseendran (A-17) described his meeting with various persons
connected with LTTE and the expenses met by Sivarasan. He was involved in organizing
the youths and went to places like Pollachi. As per earlier arrangement he met
Ravi (A-16) at Madras on 26.5.1991. Sivarasan also came there.
At
that time Ravi (A-16) told him to have a lady tiger stay with him for one week
since the police problem was too much at Madras. He requested that the girl
could stay in a house of a supporter whom he knew. Sivarasan, Subha, Ravi
(A-16) and Suseendran (A-17) then gathered at bus stop at 9 O'clock when Ravi
(A-16) left leaving them there. That lady was introduced to Suseendran (A-17)
as Malliga. Suseendran (A-17) said that later he came to know that her name was
Subha. He, Sivarasan and Subha left for Trichy reaching there in the morning.
From there they went to Pollachi. He said there they stayed in the house of D.
Shanmugasundaram (PW-208). He introduced Mallika as his wife and sister of
Sivarasan. Karpagam (PW-133), wife of D. Shanmugasundaram (PW-208), was a
distant relative of Suseendran (A-17).
Sivarasan
then left saying that he would come back and take Mallika in 5 days. Meanwhile
Sivarasan's photo was published in the newspapers. Sivarasan did not come.
Suseendran
(A-17) thought that it was not right to stay in that house any further as that
would give unnecessary trouble to D. Shanmugasundaram (PW-208). He, therefore,
with Mallika left the place saying that they were going to Bangalore. When they
reached Pollachi bus stand Suseendran (A-17) told Subha that they would go to
Madras. She refused. She said that Sivarasan would definitely come within a day
or two. For the purpose of hiding, Suseendran (A-17) took her to Trichur by
bus, from where to a place at Cochin and went to Trivandrum and then came back
to Pollachi after visiting various places and reaching Pollachi by 10 O'clock
in the night. They again went to D.
Shanmugasundaram's
(PW-208) house and told him that they were unable to go to Bangalore and
returned after staying with another friend's house. He was informed that
Sivarasan had come and searched for him and Subha. That night they stayed
there. He said Subha would often talk to him about lady tiger organization
named as 'freedom birds' (English translation). He also saw her once writing
poem in coloured autograph book (Exh.P-480). She also read some crime novels
which were purchased by Suseendran (A-17). Sivarasan came after about two days
and same night Suseendran (A-17), Subha and Sivarasan went to Madras by bus.
They got down at Saidapet bus stop. While Sivarasan and Subha went away,
Suseendran (A-17) returned to Pollachi itself. After about ten days Suseendran
(A17) went to Palani where he met Ravi (A-16). Suseendran (A-17) made
arrangement for installing wireless set in a place near Coimbatore. Then he
took a house on rent at Dindigul. In his confession Suseendran (A-17) described
further activities connected with LTTE and attempt to go to Sri Lanka. On
27.8.1991 LTTE boat came by night in which Ravi (A-16), Ramanan and Kanthan
went to Sri Lanka. In the first week of September, 1991 a message was received
from Jaffna to identify the coast for the boat in which Suseendran (A-17) was
coming. Suseendran (A-17) identified the coast and informed Pottu Amman by
wireless.
On
10.9.1991 Ravi (A-16) arrived by boat in the night. Four more persons also came
with him, who had completed their training. Ravi (A-16) brought two wooden
boxes containing weapons. In the same boat which had come four more persons
were sent to Jaffna for training. Ravi (A-16) and Suseendran (A-17) came to
Dindigul. Jaffna was informed by wireless. Ravi (A-16) gave a walkie talkie, three
grenades, one nine M.M. pistol, 6 gold biscuits, code sheets and eight cyanide
capsules to Suseendran (A-17) and asked him to keep them safely. Ravi (A-16)
also gave him Rs.30,000/- and told him to buy sockets for the wireless. Ravi
(A-16) also told Suseendran (A-17) to make arrangement for buying of petrol and
diesel and to send them to Jaffna. He told Suseendran (A-17) that in future
they had to make arrangement for the petrol needed for the boat to send the
weapons and persons. In the month of October, 1991 Suseendran (A-17) went to
Pollachi. All the things which Ravi (A-16) gave him he kept locked in a
suitcase and gave that to a friend K. Periasami (PW-213) and told him that he
would come and collect that later. He then went to Kodiakkarai and gave Rs.30,000/-
to his friend Jothi Venkatachalam and asked him to arrange for diesel. He gave
Jothi's mother one walkie talki and two grenades rapped in plastic paper and
told her that he would come and take them afterwards. When he came back to
Dindigul again, police arrested him.
In his
disclosure statement (Exh.P-1323) made on 20.1.1992 Suseendran (A-17) with
respect to part of weapons which were given to him by Ravi (A-16) said that if
he was taken to the place and to the person with whom he kept the articles he
would be able to identify those persons, their residences and the articles
which he gave them.
K.S.
Madhavan (PW-273), Sub-inspector of Police of Tamil Nadu State Police,
testified to the disclosure statement made by Suseendran (A-17) (Exh.P-1323)
and the recoveries made on that basis both at Pollachi and Kodiakkarai as
aforementioned.
K.
Periasami (PW-213) was involved in Dravida Kazhagam (DK) political
organization. He got acquainted with Suseendran (A-17). That was since 1985. In
the second week of October, 1991 in the morning Suseendran (A-17) came to his
house with one suitcase in his hand. He said he was going out of station and
asked him to keep the suitcase with him carefully. That suitcase was locked.
He, however, did not come back. He was arrested within two weeks from that time
in connection with LTTE. After he read the news of his arrest in newspapers K.
Periasami (PW-213) thought that there might be some articles in the suitcase,
which Suseendran (A-17) gave, connected with LTTE. Using a screw driver he
opened the suitcase and found one walkie talkie, three aerials of walkie
talkie, one rifle, 18 bullets, one hand grenade, five cyanide bottles and six
gold biscuits.
K.
Periasami (PW-213) after seeing the articles was terrified. He threw all the
things except the six gold biscuits inside a well at the back side of his house
and also threw the suitcase in a nearby thorny bush. Thereafter Suseendran
(A-17) came with the CBI to his house on 22.1.1992 and asked for the box which
he had given him. K.
Periasami
(PW-213) said he had kept the gold biscuits concealed in the false ceiling of
his room. He took Suseendran (A-17) and police officers near the well and gave
them details of the articles which he found in the suitcase.
Services
of fire brigade were requisitioned and they brought out all the articles from
the well. Articles (MOs 582-587) were seized by Mahazar Exh.P-1003. Six gold
biscuits (collectively MO 588) were seized as per Mahazar Exh.P-1004.
Suitcase,
however, could not be found.
Nagarathinam
(PW-260) said he was resident of Kodiakkarai. He is in laundry business. He
said Sundaramoorthy Pillai and his wife Valliamai were residing in the house
next to his door. Later on they got their own house and shifted. About four
years back five policemen had come nine days after Pongal festival. There were
two pits in the western side of the house of Pillai. In one there were two
explosives (MO-754 and MO-755) and in the other one walkie talkie (MO-777).
Valliamai was showing those objects to the police. A seizure memo was prepared
taking into possession the articles (Exh.P-1172). Walkie talkie and two
explosives were kept by Suseendran (A-17) with Valliamai, who is mother of
Jothi Venkatachalam, a friend of Suseendran (A-17).
M.
Mariappan (PW-86) was working in the house hold of Shanmugham (DA) at
Kodiakkarai. He was living in the elder brother's house of Shanmugham (DA). At
that time he said that some Sri Lankan people were coming and going.
There
was a tent in front of Shanmugham's brother's house where they used to stay.
One day one Murugan (A-3) came there from Madras. He stayed in the tent for
four days and since no boat came from Sri Lanka he returned to Madras. He gave
M. Mariappan (PW-86) six items - two boxes and four bags and said he would take
back those on his return from Madras. Shanmugham's brother told M. Mariappan
(PW86) and Shanmugham to bury and conceal the items. This he did.
Police
made inquiry from M. Mariappan (PW-86) and he after digging unearthed the
hidden things and gave them to Tahsildar of the area. M. Mariappan (PW-86) said
he and his brother Govindan buried those six items. He identified those two
boxes (MO-198 and 199) and four boxes (MO-200 to 203), which Murugan (A-3) had
given him and he had buried.
Karpagam
(PW-133), whose husband is D. Shanmugasundaram (PW-208), said that she knew
Suseendran (A-17). He was her husband's senior in college and she came to know
him after marriage. One day on 28.5.1991 Suseendran (A-17) came to their house.
He introduced the girl accompanying him as his wife Malliga and said she was a
Sri Lankan refugee and it was a love marriage between them. The person with
beard, who was also accompanying them, was introduced as Malliga's brother.
Suseendran (A-17) said that since it was a love marriage her parents were
opposed to it and they would stay for three or four days. The person, who had
beard, went away. When D. Shanmugasundaram (PW-208) came home in the evening
she gave him the details.
Karpagam
(PW-133) also bought one HMT watch as gift for the newly weds with the consent
of her husband. Malliga also bought a chappal. Karpagam (PW-133) then bought
some sarees for Malliga on the request of Suseendran (A-17). Suseendran (A-17),
however, gave Rs.1,000/- to D. Shanmugasundaram (PW-208), which was the cost of
the watch. He said the watch was a gift but Suseendran (A-17) said it was not
necessary in the condition they were. They, however, kept the watch. On
1.6.1991 Suseendran (A17) told D.
Shanmugasundaram
(PW-208) that he was taking Malliga to Bangalore where he had got a house to
live. On 2.6.1991 they left the house. Next day Malliga's brother (Sivarasan)
came to the house of Karpagam (PW-133) whom she informed that Suseendran (A-17)
had taken Malliga to Bangalore.
Karpagam
(PW-133) identified the photo of Sivarasan (MO-470) as the person who was
introduced as brother of Malliga by Suseendran (A-17). There was another person
who had come with Sivarasan. Karpagam (PW-133) identified him as Ravi (A-16).
On 3.6.1991 Suseendran (A-17) and Malliga came back and when D.
Shanmugasundaram (PW-208) asked them whether they had gone to Bangalore,
Suseendran (A-17) replied that they could not get the tickets and had stayed in
a friend's house. Malliga was told that her brother had come on a day before.
Suseendran (A-17) left the house on 4.6.1991 and came back the next day. After
some time Sivarasan came and then all three left. They did not tell Karpagam
(PW-133) as to where they were going. After about ten days Suseendran (A-17)
came to the house of Karpagam (PW-133) and when she inquired about Malliga's
health he said she was fine and asked her to come to Bangalore where they were
staying in a separate rented house. After one month suddenly on one night
Suseendran (A-17) came again and told D. Shanmugasundaram (PW-208) that the
woman who had stayed in their house was Subha and if they disclose that to
anybody they would be put in trouble and also said that he would not be
responsible for that. Saying that he went away.
Karpagam
(PW133) said that they were afraid and did not divulge about their stay to
anybody. When Malliga @ Subha was presented with a new watch the old citizen
watch (MO-471), which she was wearing, she left in the house of Karpagam
(PW-133). Suseendran (A-17) had left a Philips radio (MO-472). Police took
these articles into possession by seizure memo Exh.P-635. Police also took into
possession bill for the purchase of the HMT watch (Exh.P-636). There was also a
guarantee card of the watch (Exh.P-637).
Karpagam
(PW-133) identified both Sivarasan and Subha in the photograph and she also
identified Ravi (A-16) and Suseendran (A17). D. Shanmugasundaram (PW-208),
husband of Karpagam (PW-133), corroborated the statement of his wife in all
respects.
Irumborai
(A-19) is Indian national. He developed interest in the party Dravida Kazhagam
(DK) and became Secretary of Pudukottai District Youth Forum of the party in
1978. In a conference of DK held at Trichy in 1985 a resolution was passed to
give full support to LTTE in their struggle. Public meetings were arranged in
support of LTTE and funds collected. Irumborai (A-19) took part in arranging
the meetings. He met many persons of LTTE cadre.
One of
whom was Kasi Anandhan (PW-242). For two years in 1986-87 nobody came to
collect the funds from Sri Lanka.
Then
one Ramesh of LTTE cadre was introduced to Irumborai (A-19). He was organizing
providing medical treatment to the injured LTTE cadre, who were injured in war
in Sri Lanka and had come to India for treatment. He took Irumborai (A-19) to
hospital to assist him in looking after the patients who were getting treatment
there. During the meeting organized by DK Irumborai (A-19) also met Baby
Subramaniam. In the end of 1989 or beginning of 1990 Irumborai (A-19) and
Ramesh went to LTTE headquarters at Indira Nagar, Madras where they met Baby
Subramaniam.
Irumborai
(A-19) was meeting Baby Subramaniam quite often in public meetings and also at
his press at Madras. In his confession Irumborai (A-19) said he also used to
cut the news relating to LTTE published in newspapers and paste them in a
notebook which he would hand over to Baby Subramaniam who in turn would send
that to Jaffna. Irumborai (A-19) said that he also used to go to photo studio
run by Suba Sundaram (A-22) along with Baby Subramaniam. Baby Subramaniam would
bring copies of video and audio cassettes relating to LTTE to the studio of
Suba Sundaram (A-22), which related to LTTE camps in Sri Lanka and the affected
places and persons. At the studio of Suba Sundaram (A-22), Irumborai (A-19)
also said that he got acquainted with Bhagyanathan (A-20) but he did not see
either his sister or his mother. Whenever Irumborai (A-19) came to Madras he
would stay in a room near water tank, rent of which was paid by Baby
Subramaniam. Irumborai (A-19) had also seen Arivu (A-18) in DK conferences. He
also got acquainted with Muthuraja through Baby Subramaniam, who was strong
supporter of LTTE. Muthuraja and Arivu (A-18) had also been staying in the room
near water tank in Indira Nagar. Irumborai (A-19) said he and others did not accept
the policy of Indian Government and specially the action of the IPKF. In June,
1990 Irumborai (A19), Arivu (A-18) and Baby Subramaniam went to Trichy. When
they were staying in a house, Trichy Santhan (DA) came there in a Maruti van.
They along with some other LTTE persons went to a place near the coast by van
and from there to Jaffna in Sri Lanka by a boat. After spending some days there
Irumborai (A-19) and others decided to return to India but by that time there
was a conflict started between LTTE and Sri Lankan army with the result that
they could not return. Irumborai (A-19) did the same work there in the press of
Baby Subramaniam. He met senior members of LTTE. He was also introduced to
Prabhakaran. For five months Irumborai (A-19) was in Sri Lanka and he met many
women and children who were affected by the conflict with IPKF. That moved
Irumborai (A-19). In November, 1990, Irumborai (A-19), Arivu (A18), Suresh
Master and two injured ladies came to India by boat. He met one Kripan who was
also the organizer for giving treatment to the injured boys. In March Irumborai
(A-19) came to Madras and he met one Kumar, who was the organizer for political
wing of LTTE. Irumborai (A-19) went with Suresh Master (DA) to see the boys who
were under treatment in various hospitals. During February, 1991 police
arrested those persons who were in the house at Adayar. Kripan was also
arrested. Irumborai (A-19) said he stayed in Y.V.K.
Hospital
and Vijaya Hospital and one day in the month of March, 1991 he and Suresh Master
(DA) went to Trichy and met Trichy Santhan (DA), who had just then returned
from Jaffna.
They
discussed about the arrest of Kripan and the problem that was being faced in
raising funds. Trichy Santhan (DA) said that he would provide the necessary funds.
After that they returned to Madras. Suresh Master (DA) hired a house in Alwar
Thirunagar in Madras. The house had already been hired by Amman, who was
staying there. Other injured LTTE boys were also there. Irumborai (A-19) said
he was continuously doing the hospital work and apart from that he also met the
LTTE persons who were in prisons at Tiruchy and Vellore and helped them in
getting necessary things. As per instructions of Suresh Master (DA) one day in
the second week of May, 1991, Irumborai (A-19) said, he went to Tiruchy and
told Trichy Santhan (DA) that Suresh Master (DA) asked for money for his
expenses. Trichy Santhan gave Rs.15,000/to Irumborai (A-19). At that time
Trichy Santhan (DA) told Irumborai (A-19) that LTTE were making arrangements to
kill an important leader shortly, and that Suresh Master (DA), the injured boys
and others be asked to be careful. At this Irumborai (A-19) asked Trichy
Santhan (DA) whether they were going to kill "(Vazhapadi) K.
Ramamurthi"
(PW-258) of Rajiv Congress to which Trichy Santhan said he did not know the
details of the persons and place and alerted all of them to be careful.
Irumborai (A-19) then returned to Madras and gave money to Suresh Master and
also told him the details told by Trichy Santhan.
Irumborai
(A-19) said in his confession that after that he did not talk with any one
about that. On 21.5.1991 Irumborai (A-19) said he and Suresh Master went to a
place called Luz Corner. Arivu (A18) and Bhagyanathan (A-20) were also there.
They all went to M. Sankari's (PW-210) house.
Thereafter
Irumborai (A-19) and Suresh Master went to Anna Nagar by an auto. Suresh Master
got down saying that he was going to see Kasi Anandhan (PW-242). Irumborai
(A-19) went home and took a boy Anand to a dentist. He came back by 10 O'clock
in the night. Suresh Master also came. Next day on 22.5.1991 in the morning
there was news of Rajiv Gandhi being murdered in bomb blast in Sriperumbudur as
announced on TV and in newspapers. Irumborai (A-19) said everybody got
frightened and did not go out for two days. He thought Rajiv Gandhi's murder
was a brave deed and an act of revenge. On third day he and Suresh Master went
to Anna Nagar to meet Kasi Anandhan (PW-242). Suresh Master told him that he
needed some money. Next day when they again went to meet Kasi Anandhan (PW-242)
as told by him he gave money to Suresh Master. Irumborai (A-19) then said that
in the last week of May, 1991 he went to Neyveli to see whether an artificial
leg had been fitted to a girl Jamuna who was admitted by Irumborai (A-19) in
the hospital. Irumborai (A-19) then returned to Madras and as told by Suresh
Master went to Salem to get money from Trichy Santhan but he was not available.
In the first week of June, 1991 Irumborai (A-19) again went to Selam to meet
Trichy Santhan. That night he stayed with him and they discussed about the
photos of murderers which were published in the newspapers and who were
involved in the murder of Rajiv Gandhi. Both returned to Madras. Trichy Santhan
got down at Saidapet and said he was going to Adayar and told Irumborai (A-19)
to inform Suresh Master to come and meet him. Irumborai (A-19) went to the
house at Alwar Thirunagar and conveyed the message to Suresh Master who then
went to Adayar and returned late in the night. Suresh Master then sent the
injured boys in pairs to Bangalore. At that time a person named Rangam (A-24)
from Thiruvanmiyur was frequently coming to meet Suresh Master. In the second
week of June, 1991 Irumborai (A-19) again went to Neyveli to see if the
artificial leg was fitted to Jamuna, a girl of 1617 years of age and who was an
LTTE woman tiger. She had lost her leg in war with militants in the fort at
Jaffna. He met her this time and he found that artificial leg had been fitted
to Jamuna.
Now,
when he returned to Madras he was told by Suresh Master that his photo has been
seized by the police and they were in search of him. Suresh Master advised
Irumborai (A-19) not to go any where from the house. After about three or four
days in the third week of June, 1991 Suresh Master arranged a Maruti van
through Rangam (A-24) and asked Irumborai (A-19) to go to Bangalore. Irumborai
(A-19) went to Bangalore with Rangam (A-24) and stayed in a house in Indira
Nagar. In that house LTTE injured boys were already there. Irumborai (A-19)
said he came to know later that that house was arranged by K. Jagannathan
(PW-211). In the end of June, 1991 Trichy Santhan (DA) came there and told
Irumborai (A19) to bring Jamuna to Bangalore. He also told Irumborai (A-19) to
have contacts with Andhra Naxalites and also to find out if boat transport
could be available at place Malliapattinam near Pudukottai. Irumborai (A-19)
then went to Neyveli and told Jamuna to be ready. He also inquired about the
boat transport to Sri Lanka and was told because of security being tightened
and there being patrolling by Navy it was not possible. Irumborai (A-19) then
accompanied with Jamuna returned to Bangalore. Two days later Trichy Santhan
also came to Bangalore. He said Sivarasan and Subha were not able to go to
Jaffna and that he had received an order to look after them and he said he
would accompany them to Bangalore within two days. Then one day in the end of
June, 1991 at about 6.30 in the morning Sivarasan, Subha and Nero came to the
house at Indira Nagar where Irumborai (A-19) was staying. Along with them Vicky
(A-25), Rangam (A-24) and Dhanasekaran (A23) also came.
Irumborai
(A-19) asked Trichy Santhan how they had come and was told that they had come
to Bangalore from Madras by hiding in a tanker lorry of Dhanasekaran (A-23).
After four days of their arrival Vikky and Dixon also came to that house in
Indira Nagar. Trichy Santhan (DA) and Dixon were discussing as to how to send
Sivarasan and Subha to Jaffna.
They
were looking for a safe place to leave Indian soil. In the house at Indira
Nagar, Sivarasan told Irumborai (A-19) that police were informed about their
identity only because the photo taken by Haribabu and the affairs between
Murugan (A-3) and Nalini (A-1). A week or 10 days thereafter Subha, Nero and
Sivarasan shifted to another house. Then news came that in the last week of
July, 1991 Vicky (A-25) and Raghu were caught in Coimbatore by police and Dixon
(DA) had died.
Since
Vicky (A-25) knew the place in Indira Nagar at Bangalore it was decided to
shift from that place. All the injured LTTE boys in the first house at Indira
Nagar were shifted to the second house. There were about 20 to 30 of them.
Suresh Master suggested that a separate house should be arranged for Sivarasan,
Subha and Nero. Then Irumborai (A-19) in his confession described as to how he
moved about, shifting some of the injured LTTE cadre to other places and
getting news of suicide committed by some of LTTE cadre while consuming
cyanide. Both Irumborai (A-19) and Trichy Santhan themselves went in hiding
from one place to another.
They
then heard the news of 12 LTTE boys having died by consuming cyanide in Indira
Nagar. Trichy Santhan (DA) then directed Irumborai (A-19) to go to his native
place. Within two or three days news came that Sivarasan, Subha, Suresh Master
(DA), Nero and Jamnua died in Bangalore. In the first week of September, 1991
Irumborai (A-19) again met Trichy Santhan who told him that he was short of
funds and since police was making efforts to search him he could not go to
Jaffna. He asked Irumborai (A-19) to some how make arrangement to go to Jaffna
to meet Baby Subramaniam and then to meet Prabhakaran directly and to inform
him about political situation in India at that time and other things.
Ultimately
arrangement for Irumborai (A-19) to go to Sri Lanka were made and he was told
to be ready on 29.9.1991, Sunday night at a particular place. He conveyed the
news to Trichy Santhan (DA). Trichy Santhan sent a cover with a letter written
by him to Prabhakaran and also a letter written by him to Irumborai (A-19) and
some other letters written by other LTTE persons for being taken to Sri Lanka.
In the
cover addressed to Prabhakaran it was superscribed as "very important to
the leader". There was another letter which Trichy Santhan (DA) wrote to
Irumborai (A-19). It was dated 7.9.1991 and was in two pages. A boat which was
to take Irumborai (A-19) and other LTTE persons came from Rameshwaram near a
place 'Vil Oondi Theertham' near seashore as arranged earlier. They got into the
boat. When the boat was moving in the sea at about 1.30 in the night Navy men
who were patrolling surrounded the boat. Three LTTE persons, who were in the
boat, took cyanide. Two died and one in serious condition was taken to the
hospital. On the morning of 3.10.1991 Irumborai (A-19) and others, who were
also in the boat were handed over to the police at Rameshwaram. The letters
which were written by Trichy Santhan (DA) to Prabhakaran and Irumborai (A-19)
(Exh.P-128 and 129) and other letters were also seized from him. P.V. Francis
(PW-172), Commander in Indian Navy, and P.P.S. Dhillon (PW-239), Flight
Commander of the Helicoptor Unit of Portblair, both testified to the capturing
of boat taking LTTE personnel and seizure of letters Exh.P-128 and 129.
Dhanasekaran
(A-23) is in lorry business with his brother. They had been taking loan from
Sundaram Finance Ltd. for purchase of lorries. Two buses were bought in his
name which were plying on two different routes in Tamil Nadu. There was
separation in the family business and to his and elder brother Krishnamurthi
share one bus and six lorries were allotted. They named the bus service
allotted to them as D.K. Transporters (D. for Dhanasekaran and K.
for
Krishnamurthi). In the year 1985 through an advocate friend Dhanasekaran (A-23)
visited LTTE camp situated in the garden of Kollathur Mani in Tamil Nadu.
Dhanasekaran (A-23) got attracted to LTTE movement and used to visit the LTTE
camp quite often. He came in contact with various important persons of LTTE. He
would go and look after the LTTE boys, who got injured in the struggle with Sri
Lankan army and had come to India for treatment. By the passage of time he
developed strong connections with LTTE persons. In his confession Dhanasekaran
(A-23) said that of the LTTE boys he was looking after two of them, namely,
Murthy and Vardhan, died after taking cyanide at Bangalore. One Kruppan of LTTE
asked him once if he knew anyone to purchase a Maruti Gypsy vehicle. For this
purpose Dhanasekaran (A-23) and two other LTTE persons went to Union Motors,
Selam. They met V.P. Raghunathan (PW-153), Manager of the Union Motors. He told
them that the vehicle would be delivered within three months if full amount was
paid in cash. That money was provided by LTTE people. Dhanasekaran (A-23) along
with two others again visited Union Motors to make payment but V.P.
Raghunathan
(PW-153) said that he would not accept cash and that payment might be made by a
bank Demand Draft.
Accordingly
a Demand Draft was obtained from Indian Bank.
Similarly
Dhanasekaran (A-23) was again approached for purchase of two more Maruti Gypsy
vehicles. He again got two Demand Drafts through his account from Vijaya Bank,
Mettur and got the vehicles booked at Union Motors, Salem.
In
November, 1990, he received a phone call from Union Motors that all the Gypsy
vehicles were ready for delivery and that delivery would be made at Tiruchy.
Dhanasekaran (A-23) said that he would have the vehicle delivered at Salem
itself. He got one Maruti Gypsy delivered in the name of K. Prakash by signing
as K. Prakash. Similarly two other vehicles were delivered. Dhanasekaran (A-23)
said this way he booked six Maruti Gypsy vehicles under various names for LTTE.
During December, 1990 he took two seriously injured persons in Maruti van from
Mettur to Bangalore for treatment. K. Jagannathan (PW-211) and another person
belonging to LTTE helped him and also came with them up to Bangalore and a
house was arranged in Bangalore through K.
Jagannathan
(PW-211). Of the injured persons so transferred one died. His body was brought
and buried at the side of the LTTE camp. In April, 1991 Trichy Santhan (DA) and
an important member of LTTE came along with Rangam (A-24) whom Dhanasekaran
(A-23) already knew as driver. He was also known to Trichy Santhan as he met
him in Gokulam Hospital at Salem where LTTE persons were getting treatment.
Trichy Santhan told Dhanasekaran (A-23) that more boys of LTTE movement were in
prison in Tamil Nadu and he had come to Tamil Nadu to look after them and
wanted to see Kolathur Mani where LTTE camp was situated. After some days
Dhanasekaran (A-23) got a message to meet Trichy Santhan at Salem. He went
there. Trichy Santhan asked him to meet Kolathur Mani and to remind him to send
him money.
Dhanasekaran
(A-23) said that on 21.5.1991 he was in his house at Mettur when he heard the
news of Rajiv Gandhi's death due to bomb explosion at Sriperumbudur. He got the
news through newspapers and television. He said later he came to know that it
was the LTTE cadre who was mainly responsible for the assassination of Rajiv
Gandhi and that Sivarasan, Subha and Dhanu were involved in the same. He saw
their photographs in the magazine and on T.V.
Dhanasekaran
(A-23) then said that on 23.6.1991 when he went to attend a marriage he again got
a message from Kolathur Mani to meet Trichy Santhan at Salem and to help him to
transfer two persons to another place. Dhanasekaran (A-23) along with K.
Jagannathan (PW-211) went to Salem. He met Trichy Santhan separately. There he
instructed him to take Sivarasan, Subha and Nero from Madras to Bangalore. He
gave the idea that they could be taken in an empty tanker lorry by hiding them
in the tanker after cleaning it. That idea he gave as nobody would search the
empty tanker lorry usually. He said that tanker lorry be arranged in two or
three days itself otherwise those three persons would be arrested by the
police. Dhanasekaran (A-23) said he selected a tanker lorry bearing
registration No.TN-27-Y-0808, which he had bought after obtaining loan from Sundaran
Finance Ltd. The loan had not been discharged and to avoid seizure by Sundaram
Finance Dhanasekaran (A-23) changed the lorry number as TAM-8998. The lorry
having registration No. TAM-8998 was kept in garrage as it had met with an
accident and Dhanasekaran (A-23) had already received the insurance amount
after completing the formalities. After changing the registration plate of the
tanker lorry as TAM-8998, Dhanasekaran (A-23) along with driver R. Selvaraj
(PW-230) and cleaner Vijayan left Mettur on 27.6.1991 at 1.00 p.m. and reached
Salem. From Salem Dhanasekaran (A-23) left for Madras along with Vicky (A-25),
Amman (DA), driver R. Selvaraj (PW-230) and cleaner Vijayan. The lorry was
driven by R. Selvaraj (PW-230).
The
tanker was filled with water on the way. Fuel (Diesel) was taken for Rs.1,000/-
from an Indian Oil petrol pump.
Water
was released near Sriperumbudur. Next day on 28.6.1991 They arrived at 6
O'clock at Poonamallee. Amman (DA) alighted near Iyyappan Thangal. They further
stopped the lorry near Poonamallee by-pass road. They sent away driver R.
Selvaraj (PW-230) and cleaner Vijayan. In the night Amman (DA) came with Rangam
(A-24) and asked Dhanasekaran (A-23) and Vicky (A-25) to go with them. Vicky
(A-25), Amman (DA), Rangam (A-24) and Dhanasekaran (A-23) took the tanker and
halted it at a certain place after crossing Porur. Vicky (A-25), Amman (DA) and
Rangam (A-24) went out and returned along with Suresh Master (DA) who was
introduced to Dhanasekaran (A-23). By that time three persons, namely,
Sivarasan, Subha and Nero came there with three bags with them. They entered
inside the tanker after Vicky (A-25) opened the cap of the container. Vicky
(A-25), Amman (DA) and Rangam (A-24) were seated along with Dhanasekaran (A-23)
in lorry cabin. It was driven by Dhanasekaran (A-23). Driver R. Selvaraj
(PW-230) and cleaner Vijayan boarded the lorry at Poonamallee. They drove the
vehicle straight on the Bangalore Road. At two places messages were sent to
Bangalore that they were reaching there. They reached Bangalore in the morning
at about 7 O'clock on 29.6.1991. Tanker lorry was stopped a little away from
Indira Nagar. Driver R. Selvaraj (PW-230) and cleaner Vijayan were again sent
away to have tea. Vicky (A-25) was left in the vehicle and Dhanasekaran (A-23)
and Rangam (A-24) went to the house at Indira Nagar. There they saw Trichy
Santhan and Irumborai (A-19). More injured persons of LTTE cadre were also
there. Dhanasekaran (A23) further said that he took the Fiat car to a place
where tanker lorry was parked as directed by Trichy Santhan (DA).
Sivarasan,
Subha and Nero exited from the tanker and were brought to Indira Nagar house in
the Fiat car. Confession of Dhanasekaran (A-23) is silent about Amman (DA)
after tanker reached Bangalore. Dhanasekaran (A-23) then went to the tanker
again by an auto and drove the tanker lorry to Madras along with driver R.
Selvaraj (PW-230) and cleaner Vijayan. Tanker lorry was loaded from SPIC
Chemicals and reached Mettur. This tanker lorry was seized by Sundaram Finance Ltd.
after a month. Dhanasekaran (A-23) then said that he again went to the house at
Indira Nagar on 24.7.1991 and saw Sivarasan. He had conversation with him for
nearly half an hour. When Dhanasekaran (A-23) asked him as to why did he murder
Rajiv Gandhi, his answer was that "he did it in accordance with the
instructions by their leader". Then Dhanasekaran (A-23) asked why Subha
accompanied him and his answer was that she was for an alternative arrangement.
After
he learnt that police was looking for him he went in hiding for some time and
consulted his advocate in Madras.
He was
advised to return to his house. Later he was arrested at Mettur on 13.10.1991.
Rangam
(A-24) is a Sri Lankan national. In 1983 he joined LTTE movement. He got
military training. He took part in the war with Sri Lankan army in 1984. He was
injured and after he got the treatment he did not go for military duty and
instead he was given the work of transport. In Jaffna he met various important
persons belonging to LTTE. He came to know Sivarasan. He also met Prabhakaran.
In 1989 he came to India where, he said, he was running a travel agency without
permit. In his confession he said he prepared passports and other documents for
Sri Lankans, who wanted to go abroad. He said he used to prepare fake documents
through a travel agency in Adayar in Madras and made good income. In December,
1990 he got links with LTTE movement in India. He also got acquainted with
Amman (DA) who was a driver and was working under Trichy Santhan (DA) and his
assistant Suresh Master (DA), who belonged to political wing of LTTE. Rangam
(A-24) said he helped Amman and sent Sri Lankan Tamilians to go abroad during
December, 1990 and January, 1991. He brought one Maruti van TN04A-0337 in the
name of Ramesh who also arranged a house for him. He said he came to know
Trichy Santhan(DA), Suresh Master (DA) and Irumborai (A-19) through Amman (DA).
Rangam (A-24) said that Prabhakaran had entrusted Trichy Santhan the
responsibility of looking after the work such as political activities of LTTE
in India, necessary supplies to Sri Lanka, arranging for treatment of injured
"tigers", arranging houses for the persons in LTTE movement and to
take them from place to place. A house at Alwarthirunagar was arranged by Amman
(DA) for the stay of LTTE persons. That house was independent and situated in a
remote place and was convenient for LTTE men to come and go without being
noticed. Rangam (A-24) said that Suresh Master (DA) told him in the beginning
of May, 1991 that police would take action very soon and that LTTE men should
be shifted to some other place. Rangam (A-24) said that he was taking LTTE men,
who were injured, continuously in his Maruti van. Some of them stayed in the
house at Alwar Thirunagar, some in Vijaya Nursing home and some were taking
treatment in Asian Hospital. He removed those injured persons from those places
in his van and dropped them in places like Thiruvalluvar bus stand and Parrys
corner. From there Trichy Santhan, Suresh Master, and Irumborai (A-19) would take
them to different places by bus. In his confession Rangam (A-24) further said
that during May 18-21, 1991 he was busy in sending the Sri Lankan Tamilians
abroad.
But
after assassination of Rajiv Gandhi situation became bad. Photograph of
Sivarasan was published in the newspapers and so Rangam (A-24) said he was
actively working at that time to send LTTE men out of Madras with the help of
Suresh Master and Irumborai (A-19). In June, 1991 Rangam (A-24) went to
Bengalore to the house of K. Jagannathan (PW-211) at Indira Nagar. His address
was given to him by one Balaguru in Madras whom he met in Vijaya Nursing Home.
While
going to Bangalore Sudha, an LTTE activist and mother of Balagur, and one Ravi
went in his van to Bangalore. K.
Jagannathan
(PW-211) arranged to get treatment to the injured LTTE persons. Rangam (A24)
said that he also met one Vasanthan, who was a partner of Trichy Santhan and
working under the leadership of Trichy Santhan. He was actively doing the work
in LTTE like arranging safe houses for their mission. In the end of June, 1991
Suresh Master (DA) told Rangam (A-24) that he was being given an important
work. At that time Dixon (DA), another LTTE man, was also present. Suresh
Master (DA) told Rangam (A-24) to wait in a remote place at Alwar Thirunagar at
7.30 in the evening on the following day. At about 8 O'clock in the night
Suresh Master (DA) along with Sivarasan, Subha and Nero came in an auto. They
all stayed in the house at Alwar Thirunagar while Rangam (A-24) went to his
house in Thiruvanmiyur.
Sivarasan,
Subha and Nero stayed there for about four or five days. Suresh Master then
told Rangam (A-24) that they should be taken to place outside Madras. Amman
(DA) took him to a place at Porur-Poonamallee Road where a tanker was parked.
Amman (DA) told Rangam (A-24) that Trichy Santhan had arranged that tanker to
take Sivarasan and others to Bangalore. One person by name Dhanasekaran (A-23)
with another small boy to assist him by the name Vicky (A-25) was with him.
While Dhanasekaran (A-23) stayed in the tanker Rangam (A-24) took Sivarasan,
Subha and Nero from their place of stay and made them get into the tanker
through the hole at the back of the tanker. Sivarasan and others were having
AK-47 gun and also a pistol with them. Rangam (A-24), Vicky (A-25) and Amman
(DA) sat in front portion of the tanker and they left for Bangalore by 9
O'clock in the night. Two more boys, who were working with Dhanasekaran (A-23)
were also taken in the tanker on their way. Vicky (A-25) telephoned Bangalore
from PCO while they were going to Bangalore and informed Trichy Santhan about
their arrival. They reached Bangalore early in the morning. Then Rangam (A-24)
in his confession corroborates what Dhanasekaran (A-23) said. On the same day
Rangam (A-24) said, he returned to Madras and shifted the remaining injured
LTTE persons to some other places like lodges, etc.
He
vacated his house at Thiruvanmiyur. He went to stay with Suresh Master (DA) in
Vijaya Nursing Home. In the third week of July, 1991 Rangam (A-24) again went
to Bangalore on the instructions of Suresh Master. He went by night bus.
Suresh
Master also reached Bangalore by that time. There they went to the house at
Indira Nagar where Sivarasan and others were hiding. Rangam (A-24) met some
other LTTE men in that house. After hearing that Vicky (A-25) had been arrested
in Coimbatore the house at Indira Nagar was vacated and they all moved to
another house nearby. Some LTTE persons were already staying in that house.
Trichy Santhan gave Rangam (A-24) a Maruti Gypsy which Rangam (A-24) was
driving. Rangam (A-24) then said that when CBI raided the house at Indira
Nagar, two of the LTTE persons committed suicide and other injured persons went
to different places.
He
said, in the meanwhile Suresh Master (DA) arranged the house of Ranganath
(A-26) for Sivarasan and others to stay.
That
house was in Puthien Halli. Rangam (A-24) took Sivarasan, Subha, Nero, Suresh
Master (DA) and Amman (DA) to that house. They moved to that house in the
beginning of August, 1991. After some days Ranganath (A-26) arranged another
house in Anaikal for treatment of LTTE persons.
Rangam
(A-24) and Ranganath (A-26) shifted LTTE persons in Maruti Gypsy to that house
in Anaikkal. In the meanwhile an LTTE person was arrested by local police. After
that it was decided to change the colour of the Fiat car and Maruti Gypsy.
Rangam (A-24) with the help of a mechanic, who war arranged by Ranganath (A-26)
went and got repainted the colour of the vehicles. Gypsy from green to white
and Fiat car from sky blue to white. Ranganath (A-26) arranged two houses
outside Bangalore in two villages called Beroota and Muthathi where injured
persons from Anaikkal were shifted.
Yet
another house was arranged by Ranganath (A-26) in Konanakunta for Sivarasan,
Subha and Nero to hide. Around 16.8.1991 Rangam (A24) said they moved their
residence from Puthan Halli to Konanakunta. Rangam (A-24) took Sivarasan Subha
and Nero in the Maruti van. Ranganath (A-26) and his wife also went to that
house. Thereafter Rangam (A-24) said he went to look after the injured LTTE
persons in G.G. Hospital. From there he took one injured LTTE woman Jamuna (DA)
to the house at Konanakunta. In that house only Sivarasan, Subha, Nero, Amman,
Suresh Master, Driver Anna and Keerthi were staying. On the evening of
18.8.1991 when Rangam (A-24) came to the house in Konanakunta he found that
police had surrounded that house from all sides. He turned back. Next day he
took Gypsy van and arrived at Madras on the morning of 20.8.1991. He went to
Balaguru and handed over the key of the vehicle to him after parking the Gypsy
in Vijaya Nursing Home. Since police was looking for him he asked Balaguru to
arrange a house for him at Avadi. One day when he went to Adayar Travel Agency,
police caught him.
Vicky
(A-25) is a Sri Lankan national. His father was having a shop selling cloths.
That shop was destroyed in a raid by Sri Lankan Air Force in the year 1985.
Vicky (A-25) thereafter came to India illegally by boat carrying with him video
cassettes, audio cassettes, sarees, V.C.P., etc. which he sold in India.
Instead he carried lungis and food articles and returned back to Sri Lanka and
earned some money by way of selling those articles in Sri Lanka. By Sri Lankan
military one of their houses was completely damaged by bomb blast in the year
1987. His family resided at certain places as refugees. In 1990 he again came
to India to start some business here. Then he met an LTTE activist who said he
had come to India for treatment of his wounds and now he was looking those
wounded in Sri Lanka and had come to India for treatment. Vicky (A-25) also met
LTTE boys who had been injured and were getting treatment in the hospitals in
India. Vicky (A-25) assisted that LTTE activist in getting medicines and acted
as his helper. In the middle of 1990, Vicky (A-25) said in his confession that
he was introduced to Trichy Santhan. He further said that in the month of
'Panguni', 1991 Trichy Santhan met him and told him that he was in need of
medicines and that those should be purchased urgently and were to be sent to
Sri Lanka. Trichy Santhan gave him Rs.2.00 lacs and list of medicines to be
purchased. Trichy Santhan also introduced Vicky (A-25) to Dixon (DA), who was
also a member of LTTE movement. Vicky (A-25) then described his meeting with
various LTTE activists. The medicines which had been purchased were given to
LTTE activist Bharatham who left for Sri Lanka with the medicines. In a rented
house Vicky (A-25) was stocking the medicines in bundles which he had
purchased. He said two days after the assassination of Rajiv Gandhi Trichy
Santhan met him and told that it was now impossible to stay in Tiruchy and said
he would go to Coimbatore and again asked him to purchase all those medicines
ordered by him. He further told Vicky (A-25) that if any one of Sivarasan's man
wanted to go to home town they should be told to go to Indiran Kutty's house.
It was only after Rajiv Gandhi's assassination, Vicky (A-25) said in his
confession, that he came to know that his name was Sivarasan. Vicky (A-25) then
in his confession described his instructions from Trichy Santhan and his coming
to Madras and ultimately his going in the tanker lorry with others to
Bangalore. He also described his helping injured LTTE personnel. After leaving
Bangalore Vicky (A-25) went to Coimbatore where he was arrested by the police.
V.P.
Raghunathan (PW-153) was manager of the Union Motors, Salem. He has testified
about the four Gypsy being purchased by Dhanasekaran (A-23) in different names
on 14.11.1990. He produced delivery receipts and documents connected with the
sale of these four Gypsies. Maruti Gypsy, which was purchased in the name of R.
Mohan, was subsequently used by Rangam (A-24) to transport Sivarasan, Subha,
Nero and other activists to Bangalore. This Gypsy (MO-540) was seized during
investigation.
S.
Syed Ibrahim (PW-232) is Insurance Surveyor, who surveyed the damaged tanker
bearing registration No. TAM-8998.
S.V.
Krishnan (PW-168) is from Sundaram Finance Ltd., who had financed the lorry
tanker bearing registration number TN-27-Y0808 and which was used with fake
registration plate (TAM-8998) to transport Sivarasan, Subha, Nero and others
from Madras to Bangalore. Since the vehicle was under hire purchase agreement
with Sundaram Finance Ltd. it was taken into possession by S.V. Krishnan
(PW-168).
Subsequently
during investigation this tanker lorry (MO-543) was seized by the police.
R.
Selvaraj (PW-230) was the driver of the tanker lorry (MP-540) and Vijayan was
the cleaner. In his statement R. Selvaraj (PW-230) said that he drove the
tanker lorry on 27.6.1991 from Mettur to Madras. On the way it was filled with
water. The purpose was to clean the tanker. Tanker was also filled with diesel
for fuel.
Prosecution
has produced S. Vasudevan (PW-245) to testify that 238 litres of diesel was put
in the tanker lorry (MO543) on 27.6.1991. R. Selvaraj (PW-230) then said that
at Sriperumbudur tanker was emptied of water and cleaned from inside. They
reached Poonamallee on 28.6.1991 in the morning where he and Vijayan got down.
Now it was Dhanasekaran (A-23) who drove the vehicle with Amman (DA) and Vicky
(A-25) sitting in the tanker lorry. When the tanker came back to Poonamallee R.
Selvaraj (PW230) and Vijayan got into the vehicle and the vehicle proceeded
toward Bangalore. It was being driven by Dhanasekaran (A-23). On the way Vicky
(A-25) got down and made a telephone call on STD. That a call was made has been
proved by A. Selvaraj (PW-256). Call was made to telephone number 541824 of
Bangalore. In further statement R. Selvaraj (PW-230) said that when the tanker
lorry reached Bangalore again he and cleaner Vijayan went away for tea but
Vicky (A-25) remained in the tanker, while Dhanasekaran (A23) and Rangam (A-24)
went by an auto rikshaw. Afterwards Dhanasekaran (A-23) came back in an auto
where tanker lorry was parked. Tanker lorry now proceeded towards Madras with
Dhanasekaran (A-23), R. Selvaraj (PW-230) and Vijayan in the vehicle. In the
notebook (Exh.P-1012), regularly maintained by R. Selvaraj (PW-230) there were
entries of the trips and other expenses incurred. Notebook (Exh.P-1012) showed
that R. Selvaraj (PW-230) drove tanker lorry (MO-543) from Mettur to Salem
where a new mattress was purchased and kept on the top of the cabin of the
vehicle.
The
vehicle left for Madras and at Poonamallee both R. Selvaraj (PW-230) and
Vijayan got out. When they again brought in the vehicle at Poonamallee R.
Selvaraj (PW-230) did not find the mattress. At Bangalore similarly when R.
Selvaraj
(PW-230) and cleaner Vijayan came back to the vehicle the mattress was again
found in the cabin. This mattress was thrown in the river near Hosur when
tanker lorry was going back to Madras. Prosecution seeks to draw inference from
this that mattress was kept inside the tanker lorry for the comfortable sitting
of Sivarasan, Subha and Nero and when its use was over it was thrown away in
the river.
Rangam
(A-24) had purchased Maruti van in the name of his friend V. Ramesh, bearing
registration number TN-4A-0037 (MO950). A. Nageswara Rao (PW-178) is the owner
of the house No. 13, Park Avenue, Velan Nagar Extension, Alwarthirunagar,
Madras which was taken on rent by Rangam (A-24) in March, 1991. Lease documents
were also executed (Exh.P-895-897). Rangam (A-24) vacated the house in the
first week of July, 1991. Before their escape to Bangalore Sivarasan, Subha,
Nero and others were staying in this house. That Maruti Gypsy (MO-540) was
being driven by Rangam (A-24) in Bangalore has also been testified by Mrudulla
(PW-65), wife of Ranganath (A-26). K.N. Mohan (PW-222) is the owner of the
workshop where Maruti Gypsy was repainted from green to white.
Ranganath
(A-26) is an Indian national settled in Bangalore. Mrudulla (PW-65) is his
wife. At the relevant time he was without any job. In March, 1991 he was
staying with his wife at a house in Puttan Halli which was owned by E.
Aanjanappa (PW-218).
R.
Rajan (PW-223) in his deposition said that he was friendly to one Vasanthan who
was Tamilian and whose native place was in Jaffna, Sri Lanka. Both knew each
other from Tamil Association in Bangalore. On 29.7.1991 Vasanthan asked R.
Rajan (PW-223) that a house was required for stay of four or five persons
urgently. After two days Vasanthan again met R. Rajan (PW-223) for the purpose.
He told him that no house was available. On 1.8.1991 Jagadish, a friend of R.
Rajan (PW-223) met him and told him that he wanted to buy a lathe machine. A
lathe machine was owned by Ranganath (A-26) who wanted to sell the same. In
that connection R.
Rajan
(PW-223) met Ranganath (A-26) in his house. R. Rajan (PW-223) introduced
Ranganath (A-26) to Vasanthan telling him that he was an LTTE activist and
asked Ranganath (A-26) to arrange a house for him. R. Rajan (PW-223) said that
he knew Ranganath (A-26) since 1990 as he was friend of Jagadish. R. Rajan
(PW-223) said on 2.8.1991 that about 5.30 or 6.30 p.m. he and Vasanthan met
near Sivaji Circle, Bangalore. At that time two more persons had come with
Vasanthan and those two persons and Vasanthan talked to Ranganath (A-26)
privately and left. On 2.8.1991 in the night at 10 O'clock Ranganath (A-26)
brought Sivarasan, Rangam (A-24), Amman, Suresh Master, Driver Anna and Amman
to his house through front door and then brought Subha and Nero through back
door. All these seven persons continued to stay in the house at Puttan Halli
with Ranganath (A26) till 16.8.1991. They would remain confined themselves in a
room and would not come out. While staying in the house only Rangam (A-24) was
driving Maruti Gypsy (MO-540) for buying vegetables and taking Mrudulla (PW-65)
and Ranganath (A-26) for outside work.
K.N.
Mohan (PW-222) was a car mechanic and was running garrage in Bangalore. He said
he did the painting work of green Gypsy of Ranganath (A-26). He painted the
Gypsy white. Ranganath (A-26) had brought the Maruti Gypsy to the garrage on
8.8.1991 and got its delivery back on 10.8.1991 after paying total charges of
Rs.2,200/-. On 16.9.1991 Ranganath (A-26) again came to the garrage with
Premier Fiat car bearing registration number CAU 6492. That Fiat car was also
painted white though its original colour was sky blue. For the work done on the
Fiat car K.N. Mohan (PW-222) charged Rs.2,500/-. That car was still lying in
the garrage when K.N. Mohan (PW-222), said that, on 28.8.91 Ranganath (A-26)
came to the garrage with 4 CBI officers.
Ranganath
(A-26) had pointed the Fiat car to the CBI officers. The car was taken into
possession by the CBI.
Mrudulla
(PW-65), wife of Ranganath (A-26), is a teacher. She was married to Ranganath
(A-26) in June, 1986.
She
said on 2.8.1991 around 10 O'clock in the night Ranganath (A-26) came with a
person who said there were more persons with him and they would stay in the
house for four days. The person, who came with Ranganath (A-26), was Suresh
Master (DA). Ranganath (A-26) and Suresh Master both went out and brought four
persons with them, who were Sivarasan, Rangam (A-24), Driver Anna and Amman
(DA). Two persons entered the house from the back door and they were Subha and
Nero. Next morning Mrudulla (PW-65) said she saw green Maruti Gypsy van in
front of the house which was covered with tarpaulin. She could not see the
number plate of the vehicle. Ranganath (A-26), Suresh Master and Rangam (A-24)
went out on the morning of 3.8.1991. When Suresh Master and Rangam (A-24)
returned it was about 2.30 p.m.
They
had brought provisions. Her husband did not come at that time. Mrudulla (PW-65)
said that when her husband returned in the night she told him that the persons,
who were staying, were hesitating to go out and she said some thing was fishy.
He replied that they would stay for two or three days and would leave. Fifth
day Mrudulla (PW-65) watched the news on the TV and saw the pictures of Subha
and Sivarasan. Mrudulla (PW-65) identified Subha. Subha also knew that she had
been identified by Mrudulla (PW-65). In the evening Mrudulla (PW65) told her
husband about this fact who said not to ask any question. Subha afterwards
became familiar with Mrudulla (PW-65). She told Mrudulla (PW-65) she was eager
to return to Jaffna to meet her leader Prabhakaran. Once Mrudulla (PW-65) saw
Sivarasan fixing a lens on his left eye. Mrudulla (PW-65) asked Subha as to why
did they kill Rajiv Gandhi, and her reply was that Rajiv Gandhi was responsible
in sending the IPKF to Sri Lanka and they had 'spoiled' many women and
children. She was wearing a cyanide capsule in a thread around her neck.
Persons staying in the house were having arms as well and Mrudulla (PW-65) said
that they used to threaten them that "if this was reported to somebody
they will kill us". Mrudulla (PW-65) then described the stay of those
persons in her house and some time their moving out and meeting certain people.
Those persons stayed in the house uptil 16.8.1991.
On
16.8.1991 Ranganath (A-26) told Mrudulla (PW-65) that he had fixed a house in
Konanakunta at a rent of Rs.800/- per month and advance of Rs.10,000/- was to
be paid. They all went to Konankunte house with provisions. After performing
pooja they returned. Mrudulla (PW-65) said that while in her house at
Puttanhalli she noticed Ak-47 rifle in Nero's hand and a pistol in Subha's
hand. Again when she asked about that they said if she told anything about that
to anybody they would not spare her. At 10.30 p.m. Ranganath (A-26), Mrudulla
(PW-65), Suresh Master (DA), Nero, Subha, Amman, Driver Anna, Sivarasan left
for Konankunte house.
They
went by Gypsy van. They also carried gas stove and other articles with them to
that house. Mrudulla (PW65) said she refused to accompany them but she was
forcefully taken. They all spent that night there. In Konankunte house Mrudulla
(PW-65) saw some papers which had the sketches of K.R.S. Dam and Vidhan Soudha.
They were also having pictures of the blast that killed Rajiv Gandhi.
Again
when she asked those persons reason for killing Rajiv Gandhi they said that
they had to kill him because he sent IPKF to Sri Lanka and was responsible for
several atrocities committed on women and children. On the morning of 18.8.1991
there was a news item that 12 LTTE cadres had been killed in Muthathi which is
in suburban of Bangalore.
Mrudulla
(PW-65) told her husband that it was not safe to stay any longer with those
people. When she and her husband tried to go out of the house Sivarasan
confronted them suddenly and asked where they were going. Ranganath (A-26) told
Sivarasan that Mrudulla (PW-65) was not well and they would consult a doctor
and that they decided to vacate Puttanhalli house. While returning to
Puttanhalli they saw Suresh Master and Rangam (A-24). They also questioned as
to where Ranganath (A-26) and Mrudulla (PW-65) were going.
Again
reply was that to consult a doctor. At Puttanhalli they loaded all their
household goods in a van. R. Jayasankar (PW-229), a friend of Ranganath (A-26),
helped them in this process. From Puttanhalli they went to Mrudulla's (PW-65)
brother's house in Vijayanagar. On the way both Ranganath (A-26) and R.
Jayasankar (PW-229) got out of the van saying that they had to make a phone
call.
At
about 4.30 P.M. Mrudulla (PW-65) said that after unloading the articles she
left the house to give sarees for dry wash but while going to the shop four or
five people in civil dress approached her and told her that she should
accompany them to Jayanagar police station. She said she would talk only to
Asstt. Commissioner, Dy. Commissioner or Commissioner of Police. She told them
that the persons whom they were searching for were in Konunkunte house. She
asked if full security would be provided to her she would show the persons whom
they searching for. That time there were Deputy Commissioner of Police,
Assistant Commissioner of Police and a lady constable with her. She pointed to
Konankunte house from a distance. Then they all returned to Jayanagar police
station. Security was provided to Mrudulla (PW-65) and she was taken to her
parents house. Officers of CBI examined her. She said they were talking in
Tamil among themselves and to her. She knew little Tamil. Her statement was
recorded by the Magistrate under Section 164 Cr.P.C. (Exh.P-220). She
identified all the persons who stayed in her house and at Konankunte either in
photographs or their being present in the Court.
K.
Premkumar (PW-227) is a friend of Ranganath (A-26). He said he met Ranganath
(A-26) near Nanda Theatre in Jayanagar on 18.8.1991. From there he took him to
Vijayanagar. That was his wife's house. From there they went to another place
called 'West of Guard'. No one was in the house. He and Ranganath (A-26) went
to that house in search of Mrudulla (PW-65). She was not there. They took a
lodge at about 10 or 11 O'clock in the night. They stayed in the lodge on the
night of 18/19.8.1991. K. Premkumar (PW-227) said on the morning of 19.8.1991
at 7 O'clock Ranganath (A-26) took him to Konankunte. They went in an auto.
Ranganath (A-26) made him stand in a place and then himself went in the auto.
Somebody in the public came saying "this is a man, this is a man". K.
Premkumar (PW-227) said they were caught at Konankunte. He was put in jail and
interrogated by CBI.
Suba
Sundaram (A-22) is the proprietor of Subha News Photo Services at a place in
Royapettah. He is a free lance photographer. He was associated with D.K. and a
strong supporter of LTTE. Arivu (A-18), Bhagyanathan (A-20), K. Ravi Shankar
(PW151) and Haribabu (DA) took training in photography from him. At his studio
various persons belonging to LTTE cadre used to meet. Some of them were Baby
Subramaniam, Irumborai (A-19), Muthuraja, Arivu (A-18), Bhagyanathan (A-20),
Haribabu (DA) and others. During the period 1989-90 Haribabu was working for
Subha Studio at a monthly salary of Rs.350/-. For short while he joined Vignesh
Video studio but he kept on visiting to Subha Studio. On 21.5.1991 Haribabu
went to Studio of K. Ravi Shankar (PW-151) with a packet containing sandalwood
garland which he had purchased from Poompuhar Handicrafts in the morning of
that day. Haribabu borrowed a camera (Chinon) (MO-1) from K. Ravi Shankar
(PW-151) tellimg him that he was going to attend the public meeting of Rajiv
Gandhi at Sriperumbudur. Thereafter Haribabu went to Subha Studio and met Suba
Sundaram (A-22). On 22.5.1991 after the bomb blast at Sriperumbudur in which
Haribabu died S. Santhana Krishnan (PW-108), a friend of Haribabu, V.T.
Sundaramani (PW-120), his father and K. Ravi Shankar (PW-151), another friend,
went to the studio of Suba Sundaram (A-22). It is stated that Suba Sundaram
(A-22) exclaimed that only the previous day he had seen Haribabu. Two letters,
one (Exh.P-548) dated 18.1.1991 written by Suba Sundaram (A-22) to LTTE leader
Kittu and other (Exh.P-544) addressed by Suba Sundaram (A-22) to Prabhakaran as
younger brother, were seized from his studio contents of which showed deep
involvement of Suba Sundaram (A-22) with LTTE activities.
In one
of the letters he had criticized the activities of IPKF.
T.
Ramamurthy (PW-72), a journalist, had also attended the public meeting at
Sriperumbudur on 21.5.1991.
At mid
night he was returning home and as there was chaos and confusion he stayed that
night at police station, Poonamallee. At mid night Suba Sundaram (A-22)
contacted Meena (PW-74), wife of T. Ramamurthy (PW-72) and asked her whether
her husband returned home. She replied in the negative.
In her
statement Meena (PW-74) said that at the mid night on 21.5.1991 one Anand
Viswanathan rang her up to say that Rajiv Gandhi and some others had died due
to bomb blast at Sriperumbudur. K. Ravi Shankar (PW-151) then rang her up and
asked her whether T. Ramamurthy (PW-72) had come.
After
a few minutes Suba Sundaram (A-22) rang her up and inquired about T. Ramamurthy
(PW-72). Suba Sundaram (A-22) also told Meena (PW-74) that photographer Babu,
who was sent by him had also not yet come. At about 1.00 O'clock in the night
T. Ramamurthy (PW-72) rang up his wife Meena (PW-74) and said that he was in
Poonamallee police station and gave her phone number of the police station. She
told her husband about the phone calls received from various persons.
She
told him that Suba Sundaram (A-22) was asking about his photographer on which
T. Ramamurthy (PW-72) said that one photographer sent by Suba Sundaram (A-22)
had died. After ten or fifteen minutes later Suba Sundaram (A-22) again rang
her up and asked her whether T. Ramamurthy (PW-72) had come. She told him that
he was in Poonamallee police station and gave him the telephone number.
T.
Ramamurthy (PW-72) described the scene at Sriperumbudur public meeting when
bomb blast took place. He said while he was at Poonamallee police station Suba
Sundaram (A-22) rang him up. He asked him "what Ramamoorthy, Have you
taken the photographs?" T. Ramamurthy (PW-72) replied that he did take
some photographs and had given those to magazine the 'Dhinamalar' and that he
would give photographs to him in the morning. T. Ramamurthy (PW72) said he
stayed in the police station as there were riots on the way. T. Ramamurthy
(PW-72) also told Suba Sundaram (A-22) "what, Sundaram, your photographer
died in the bomb-blast". Then Suba Sundaram (A-22) asked T.
Ramamurthy
(PW-72) who it was. T. Ramamurthy (PW-72) said that since he did not know the
name of the photographer who died at the place of the occurrence he gave Suba
Sundaram (A-22) the identification marks of the deceased photographer. He then
asked whether it was Haribabu and wanted to be certain if he had died. T.
Ramamurthy (PW-72) told him that the photographer was lying on his back and the
camera was lying on his chest and on that account he said he must have died.
Suba Sundaram (A-22) persisted and told T.
Ramamurthy
(PW-72) over the phone that he should have brought the camera. T. Ramamurthy
(PW72) said he replied him that a great VVIP had been assassinated and things
which were there might be important material objects and it was wrong to touch
them. Suba Sundaram (A-22) then told him to contact him the next day on his
reaching Madras. In the morning Suba Sundaram (A-22) again rang up T.
Ramamurthy (PW-72) and asked him to give him some photographs and said he would
send his son for the purpose. T. Ramamurthy (PW-72) first went to 'Dhinamalar',
from there to the studio of Suba Sundaram (A-22), who again asked the details
of the occurrence. Again he told T. Ramamurthy (PW-72) that he should have
brought the camera and "we could have used the photographs in it".
When T. Ramamurthy (PW72) again said that it was wrong to remove the evidence
from that place Suba Sundaram (A-22) said that they could have managed by
stating anything and that it was not wrong to have done like that between
photographers.
On
22.5.1991 when V.T. Sundaramani (PW-120), father of Haribabu (DA) and K. Ravi
Shankar (PW-151) went to Subha Studio after making inquiries about the place
where Haribabu's dead body was kept, Suba Sundaram (A-22) told V.T. Sundaramani
(PW-120) to remove all the papers connected with Haribabu from the house. V.T.
Sundaramani (PW-120) on reaching home removed all the papers of Haribabu from
his house and kept them in his daughter's house which was close-by. P.
Ramalingam (PW-198) is the son-in-law of V.T. Sundaramani (PW-120) and
brother-in-law of Haribabu.
Arulmani
(PW-128) knew the family of V.T.Sundaramani (PW120) as his house was situated
opposite to his house. When death of Rajiv Gandhi took place Arulmani (PW-128)
was in Madurai and was on a bus to Madras. Due to disturbance he could reach
Madras at 4.30 a.m. on 23.5.1991. When he reached home he was told that
Haribabu was dead at the Rajiv Gandhi's function. He went to their house with
his father. Mother of Haribabu was crying and Arulmani (PW-128) thought of
extending some help. He asked Haribabu's mother to show him papers connected
with LIC agency as in April Haribabu had told him that he had joined an agent
in LIC. Haribabu's mother told him that all the papers were kept in a box and
placed at the house of P.
Ramalingam
(PW-198), husband of Haribabu's elder sister.
Arulmani
(PW-128) went to the house of P. Ramalingam (PW-198) and wanted to see the box.
It was concealed in the loft under the roof. In the box there were many
letters, Prabhakaran's photo, negatives, love letters written by a girl S.
Sundari (PW-171). P. Ramalingam (PW-198) told Arulmani (PW-128) that he was
asked to burn those things.
Since
Arulmani (PW-128) suspected that there was something wrong as V.T. Sundaramani
(PW-120) had instructed P. Ramalingam (PW-198) to burn the papers. He thought
of giving those to the police as national leader had died.
There
was also news in the papers that LTTE had a hand in the assassination of Rajiv
Gandhi. Arulmani (PW-128) asked the mother of Haribabu if Haribabu was
connected with LTTE and she stated that it was because of those 'sinners' that
his son was like that. Ultimately police took into possession all those papers.
Suba
Sundaram (A-22) again tried to retrieve the camera through K. Ramamurthi
(PW-258). On 22.5.1991 at about 9 or 10 p.m. he contacted K. Ramamurthi
(PW-258), who was in Delhi on phone and told him that "my boy one Haribabu
had been to Sriperumbudur for taking photographs and he had not returned. It
was not known as to what happened to my camera" and he asked K. Ramamurthi
(PW-258) whether he could inquire about that. Yet again on 23.5.1991 at 10 or
11.00 a.m. Suba Sundaram (A-22) asked K. Ramamurthi (PW-258), who was still in
Delhi about the camera. At that time Suba Sundaram (A-22) told K.
Ramamurthi
(PW-258) that Haribabu was dead and that his camera had been seized by the
police and asked him whether the said camera could be got back by talking to
someone. On 25.5.1991 Hindu newspaper (Exh.P-550) published a news item
connecting Haribabu with LTTE. Suba Sundaram (A-22) immediately asked V.T.
Sundaramani (PW-120), father of Haribabu to come to his studio and asked him to
stoutly deny the news item connecting Haribabu with LTTE by issuing a denial
statement to the press. Suba Sundaram (A-22) himself dictated the denial
statement which was taken down by M.
Girija
Vallaban (PW-116). The original denial statement prepared by Suba Sundaram
(A-22) was seized (Exh.P-543). A copy of Exh.P-543 - denial statement - was
seized by the police from Subha studio of Suba Sundaram (A-22). Suba Sundaram
(A-22) thereafter asked V.T. Sundaramani (PW-120) to take 12 or 13 copies of
the denial statement and to give that to all the newspapers. On 26.5.1991 the
denial statement was published in Hindu (Exh.P-551). When V.T.
Sundaramani
(PW-120) told Suba Sundaram (A-22) about cassette 'Pasarai Padalgal', which
contained LTTE propaganda Suba Sundaram (A-22) told him to destroy that
immediately.
A.
Parimalam (PW-205) said Haribabu was brother-in-law of her brother-in-law P.
Ramalingam (PW-198). She said on 25th morning they came to the house of
Haribabu to inquire about his death. There was no male member. A boy came there
with a chit containing number 867229 and said that Haribabu's father had asked
his younger brother Kalyankumar to contact him at that number. Since
Kalyankumar was not at home mother of Haribabu asked A. Parimalam (PW-205) to
telephone to that number. When the phone was picked up on the other side A.
Parimalam (PW-205) asked if Haribabu's father was there. The person on the
other side asked who was speaking. A. Parimalam (PW-205) said she was
Haribabu's elder sister. On the other side the person said that he was Suba
Sundaram (A-22) speaking and said that there would be an audio cassette in the
house and if there are any papers connected with Haribabu those may be taken
away and destroyed. Saying that he put down the receiver abruptly.
In
letter (Exh.P-128) dated 7.9.1991 written by Trichy Santhan (DA) to Irumborai
(A-19) there is mention of Suba Sundaram (A-22) relevant portion of which has
already been quoted above.
V.T.
Sundaramani (PW-120), father of Haribabu said that Santhan (A-2) stayed in his
house for some time.
Haribabu
had told that he was his friend. He said on 20.5.1991 Murugan (A-3) came to his
house. Haribabu was not present at that time. Murugan (A-3) had earlier been
coming to his house. V.T. Sundaramani (PW-120) in his deposition said Murugan
(A-3) told them to inform Haribabu to call on him at Royapettah. He asked V.T.
Sundaramani (PW-120) to send Haribabu as soon as he came. V.T. Sundaramani
(PW-120) said that Haribabu came and was given the message.
He
went out that evening. V.T. Sundaramani (PW-120) said Haribabu told his mother
at about 2.30 p.m. on 21.5.1991 that he was going out to take photographs and
would return by night itself. He did not return that night. In the morning
newspapers V.T. Sundaramani (PW-120) read about the assassination of Rajiv
Gandhi. In the afternoon he came to know through a newspaper that Haribabu,
photographer, was dead. He immediately left his house. V.T. Sundaramani
(PW-120) said after some time S. Santhana Krishnan (PW-108), a friend of Haribabu
and also one Veeraraman came to his house. They told that Haribabu was dead
and, therefore, they had to find him out as whereabouts of Haribabu were not
known by that time. V.T. Sundaramani (PW-120) said that then Suba Sundaram
(A-22) came to his mind and he sent S. Santhana Krishnan (PW-108) and other man
to Subha Studio to find out the actual position. Kanan, a photographer, told
V.T. Sundaramani (PW-120) that he had seen Haribabu with Sandalwood garland at
Sundaram's (A-22) office at 3.00 O'clock at Royapettah. V.T. Sundaramani
(PW-120) also came to know that Haribabu had taken a camera from K. Ravi
Shankar (PW-151). V.T. Sundaramani (PW-120) went to the studio of Suba Sundaram
(A-22) and asked how it had happened and also asked him whether he had sent
Haribabu. Suba Sundaram (A-22) replied in the negative.
This
part of the statement of V.T. Sundaramani (PW-120) may be quoted :- "When
I reached there I asked him how it had happened and I also asked him whether he
sent him, he said no. Yesterday he came to his photo studio at 3 O'clock. He
also invited us for taking photos.
Haribabu
had asked Subha Sundaram whether anybody else was coming from his studio for
taking photos.
For
that he has replied that nobody is coming and that he has sent him for taking
photos. Subha Sundaram told me that he did not know who has taken
Haribabu." V.T. Sundaramani (PW-120) told Suba Sundaram (A-22) that
Haribabu was dead and asked him in which hospital he was kept and requested him
to do the needful. V.T. Sundaramani (PW-120) said that he met Suba Sundaram
(A-22) on 22.5.1991 in his office. He talked to him separately in his office
and when asked him with whom Haribabu had gone;
who
had taken him; and whether there might be any link with LTTE; and whether he
had gone alone since Suba Sundaram (A-22) told him that he had seen Haribabu.
Suba Sundaram (A-22) told V.T. Sundaramani (PW-120) not to worry himself and
said that Haribabu might have gone alone. Suba Sundaram (A-22) asked V.T.
Sundaramani (PW-120) to discard all the papers in the house relating to
Haribabu on reaching home.
V.T.
Sundaramani (PW-120) asked his wife to remove all the papers connected with
Haribabu to their daughter's house.
V.T.
Sundaramani (PW-120) said on 23.5.1991 early in the morning at 5.00 a.m. Arulmani
(PW-128) with his father came to his house. He corroborated as to what Arulmani
(PW-128) said about the box kept in the house of P. Ramalingam (PW-198). V.T.
Sundaramani (PW-120) also said on 23.5.1991 at 3.00 p.m. one person calling
himself Bhagyanathan (A-20) came to his house and introduced himself as a
friend of Haribabu and told wife of V.T. Sundaramani (PW-120) that nothing had
happened to Haribabu and that he would have sustained injuries and gave
Rs.1000/- to her towards medical expenses of Haribabu. Since wife of V.T.
Sundaramani (PW-120) refused to receive the amount he gave that to
Vijayarevathi, their daughter. When there was news item in Hindu connecting
Haribabu with LTTE and V.T. Sundaramani (PW120) was called to the studio of
Suba Sundaram (A-22).
V.T.
Sundaramani (PW-120) said Suba Sundaram (A-22) told him that he was thinking of
arranging monetary help/assistance from K. Ramamurthi (PW-258) and at that
juncture he must issue a counterstatement. He said that counter-statement must
be issued in the newspapers since he was making arrangements to help V.T.
Sundaramani (PW-120) monetarily for his son's loss. Since V.T. Sundaramani
(PW-120) said he did not know how to give counter statement and to whom to give
Suba Sundaram (A-22) helped him in writing the same and asked V.T. Sundaramani
(PW-120) to put his signature. That counter statement is Exh.P-543.
We
have set out in sufficient details the confessions and the evidence linking the
accused with each other as projected by the prosecution.
Mr.
Natarajan at the outset submitted that the charges of conspiracy and other
charges framed against the accused were highly defective and did not show in
what manner the accused had to answer these charges. He said that it was not
enough if a statutory provision is merely incorporatively charged. He said
prosecution may rely on Sections 464 and 465 of the Code to overcome his
objections to the charge but these two sections did not completely bar the
argument that charge is defective and had prejudiced accused in their defence.
He said charge No. 1 was so complicated and conspiracy spread over a number of
years and the accused who allegedly joined the conspiracy after the object of
conspiracy had been achieved, were all tried together, which in itself caused
great prejudice to them in their defence. Mr. Altaf Ahmad, however, quickly
interposed to say that Section 215 of the Code would protect any error in the
charge and that the finding arrived at by the Designated Court could not be
reversed in view of Section 465 of the Code even if argument of Mr. Natarajan
is accepted. We, however, do not think that we should dilate on this objection
by Mr. Natarajan as powers of Reference Court are quite wide and we have to
examine the evidence regarding conspiracy and to see if there is any
irregularity in the charge, which has prejudiced the accused. Mr. Natarajan
also said that there has not been proper examination of the accused under
Section 313 of the Code inasmuch as long and complex questions have been put to
them and not much thought has been given by the Designated Court in properly
examining the accused under Section 313 of the Code. Mr. Natarajan appears to
be right to an extent.
We
have, however, again to consider this from the angle of prejudice to the accused.
But then if there is any error on this account that can also be corrected by
the Reference Court by again examining the accused. Apart from alleging
prejudice to the accused, no instance has been pointed out to show if any
prejudice has, in fact, been caused to the accused in either understanding the
charge or in their defence. We find that the accused had been well represented
and they extensively cross-examined the witnesses. At no stage during the trial
they complained of any prejudice. We are, therefore, unable to agree to the
submission of Mr. Natrajan that any prejudice has been caused to the accused in
their defence during the conduct of the trial before the Designated Court.
Mr.
Natarajan said that there was no evidence against any of the accused to bring
home charge either under Section 3 or Section 4 of TADA, yet the prosecution
wrongly alleged that there was conspiracy to commit acts of terrorism and
disruptive activities under TADA and in that process Rajiv Gandhi was killed.
He said apart from the killing of Rajiv Gandhi no other terrorist act had been
shown to have been committed or disruptive activity shown to have been
committed. There is no such act till May, 1991 though the prosecution has
alleged the period of conspiracy being 1987 to 1992. Killing of Rajiv Gandhi
could not be a terrorist act under Section 3 of TADA. Also there is no
disruptive activity falling under Section 4 of TADA. Only Nalini (A-1) and
Arivu (A-18) have been charged for offence under Section 4 of TADA. Charge No.
121 is against Nalini (A-1) and it says that in pursuance of the criminal
conspiracy referred to in charge No. 1 and in furtherance of the common
intention of Nalini (A-1) and deceased accused Sivarasan, Dhanu, Subha and
Haribabu to commit disruptive activity at a public meeting at Sriperumbudur,
where Nalini (A-1) was physically present at the scene of crime and provided
assassin Dhanu (since deceased) with necessary cover from being detected as a
foreigner, which enabled the assassin to move freely in the scene of crime and
gained access nearer to Rajiv Gandhi where she (Dhanu) detonated the improvised
explosive device concealed in her waist belt resulting in the bomb blast and
killing of nine police officials who were public servants and who were at that
time with Rajiv Gandhi on duty and Nalini (A-1) thereby committed an offence
under Section 4(3) of TADA punishable under Section 4 (1) of TADA read with
Section 34, IPC.
Charge
No. 228 is against Arivu (A-18) and it is alleged against him that in pursuance
to the criminal conspiracy and in course of the same transaction he abetted the
commission of disruptive activity by purchasing two golden power battery cells
during the first week of May, 1991, which were used by Dhanu (since deceased)
to detonate improvised explosive device at Sriperumbudur on 21.5.1991 resulting
in bomb blast and killing of nine police officials, who were public servants
and were on duty at that time with Rajiv Gandhi and Arivu (A-18) committed an
offence under Section 4(3) of TADA punishable under Section 4(1) of TADA and
Section 109, IPC.
Mr.
Natarajan said these two charges 121 and 228 showed as to how the court
considered the disruptive activity and there is no mention in these charges if
it was the killing of Rajiv Gandhi which could be termed as disruptive
activity. Charges referred to the killing of police officers on duty. He said
there is no discussion whatsoever in the judgment of the Designated Court as to
how it considered that the case fell under Section 4(3) of TADA.
There
is no evidence to show propagation of anything as mentioned in Section 4(3) of
TADA. Under Section 4(3) of TADA an accused can be said to have committed
disruptive activity if he in any way (a) advocates, etc. or (b) predicts, etc.
the killing or destruction of any person bound by oath under the Constitution
to uphold the sovereignty and integrity of India or any public servant.
The
charges do not name Rajiv Gandhi as at the time he was killed he was not bound
by any oath under the Constitution.
He was
not the Prime Minister. He was not an M.P. as Parliament stood dissolved and
general elections in the country were in process. There is no evidence on
record to show that Rajiv Gandhi was bound by any oath under the Constitution
in any capacity whatsoever. As regards nine police officers who were killed
they were not killed on account of any of the grounds mentioned in clauses (a)
or (b) of sub-section (3) of Section 4 of TADA. Subsection (2) of Section 4 of
TADA defines disruptive activity and, in so far as it is relevant to
sub-section (1), means any action taken whether by act or by speech or through
any other media or in any other manner whatsoever which questions, disrupts or
intended to disrupt directly or indirectly the sovereignty and territorial
integrity of India. Mr. Altaf Ahmad said that the accused did question the
sovereignty and integrity of India inasmuch as they expressed their resentment
to the Indo-Sri Lankan Accord which had been approved by the Parliament. But
then questioning or disapproving the Indo-Sri Lankan Accord would not mean that
that would be questioning the sovereignty and integrity of India. When a member
of the Opposition whether in Parliament or outside criticizes the Accord in
public it could not be said that he is questioning the sovereignty and
integrity of India. According to Mr. Altaf Ahmad the accused had chosen the
target being Rajiv Gandhi and struck the target thus questioning the very
ability of the country to take sovereign decisions. Mr. Natarajan said that
death of Rajiv Gandhi as target did not find mention in any charge under
Section 4 of TADA and no such question was put to any accused under Section 313
of the Code. Death of nine police officers though public servants was not on
account of any of the grounds mentioned in sub-sections (2) or (3) of Section 4
of TADA but since target was Rajiv Gandhi and the intensity of the blast was so
vast that the police officers died and so also the assassin Dhanu and
photographer Haribabu. Mr. Natarajan, in our view, is right in his submission
that no case under Section 4 of TADA has been made out in the case.
Under
Section 3 of TADA in order there is a terrorist act three essential conditions
must be present and these are contained in sub-section (1) of Section 3 - (1)
criminal activity must me committed with the requisite intention or motive, (2)
weapons must have been used, and (3) consequence must have ensued. It was
contended by Mr. Natarajan that in the present case though the evidence may
show that weapons and consequence as contemplated by Section 3(1) is there it
is lacking so far as the intention is concerned. Prosecution had to prove that
the act was done with the intention to over-awe the Government or to strike
terror in people or any section of people or to adversely affect the harmony
amongst different sections of people.
There
is no evidence that any of the accused had such an intention.
As to
what is a terrorist act and what is the intention contemplated under Section 3
of TADA reference may be made to a decision of this Court in Hitendra Vishnu
Thakur and others vs. State of Maharashtra and others (1994 (4) SCC 602). In
this judgment Section 3(1) of TADA has been analyzed. It would be useful to
quote from the judgment in extenso:- "'Terrorism' is one of the manifestations
of increased lawlessness and cult of violence.
Violence
and crime constitute a threat to an established order and are a revolt against
a civilized society. 'Terrorism' has not been defined under TADA nor is it
possible to give a precise definition of 'terrorism' or lay down what
constitutes 'terrorism'. It may be possible to describe it as use of violence
when its most important result is not merely the physical and mental damage of
the victim but the prolonged psychological effect it produces or has the potential
of producing on the society as a whole.
There
may be death, injury, or destruction of property or even deprivation of
individual liberty in the process but the extent and reach of the intended
terrorist activity travels beyond the effect of an ordinary crime capable of
being punished under the ordinary penal law of the land and its main objective
is to overawe the Government or disturb harmony of the society or
"terrorise" people and the society and not only those directly
assaulted, with a view to disturb even tempo, peace and tranquillity of the
society and create a sense of fear and insecurity. A 'terrorist' activity does
not merely arise by causing disturbance of law and order or of public order.
The fall out of the intended activity must be such that it travels beyond the
capacity of the ordinary law enforcement agencies to tackle it under the
ordinary penal law.
Experience
has shown us that 'terrorism' is generally an attempt to acquire or maintain
power or control by intimidation and causing fear and helplessness in the minds
of the people at large or any section thereof and is a totally abnormal
phenomenon. What distinguishes 'terrorism' from other forms of violence,
therefore, appears to be the deliberate and systematic use of coercive intimidation.
More often than not, a hardened criminal today takes advantage of the situation
and by wearing the cloak of 'terrorism', aims to achieve for himself
acceptability and respectability in the society because unfortunately in the
States affected by militancy, a 'terrorist' is projected as a hero by his group
and often even by the misguided youth.
It is,
therefore, essential to treat such a criminal and deal with him differently
than an ordinary criminal capable of being tried by the ordinary courts under
the penal law of the land. Even though the crime committed by a 'terrorist' and
an ordinary criminal would be overlapping to an extent but then it is not the
intention of the Legislature that every criminal should be tried under TADA,
where the fall out of his activity does not extent beyond the normal frontiers
of the ordinary criminal activity.
Every
'terrorist' may be a criminal but every criminal cannot be given the label of a
'terrorist' only to set in motion the more stringent provisions of TADA. The
criminal activity in order to invoke TADA must be committed with the requisite
intention as contemplated by Section 3(1) of the Act by use of such weapons as
have been enumerated in Section 3(1) and which cause or are likely to result in
the offences as mentioned in the said section." "Thus, unless the Act
complained of falls strictly within the letter and spirit of Section 3(1) of
TADA and is committed with the intention as envisaged by that section by means
of the weapons etc. as are enumerated therein with the motive as postulated
thereby, an accused cannot be tried or convicted for an offence under Section
3(1) of TADA. When the extent and reach of the crime committed with the
intention as envisaged by Section 3(1), transcends the local barriers and the
effect of the criminal act can be felt in other States or areas or has the
potential of that result being felt there, the provisions of Section 3(1) would
certainly be attracted. Likewise, if it is only as a consequence of the
criminal act that fear, terror or/and panic is caused but the intention of
committing the particular crime cannot be said to be the one strictly envisaged
by Section 3(1), it would be impermissible to try or convict and punish an
accused under TADA. The commission of the crime with the intention to achieve
the result as envisaged by the section and not merely where the consequence of
the crime committed by the accused create that result, would attract the
provisions of Section 3(1) of TADA. Thus, if for example a person goes on a shooting
spree and kills a number of persons, it is bound to create terror and panic in
the locality but if it was not committed with the requisite intention as
contemplated by the section, the offence would not attract Section 3(1) of
TADA.
On the
other hand, if a crime was committed with the intention to cause terror or
panic or to alienate a section of the people or to disturb the harmony etc.
it
would be punishable under TADA, even if no one is killed and there has been
only some person who has been injured or some damage etc. has been caused to
the property, the provisions of Section 3(1) of TADA would be squarely
attracted. Where the crime is committed with a view to overawe the Government
as by law established or is intended to alienate any section of the people or
adversely affect the harmony amongst different sections of the people and is
committed in the manner specified in Section 3(1) of TADA, no difficulty would
arise to hold that such an offence falls within the ambit and scope of the said
provision. Some difficulty, however, arises where the intended activity of the
offender results in striking terror or creating fear and panic amongst the
people in general or a section thereof.
It is
in this situation that the courts have to be cautious to draw a line between
the crime punishable under the ordinary criminal law and the ones which are
punishable under Section 3(1) of TADA. It is of course neither desirable nor
possible to catalogue the activities which would strictly bring the case of an
accused under Section 3(1) of TADA. Each case will have to be decided on its
own facts and no rule of thumb can be applied." Sub-section (1) of Section
3 can be analyzed as under :- (1) Whoever with intent (i) to overawe the
Government as by law established; or (ii) to strike terror in the people or any
section of people; or (iii) to alienate any section of the people; or (iv) to
adversely affect the harmony amongst different sections of the people does any
act or thing by using (a) bombs, dynamite, or (b) other explosive substances,
or (c) inflammable substances, or (d) fire-arms, or (e) other lethal weapons,
or (f) poisons or noxious gases or other chemicals, or (g) by any other
substances (whether biological or otherwise) of a hazardous nature in such a
manner as to cause (i) death of, or (ii) injuries to any person or persons, or
(iii) loss of, or damage to or destruction of property, or (iv) disruption of
any supplies, or (v) services essential to the life of the community, or
detains any person and threatens to kill or injure such person in order to
compel the Government or any other person to do or abstain from doing any act
commits a terrorist act.
In the
present case applying the principles set out above on the interpretation of
Section 3(1) and analyses of this subsection of the TADA we do not find any
difficulty in concluding that evidence does not reflect that any of the accused
entertained any such intention or had any of the motive to overawe the
Government or to strike terror among people. No doubt evidence is there that
the absconding accused Prabhakaran, supreme leader of LTTE had personal
animosity against Rajiv Gandhi and LTTE cadre developed hatred towards Rajiv
Gandhi, who was identified with the atrocities allegedly committed by IPKF in
Sri Lanka. There was no conspiracy to the indiscriminate killing of persons.
There
is no evidence directly or circumstantially that Rajiv Gandhi was killed with
the intention contemplated under Section 3(1) of TADA. State of Tamil Nadu was
notified under TADA on 23.6.1991 and LTTE were declared an unlawful association
on 14.5.1992 under the provisions of the Unlawful Activity (Prevention) Act,
1957. Apart from killing of Rajiv Gandhi no other terrorist act has been
alleged in the State of Tamil Nadu. Charge may be there but there is no
evidence to support the charge. Mr. Natarajan said that prosecution might refer
to the killing of Padmanabhan in Tamil Nadu, leader of EPRLF, which fact finds
mention in the confession statement of Santhan (A-2). But then he said it was not
a terrorist act. It was killing of a rival Sri Lankan and in any case killing
of Padmanabhan is not a charge in the case before this Court. Mr. Altaf Ahmad
said that when he earlier mentioned the killing of Padmanabhan, it was only to
show that LTTE was an organization which brook no opposition and anyone
opposing its objective was eliminated. Mr. Natarajan said it was the case of
the prosecution itself that Prabhakaran had personal animosity against Rajiv
Gandhi developed over a period of time and had motive to kill him.
Mr.
Altaf Ahmad realised the difficulty he had to face to show that any offence
under Sections 3 and/or 4 of TADA had been committed. He submitted that charges
in the present case showed the dimension of the conspiracy and the nature of the
crime committed on 21.5.1991. He said the object of the conspiracy was to
commit terrorist act and use of bomb, etc. was the means to achieve that object
and that the consequence was to overawe the Government and to create terror in
the minds of the public and it was with that object that Rajiv Gandhi and
others were killed. He said object of the conspiracy was not accomplished on
the killing of Rajiv Gandhi but it continued even after his death as LTTE
targetted places and persons spread across the country.
There
is no evidence that blasting of the buildings like Vellore Fort, police
headquarters, was the object of conspiracy or that was to be done with
intention to overawe the Government or to create terror among the public.
Charge does not specify any such intention or the places. Similar is the
position regarding unspecified targets in Delhi.
According
to him conspiracy was not abandoned and did not culminate with the
assassination of Rajiv Gandhi though the assassination of Rajiv Gandhi
over-shadowed other activities. He said to continue with the object of
conspiracy the accused had to retain their identity in order to commit further
acts and thus for the purpose of self-preservation they had to live and for
that they committed acts of escapades, screening, destruction of evidence, etc.
Charge framed against the accused described their various roles and the offence
committed by them. He said ingredients of Sections 3, 4 and 5 of TADA are part
of the charge and there is evidence to prove these charges. He said it may be
that particulars of all the sections had not mentioned in the charge but that
was a curable irregularity and no prejudice has been shown to have been caused
to the accused. It would appear that the argument of Mr. Altaf Ahmad is based
on the submission that under Section 3 of TADA conspiracy was also to overawe
the Government.
Reference
was made to the definition of 'overawe' in Black's Law Dictionary to mean
"to subjudicate or restrain by and or profound reference". Realising
the difficulty that there was no charge of conspiracy to overawe the Government
Mr.
Altaf
Ahmad said that since it was a case of reference this Court could return the
finding as there was evidence to overawe the Government and it could not be
said that the accused would be prejudiced by adopting such a course. He said it
was enough if section describing the offence is mentioned in the charges and
all the ingredients of the offence need not be in the charge. According to him
charge thus gives notice of accusation to the accused and the requirement of
law is fulfilled. But then in the present case when some particulars of a
charge have been given the accused can certainly assume that they are not being
charged with other ingredients of the offence given in a particular section. If
we now take into consideration those ingredients as well prejudice would
certainly be caused to the accused.
Mr.
Altaf Ahmad said that Rajiv Gandhi was targetted as he was the Prime Minister
when the Indo-Sri Lankan Accord was entered into and his name was synonymous
with the Accord. LTTE took it that it was entered into contrary to their
aspirations. In an interview before the general elections Rajiv Gandhi did
support his stand on the Accord which had been ratified by the Parliament. He
said that action of the accused in killing Rajiv Gandhi struck at the sovereign
powers of the country and it was to intimidate the Government. That the country
was in the midst of election and on account of the assassination of Rajiv
Gandhi elections were postponed and formation of the Government was delayed. A
notification dated 22.5.1991 was issued by the Election Commission of India
postponing the elections. It was mentioned in the Notification that the country
had suffered a great tragedy in the death of Sri Rajiv Gandhi at the assassins
hands. Country was thus in trauma. Intention of the accused in killing Rajiv
Gandhi was that India as sovereign country could not take sovereign decisions.
Prime Minister is the pivot of the Parliamentary system and if he is killed
because he was party to an Accord entered into in exercise of sovereign powers
of the country and even though he may not be the Prime Minister at the relevant
time his killing would send shock waves all over the country and to the
Government in power and the Government to be. He said conspiracy to kill Rajiv
Gandhi was thus with intent to overawe the Government as by law established.
Since there was no such charge, no finding, and no question put to the accused
under Section 313 of the Code, it was pointed out to Mr. Altaf Ahmad that
unless he referred to any relevant provision of law or any decision of this
Court on the powers of this Court in Reference, his argument could not be taken
note of. Mr. Altaf Ahmad said that powers of the Court while considering the
Reference are wider than that of the appellate court. Under sub-section (1) of
Section 366 of the Code it is for the Supreme Court to confirm the death
sentence and under sub-section (1) of Section 367 of the Code, the Supreme
Court, if it thinks that a further inquiry should be made into or additional
evidence taken upon any point bearing on the killing or innocence of the
accused it may make such inquiry or such trial itself or direct it to be made
or taken by the Designated Court. With these powers being there Mr. Altaf Ahmad
said that though the approach of the Designated Court may have been different
in construing the charge and it may not accord with the submissions made now
before us and if we construe the charge of our own it is that the accused had
committed a terrorist act on the soil of India and in the course of that killed
Rajiv Gandhi in order to overawe the Government established by law not to
pursue the Indo-Sri Lankan Accord. It was, however, not suggested as to what
inquiry or additional evidence is contemplated by the prosecution. From the
arguments of Mr. Altaf Ahmad it would appear that he is seeking amendment of
the charge and if that is done it would require additional evidence or even
retrial may have to be ordered. We do not think we should adopt any such
course.
The
question before us is to consider the charge in its proper way and to examine
the evidence with reference to that. Quite a number of judgments on the
question of power of Reference Court were cited, principal of these being two
judgments in Jumman and others vs. The State of Punjab (AIR 1957 SC 469) and
Ram Shankar Singh and others vs. State of West Bengal (1962 Suppl. (1) SCR 49).
In
Jumman and others vs. State of Punjab (AIR 1957 SC 469) this court considered
scope of the reference under Section 374 and 375 of the old Code (Section 366
and 367 of the new Code) and powers of the High Court in its disposal.
Statement
of law has been laid in paras 11 and 12 of the judgment which is as under :-
"(11) Before we propose to discuss the evidence on which reliance has been
placed by the counsel in this Court, it is necessary to advert to a
circumstance which calls for some comment. Along with the appeals filed by the
accused, there was before the High Court, a reference under s. 374, Criminal
P.C., by the Sessions Judge, submitting to the High Court the proceedings
before him for confirmation of the sentences of death passed by him. Under s.
375, Criminal P.C., the High Court has power to direct further inquiry to be
made or additional evidence to be taken in such matters and according to s.
376, Criminal P.C., the High Court has to confirm the sentence, or pass any
other sentence warranted by law, or alternatively it may annul the conviction
and convict the accused of any offence of which the Sessions Court might have
convicted him, or order a new trial on the same or an amended charge or the
High Court may acquit the accused person. Section 377, Criminal P.C., provides
that the confirmation of the sentence or order passed by the High Court, shall,
when such Court consists of two or more Judges, be made, passed and signed by
at least two of them.
(12)
It is clear from a perusal of these provisions that in such circumstances the
entire case is before the High Court and in fact it is a continuation of the
trial of the accused on the same evidence and any additional evidence and that
is why the High Court is given power to take fresh evidence if it so desires.
In an appeal under o.41, Civil P.C., an appellate Court has to find whether the
decision arrived at by the Court of first instance is correct or not on facts
and law; but there is a difference when a reference is made under s. 374,
Criminal P.C., and when disposing of an appeal under s.423, Criminal P.C., and
that is that the High Court has to satisfy itself as to whether a case beyond
reasonable doubt has been made out against the accused persons for the
infliction of the penalty of death. In fact the proceedings before the High
Court are a reappraisal and the reassessment of the entire facts and law in
order that the High Court should be satisfied on the materials about the guilt
or innocence of the accused persons. Such being the case, it is the duty of the
High Court to consider the proceedings in all their aspects and come to an
independent conclusion on the materials, apart from the view expressed by the
Sessions Judge. In so doing, the High Court will be assisted by the opinion
expressed by the Sessions Judge, but under the provisions of the law
abovementioned it is for the High Court to come to an independent conclusion of
its own." In Ram Shankar Singh and others vs. State of West Bengal (1962
Suppl. (1) SCR 49) this Court held that powers under Section 374 (1) and
Section 376 of the Old Code were manifestly of wide amplitude and exercised
thereof was not restricted by the provisions of Section 418(1) and Section 423
of the old Code. Irrespective of whether the accused, who is sentenced to death
prefers an appeal, High Court is bound to consider the evidence and arrive at an
independent conclusion as to the guilt or innocence of the accused and this the
High Court must do even if the trial of the accused was held by jury. Indeed,
duty is imposed upon the High Court to satisfy itself that the conviction of
the accused is justified on the evidence, and that the sentence of death in the
circumstances of the case, is the only appropriate sentence.
These
are the basic judgments on the scope of reference and the powers of the High
Court while disposing of the same. Other judgments of this Court on this aspect
reiterate the principles laid in these two judgment. It is, therefore, not
necessary for us to refer to all those judgments.
We
have certainly kept in view principles laid in these judgments.
Prosecution
case now made out before us is that the object of conspiracy was to commit
terrorist acts during the period 1987 to 1992; that the assassination of Rajiv
Gandhi was one of such acts with the intention to overawe the Government and to
strike terror; and the assassination was an act which struck terror and was
also a disruptive activity. As to how it was intended to overawe the Government
it was submitted that it was on account of Indo-Sri Lankan Accord, which the
Government of India was to honour and that did not suit the aspirations of LTTE
and thus the conspiracy was hatched to eliminate the person who was the author
of the Accord and to threaten the successive Governments not to follow the
Accord, otherwise that Government would also meet the same fate. But then, as
noted above that there was a conspiracy to overawe the Government is nowhere in
the charge. Though it could be said that terror was struck by assassination of
Rajiv Gandhi but the question is if striking of terror was intended and for
that again there is no evidence. Apart from the assassination of Rajiv Gandhi
no other act which could be termed as terrorist act has been suggested. The
Designated Court in its impugned judgment does not record any such argument now
advanced before us. There is no discussion in the judgment and there is no
evidence to which judgment refers to hold that there was any terrorist act
intended to overawe the Government or to strike terror. The Designated Court
has clearly held that on the assassination of Rajiv Gandhi object of conspiracy
was successfully accomplished.
Even
if thus examining the proceedings in reference our decision has to be made on
the basis of the evidence on record. When there is no evidence inference cannot
be drawn that act of killing of Rajiv Gandhi was to overawe the Government.
Even though there is no bar to the examination of the accused under Section 313
of the Code by this Court in these proceedings but then what is required to be
put to the accused is to enable him to personally explain any circumstance
appearing in the evidence against him and when there is no evidence, there is
no necessity to examine the accused at this stage as that would be a futile
exercise.
When
the prosecution during the course of the trial, which lasted over a number of
years, had taken the stand that killing of Rajiv Gandhi was a terrorist act, it
cannot now turn about and say that killing itself was not a terrorist act but
was committed to achieve the object of conspiracy which was to overawe the
Government. As a matter of fact in the statement of Kasi Anandhan (PW-242), who
was a member of the Central Committee of LTTE, it has come on record that he
met Rajiv Gandhi in March, 1991 when Rajiv Gandhi supported the stand of LTTE
and had admitted that it was his mistake in sending IPKF to Sri Lanka and
wanted LTTE to go ahead with its agitation. That being the evidence brought on
record by the prosecution there is no question of it now contending that there
was conspiracy to overawe the Government. Its stand throughout has been that it
was the personal motive of Prabhakaran and others to commit terrorist act by
killing Rajiv Gandhi. Under Section 3(1) of TADA overawing the Government
cannot be the consequence but it has to be the primary object. There is nothing
on record to show that the intention to kill Rajiv Gandhi was to overawe the
Government. Reference to the Indo-Sri Lankan Accord is merely by way of
narration.
Support
to the struggle of LTTE in Sri Lanka was from Tamil Nadu and it does not appeal
to reason that LTTE would commit any act to overawe the Government. It is
matter of common knowledge that all terrorist acts are publicized and
highlighted which is fundamental to terrorism. Whenever a terrorist act is
committed some organisation or the other comes forward to claim responsibility
for that. In the present case LTTE tried to conceal the fact that it was behind
the murder of Rajiv Gandhi. The object to assassinate Rajiv Gandhi was kept a
closely guarded secret. In the wireless message dated 7.5.1991 (Exh. P-392)
from Sivarasan to Pottu Amman he conveyed that "our intention is not known
to anybody except we three" meaning thereby himself, Subha and Dhanu.
There is another wireless message dated 22.5.1991 (Exh. P-396) from Pottu Amman
to Sivarasan that "even to our people in higher places we informed that we
have no connection with this" meaning thereby that the assassination of
Rajiv Gandhi a day before was not carried out by LTTE. LTTE was not owning the
assassination of Rajiv Gandhi and it cannot, therefore, be said that it was done
to overawe the Government. LTTE did not want publicity and wanted to keep
friendly relations with India and the people of India.
Pottu
Amman even cautioned Sivarasan in his wireless message dated dated 22.5.1991
(Exh. P-396) not to send long messages as "it will create suspicion"
meaning thereby that LTTE might be suspected to be behind the assassination.
Two letters of Subha and Dhanu to Akila and Pottu Amman dated 9.5.1991 which
were carried by Murugan (A-3) did not spell out their mission. Trichy Santhan
(deceased accused) in his letter dated 7.9.1991 (Exh.P-129) to Prabhakaran,
which was recovered from Irumburai (A-19) complained about the operation of
Sivarasan which led to the name of LTTE being publicized as behind the
assassination of Rajiv Gandhi and further about the illicit relationship that
developed between Murugan (A-3) and Nalini (A1). He wrote that due to Murugan
(A-3) incident the press was writing ridiculously about the movement and the
newspapers were magnifying that Murugan (A-3) and Nalini (A-1) were lovers and
that Nalini (A-1) was pregnant of five months.
We
accept the argument of Mr. Natarajan that terrorism is synonymous with
publicity and it was sheer personal animosity of Prabhakaran and other LTTE
cadre developed against Rajiv Gandhi which resulted in his assassination. LTTE
would not do any act to overawe the Government in Tamil Nadu or in the Centre
as otherwise their activities in this country in support of their struggle in
Sri Lanka would have been seriously hampered.
Charge
of disruptive activities under Section 4(3) of TADA is against Nalini (A-1) and
Arivu (A-18). There is no charge under Section 3(3) of TADA against Rangam
(A-24), Vicky (A-25) and Ranganath (A-26). They are charged under Section 3(4)
of TADA. Charge under Section 3(3) is against A-1 to A-23. If we examine one
such charge, say charge No.
235
against A-21 which says that she in pursuance to the criminal conspiracy
referred to in charge No. 1 and in course of same transaction during the period
between January 91 and June, 1991 at Madras and other place in Tamil Nadu she
had actively associated with and assisted other conspirators for carrying out
the object of criminal conspiracy and thus she knowingly facilitated the
commission of terrorist act or any act preparatory to terrorist act and which
was committing the terrorist act by detonating the improvised explosive device
concealed in waist belt of Dhanu and thereby A-21 committed an offence
punishable under Section 3(3) of TADA.
Designated
Court held that hatred which developed in the minds of Prabhakaran, further
developed into animosity against Rajiv Gandhi in view of the events which took
place after IPKF was inducted in Sri Lanka.
Thus
examining the whole aspect of the matter we are of the opinion that no offence either
under Sections 3 or 4 of TADA has been committed. Since we hold that there is
no terrorist act and no disruptive activity under Sections 3 and 4 of TADA,
charges under Section 3(3), 3(4) and 4(3) of TADA must also fail against all
the accused.
Arguments
were then addressed as to what is nature of conspiracy made out from the
evidence on record and the applicability of Section 10 of the Evidence Act.
Various judgments of this Court were cited on the nature, scope and existence
of criminal conspiracy under Section 120A and 120B, IPC. We may refer to some
of them.
In
Major E.G. Barsay vs. The State of Bombay (1962 (2) SCR 195 at 228) this Court
said :- "The gist of the offence of criminal conspiracy under Section 120A
IPC is an agreement to break the law. The parties to such an agreement will be
guilty of criminal conspiracy, though the illegal act agreed to be done has not
been done. So too, it is not an ingredient of the offence that all the parties
should agree to do a single illegal act. It may comprise the commission of a
number of acts.
Under
Section 43 of the Indian Penal Code, an act would be illegal if it is an
offence or if it is prohibited by law. Under the first charge the accused are
charged with having conspired to do three categories if illegal acts, and the
mere fact that all of them could not be convicted separately in respect of each
of the offences has no relevancy in considering the question whether the
offence of conspiracy has been committed. They are all guilty of the offence of
conspiracy to do illegal acts, though for individual offences all of them may
not be liable." In Sardar Sardul Singh Caveeshar vs. State of Maharashtra
(1964 (2) SCR 378) reference of which was made while considering the impact of
Section 10 of the Evidence Act, the Court said that the essence of conspiracy
was that there should be an agreement between persons to do one or other of the
other of the acts described in Section 120A IPC. The said agreement may be
proved by direct evidence or may be inferred from acts and conduct of the
parties.
In
Noor Mohammad Mohd. Yusuf Momin v. State of Maharashtra [(1970) 1 SCC 696 ] it
was held that Section 120-B IPC makes the criminal conspiracy as a substantive
offence which offence postulates an agreement between two or more persons to do
or cause to be done an act by illegal means. It differs from other offences
where mere agreement is made an offence even if no steps are taken to carry out
that agreement.
In
Yash Pal Mittal v. State of Punjab {(1977) 4 SCC 540] the Court said as under:
"9.
The offence of criminal conspiracy under Section 120A is a distinct offence
introduced for the first time in 1913 in Chapter V-A of the Penal Code. The
very agreement, concert or league is the ingredient of the offence. It is not
necessary that all the conspirators must know each and every detail of the
conspiracy as long as they are co-participators in the main object of the
conspiracy. There may be so many devices and techniques adopted to achieve the
common goal of the conspiracy and there may be division of performances in the
chain of actions with one object to achieve the real end of which every
collaborator must be aware and in which each one of them must be interested.
There must be unity of object or purpose but there may be plurality of means
sometimes even unknown to one another, amongst the conspirators. In achieving
the goal several offences may be committed by some of the conspirators even
unknown to the others. The only relevant factor is that all means adopted and
illegal acts done must be and purported to be in furtherance of the object of
the conspiracy even though there may be sometimes mis-fire or overshooting by
some of the conspirators. Even if some steps are resorted to by one or two of
the conspirators without the knowledge of the others it will not affect the
culpability of those others when they are associated with the object of the
conspiracy." In Shivnarayan Laxminarayan Joshi and others vs. State of
Marashtra (1980 (2) SCC 465) this Court said that it was manifest "that a
conspiracy is always hatched in secrecy and it is impossible to adduce direct
evidence of the same. The offence can be only proved largely from the inference
drawn from acts or illegal omission committed by the conspirators in pursuance
of a common design." Mohammad Usman Mohammad Hussain Maniyar and others
vs. State of Maharashtra (1981 (2) SCC 443) this Court again asserted :-
"It is true that there is no evidence of any express agreement between the
appellants to do or cause to be done the illegal act. For an offence under
Section 120-B, the prosecution need not necessarily prove that the perpetrators
expressly agreed to do or cause to be done the illegal act;
the
agreement may be proved by necessary implication." In State of Himachal
Pradesh vs. Kishan Lal Pardhan and others (1987 (2) SCC 17) the Court said that
everyone of the conspirators need not have taken active part in the commission
of each and every one of the conspiratorial acts for the offence of conspiracy
to be made out. It added that :- "The offence of criminal conspiracy
consists in a meeting of minds of two or more persons for agreeing to do or
causing to be done an illegal act or an act by illegal means, and the
performance of an act in terms thereof. If pursuant to the criminal conspiracy
the conspirators commit several offences, then all of them will be liable for
the offences even if some of them had not actively participated in the
commission of the offences." In Kehar Singh and others vs. State (Delhi
Administration) (1988 (3) SCC 609) the Court said that the most important
ingredient of the offence of conspiracy is agreement between two or more
persons to do an illegal act.
The
illegal act may or may not be done in pursuance of agreement, but the very
agreement is an offence and is punishable. It further added as under :-
"Generally, a conspiracy is hatched in secrecy and it may be difficult to
adduce direct evidence of the same. The prosecution will often rely on evidence
of acts of various parties to infer that they were done in reference to their
common intention. The prosecution will also more often rely upon circumstantial
evidence. The conspiracy can be undoubtedly proved by such evidence direct or
circumstantial. But the court must inquire whether the two persons are independently
pursuing the same end or they have come together in the pursuit of the unlawful
object. The former does not render them conspirators, but the latter does. It
is, however, essential that the offence of conspiracy requires some kind of
physical manifestation of agreement.
The
express agreement, however, need not be proved.
Nor
actual meeting of two persons is necessary. Nor it is necessary to prove the
actual words of communication. The evidence as to transmission of thoughts
sharing the unlawful design may be sufficient. Gerald Orchard of University of
Canterbury, New Zealand explains the limited nature of this proposition :
"Although
it is not in doubt that the offence requires some physical manifestation of
agreement. It is important to note the limited nature of this proposition. The
law does not require that the act of agreement take any particular form and the
fact of agreement may be communicated by words or conduct. Thus, it has been
said that it is unnecessary to prove that the parties "actually came
together and agreed in terms" to pursue the unlawful object : there need
never have been an express verbal agreement, it being sufficient that there was
"a tacit understanding between conspirators as to what should be
done"." In Ajay Aggarwal vs. Union of India and others (1993 (3) SCC
609) this Court considering the ingredients of the offence of conspiracy said
:- "Section 120-A of the IPC defines 'conspiracy' to mean that when two or
more persons agree to do, or cause to be done an illegal act, or an act which
is not illegal by illegal means, such an agreement is designated as
"criminal conspiracy". No agreement except an agreement to commit an
offence shall amount to a criminal conspiracy, unless some act besides the
agreement is done by one or more parties to such agreement in furtherance
thereof. Section 120-B of the IPC prescribes punishment for criminal
conspiracy. It is not necessary that each conspirator must know all the details
of the scheme nor be a participant at every stage. It is necessary that they
should agree for design or object of the conspiracy. Conspiracy is conceived as
having three elements : (1) agreement (2) between two or more persons by whom
the agreement is effected; and (3) a criminal object, which may be either the
ultimate aim of the agreement, or may constitute the means, or one of the means
by which that aim is to be accomplished. It is immaterial whether this is found
in the ultimate objects.
The
Court then considered the common law definition of 'criminal conspiracy' and
for that referred to statement of law by Lord Denman in King v. Jones (1832 B
& AD 345) that an indictment for conspiracy must "charge a conspiracy
to do an unlawful act by unlawful means" and was elaborated by Willies, J.
on behalf of the judges while referring the question to the House of Lords in
Mulcahy v. Reg [(1868) LR 3 HL 306] and the House of Lords in unanimous
decision reiterated in Quinn v. Leathem (1901 AC 495, 528):
"A
conspiracy consists not merely in the intention of two or more, but in the
agreement of two or more, to do an unlawful act, or to do a lawful act by
unlawful means. So long as such a design rests in intention only, it is not
indictable. When two agree to carry it into effect, the very plot is an act in
itself, and the act of each of the parties, promise against promise, actus
contra actum, capable of being enforced, if lawful; and punishable if for a
criminal object, or for the use of criminal means." The Court also
referred to another decision of English House of Lords in Director of Public
Prosecutions v.
Doot
(1973 AC 807) where Lord Pearson held that :- (A) conspiracy involved an
agreement express or implied. A conspiratorial agreement is not a contract, not
legally binding because it is unlawful. But as an agreement it has its three
stages, namely, (1) making or formation; (2) performance or implementation; (3)
discharge or termination. When the conspiratorial agreement has been made, the
offence of conspiracy is complete, it has been committed, and the conspirator
can be prosecuted even though no performance had taken place. But the fact that
of the offence of conspiracy is complete at that stage does not mean that the
conspiratorial agreement is finished with.
It is
not dead. If it is being performed, it is very much alive. So long as the
performance continues, it is operating, it is being carried out by the
conspirators, and it is governing or at any rate influencing their conduct. The
conspiratorial agreement continues in operation and therefore in existence
until it is discharged (terminated) by completion of its performance or by
abandonment or frustration or, however, it may be." The Court then
considered the question whether conspiracy is a continuing offence and said as
under:- "Conspiracy to commit a crime itself is punishable as a
substantive offence and every individual offence committed pursuant to the
conspiracy is separate and distinct offence to which individual offenders are
liable to punishment, independent of the conspiracy. Yet, in our considered
view, the agreement does not come to an end with its making, but would endure
till it is accomplished or abandoned or proved abortive. Being a continuing
offence, if any acts or omissions which constitute an offence are done in India
or outside its territory the conspirators continuing to be parties to the
conspiracy and since part of the acts were done in India, they would obviate
the need to obtain sanction of the Central Government. All of them need not be
present in India nor continue to remain in India." Finally the Court said
as under :- "Thus, an agreement between two or more persons to do an
illegal act or legal acts by illegal means is criminal conspiracy. If the
agreement is not an agreement to commit an offence, it does not amount to
conspiracy unless it is followed up by an overt act done by one or more persons
in furtherance of the agreement. The offence is complete as soon as there is
meeting of minds and unity of purpose between the conspirators to do that
illegal act or legal act by illegal means. Conspiracy itself is a substantive
offence and is distinct from the offence to commit which the conspiracy is
entered into. It is undoubted that the general conspiracy is distinct from
number of separate offences committed while executing the offence of conspiracy.
Each act constitutes separate offence punishable, independent of the
conspiracy. The law had developed several or different models or technics to
broach the scope of conspiracy. One such model is that of a chain, where each
party performs even without knowledge of the other a role that aids succeeding
parties in accomplishing the criminal objectives of the conspiracy. An
illustration of a single conspiracy, its parts bound together as links in a
chain, is the process of procuring and distributing narcotics or an illegal
foreign drug for sale in different parts of the globe. In such a case,
smugglers, middlemen and retailers are privies to a single conspiracy to
smuggle and distribute narcotics. The smugglers knew that the middlemen must
sell to retailers; and the retailers knew that the middlemen must buy of
importers of someone or another. Thus the conspirators at one end of the chain
knew that the unlawful business would not, and could not, stop with their
buyers; and those at the other end knew that it had not begun with their
settlers. The accused embarked upon a venture in all parts of which each was a
participant and an abettor in the sense that, the success of the part with
which he was immediately concerned, was dependent upon the success of the whole.
It should also be considered as a spoke in the hub. There is a rim to bind all
the spokes together in a single conspiracy. It is not material that a rim is
found only when there is proof that each spoke was aware of one another's
existence but that all promoted in furtherance of some single illegal
objective. The traditional concept of single agreement can also accommodate the
situation where a well-defined group conspires to commit multiple crimes; so
long as all these crimes are the objects of the same agreement or continuous
conspiratorial relationship, and the conspiracy continues to subsist though it
was entered in the first instance. Take for instance that three persons hatched
a conspiracy in country A to kill D in country B with explosive substance. As
far as conspiracy is concerned, it is complete in country A. One of them
pursuant thereto carried the explosive substance and hands it over to them
pursuant thereto carried the explosive substance and hands it over to third one
in the country B who implants at a place where D frequents and got exploded
with remote control. D may be killed or escape or may be got exploded with
remote control.
D may
be killed or escape or may be diffused. The conspiracy continues till it is
executed in country B or frustrated. Therefore, it is a continuing act and all
are liable for conspiracy in country B though first two are liable to murder
with aid of Section 120-B and the last one is liable under Section 302 or 307
IPC, as the case may be.
Conspiracy
may be considered to be a march under a banner and a person may join or drop
out in the march without the necessity of the change in the text on the banner.
In the comity of International Law, in these days, committing offences on
international scale is a common feature. The offence of conspiracy would be a
useful weapon and there would exist no conflict in municipal laws and the
doctrine of autrefois convict or acquit would extend to such offences. The
comity of nations are duty-bound to apprehend the conspirators as soon as they
set their feet on the country's territorial limits and nip the offence in the
bud.
25. A
conspiracy thus, is a continuing offence and continues to subsist and committed
wherever one of the conspirators does an act or series of acts.
So
long as its performance continues, it is a continuing offence till it is
executed or rescinded or frustrated by choice or necessity. A crime is complete
as soon as the agreement is made, but it is not a thing of the moment. It does
not end with the making of the agreement. It will continue so long as there are
two or more parties to it intending to carry into effect the design. Its
continuance is a threat to the society against which it was aimed at and would
be dealt with as soon as that jurisdiction can properly claim the power to do
so. The conspiracy designed or agreed abroad will have the same effect as in
India, when part of the acts, pursuant to the agreement are agreed to be
finalised or done, attempted or even frustrated and vice versa." In State
of Maharashtra and others vs. Som Nath Thapa and others (1996 (4) SCC 659 at
668) this Court referred to its earlier decision in Ajay Aggarwal case (1993
(3) SCC 609) and said :- "The aforesaid decisions, weighty as they are,
lead us to conclude that to establish a charge of conspiracy knowledge about
indulgence in either an illegal act or a legal act by illegal means is
necessary. In some cases, intent of unlawful use being made of the goods or
services in question may be inferred from the knowledge itself. This apart, the
prosecution has not to establish that a particular unlawful use was intended,
so long as the goods or service in question could not be put to any lawful use.
Finally, when the ultimate offence consists of a chain of actions, it would not
be necessary for the prosecution to establish, to bring home the charge of
conspiracy, that each of the conspirators had the knowledge of what the
collaborator would do, so long as it is known that the collaborator would put
the goods or service to an unlawful use." In Regina vs. Ardalan & Ors.
[(1972) 1 WLR 463 (CA)] the appellants were charged and convicted for the
offence of conspiracy. On appeal, reference of the Trial Judge to "the
cartwheel type of conspiracy"; about "sub-conspiracies" and also
about "the chain type of conspiracy" was criticised. The Appeal Court
said that care must be taken that words and phrases such as "wheels",
"cartwheels", "chain", "sub-conspiracies" and so
on are used only to illustrate and to clarify the principle and for no other
purpose. It said:
"It
is right to say that these epithets, or labels, such as "cartwheels"
(or wheel without rim) and "chains" have a certain respectable
ancestry and have been used in a number of conspiracy cases that from time to
time have come before the courts.
Metaphors
are invaluable for the purpose of illustrating a particular point or a
particular concept to a jury, but there is a limit to the utility of a metaphor
and there is sometimes a danger, if metaphors are used excessively, that a
point of time arises at which the metaphor tends to obscure rather than to
clarify." In United States vs. Falcone et al. [109 Federal Reporter (2d
Series) 579 (Circuit Court of Appeals - the Second Circuit)], the appellants
were convicted for a conspiracy to operate illicit stills. Case against the
appellant and others who constituted one set of conspirators was that they
supplied sugar etc. to the other group of conspirators who were operating
illicit stills. The question before the court was whether the sellers of goods,
in themselves innocent, became conspirators with the buyer because they knew
that the buyer meant to use the goods to commit a crime. Judge Learned Hand
speaking for the Court said:
"There
are indeed instances of criminal liability of the same kind, where the law
imposes punishment merely because the accused did not forbear to do that from
which the wrong was likely to follow; but in prosecutions for conspiracy or
abetting, his attitude towards the forbidden undertaking must be more positive.
It is not enough that he does not forego a normally lawful activity, of the
fruits of which he knows that others will make an unlawful use; he must in some
sense promote their venture himself, make it his own, have a stake in its
outcome. The distinction is especially important today when so many prosecutors
seek to sweep within the drag-net of conspiracy all those who have been
associated in any degree whatever with the main offenders. That there are
opportunities of great oppression in such a doctrine is very plain, and it is
only by circumscribing the scope of such all comprehensive indictments that
they can be avoided.
We may
agree that morally the defendants at bar should have refused to sell to illicit
distillers;
but,
both morally and legally, to do so was toto coelo different from joining with
them in running the stills." Falcon and similarly situated appellants were
acquitted of the charge of conspiracy.
United
States then moved the Supreme Court for a writ of certiorari to review the
aforesaid judgment of the Circuit Court setting aside the conviction of the
respondents Felcon and others. The Government, however, did not argue that the
conviction of conspiracy could rest on proof alone of knowingly supplied an
illicit distillers who are not conspiring with others. It was conceded that the
act of supplying or some other proof must import an agreement or concert of
action between buyer and seller which admittedly was not present in the case.
{United States of America vs. Salvatore Falcone, & Ors. [85 Lawyers Ed. (311
US) 205]}.
In the
present case, there is no evidence to support the charge as regards the period
of conspiracy. It is as important to know the period as to ascertain the object
of conspiracy. It appears that period of conspiracy in the charge from July
1987 to May 1992 has been mentioned as the Indo-Sri Lankan Accord was entered
into in July 1987 and LTTE was declared an unlawful association by notification
dated May 14, 1992 issued under the Unlawful Activities (Prevention) Act, 1987.
There is, however, no evidence that the conspiracy was hatched immediately on
entering into the accord and was terminated only on the issue of the
notification. A statement made by a conspirator before the commencement of the
conspiracy is not admissible against the coconspirator under Section 10 of the
Evidence Act.
Similarly,
a statement made after the conspiracy has been terminated on achieving its
object or it is abandoned or it is frustrated or the conspirator leaves the
conspiracy in between, is not admissible against the co-conspirator.
Fixing
the period of conspiracy is, thus, important as provisions of Section 10 would
apply only during the existence of the conspiracy. We have held that object of
the conspiracy was the killing of Rajiv Gandhi. It is not that immediately the
object of conspiracy is achieved, Section 10 becomes inapplicable. For example
principle like that of res gestae as contained in Section 6 of the Evidence Act
will continue to apply.
Principle
of law governing Section 10 has been succinctly stated in a decision of this
Court in Sardar Sardul Singh Caveeshar vs. State of Maharashtra [(1964) 2 SCR
378] where this Court said:
"Before
dealing with the individual cases, as some argument was made in regard to the
nature of the evidence that should be adduced to sustain the case of
conspiracy, it will be convenient to make at this stage some observations
thereon. Section 120-A of the Indian Penal Code defines the offence of criminal
conspiracy thus :
"When
two or more persons agree to do, or cause to be done an illegal act, or an act
which is not illegal by illegal means, such an agreement is designated a
criminal conspiracy." The essence of conspiracy is, therefore, that there
should be an agreement between persons to do one or other of the acts described
in the section. The said agreement may be proved by direct evidence or may be
inferred from acts and conduct of the parties. There is no difference between
the mode of proof of the offence of conspiracy and that of any other offence :
it can be established by direct evidence or by circumstantial evidence. But
s.10 of the Evidence Act introduces the doctrine of agency and if the
conditions laid down therein are satisfied, the acts done by one are admissible
against the coconspirators. The said section reads:
"Where
there is reasonable ground to believe that two or more persons have conspired
together to commit an offence or an actionable wrong, anything said, done or
written by any one of such persons in reference to their common intention,
after the time when such intention was first entertained by any one of them, is
a relevant fact as against each of the persons believed to be so conspiring as
well for the purpose of proving the existence of the conspiracy as for the
purpose of showing that any such person was a party to it." This section,
as the opening words indicate, will come into play only when the Court is
satisfied that there is reasonable ground to believe that two or more persons
have conspired together to commit an offence or an actionable wrong, that is to
say, there should be a prima facie evidence that a person was a party to the
conspiracy before his acts can be used against his co-conspirators. Once such a
reasonable ground exists, anything said, done or written by one of the
conspirators in reference to the common intention, after the said intention was
entertained, is relevant against the others, not only for the purpose of
proving the existence of the conspiracy but also for proving that the other
person was a party to it. The evidentiary value of the said acts is limited by
two circumstances, namely, that the acts shall be in reference to their common
intention and in respect of a period after such intention was entertained by
any one of them.
The
expression "in reference to their common intention" is very
comprehensive and it appears to have been designedly used to give it a wider
scope than the words "in furtherance of" in the English law; with the
result, anything said, done or written by a co-conspirator, after the
conspiracy was formed, will be evidence against the other before he entered the
field of conspiracy or after he left it.
Another
important limitation implicit in the language is indicated by the expressed
scope of its relevancy. Anything so said, done or written is a relevant fact
only "as against each of the persons believed to be so conspiring as well
for the purpose of proving the existence of the conspiracy as for the purpose
of showing that any such person was a party to it". It can only be used
for the purpose of proving the existence of the conspiracy or that the other
person was a party to it. It cannot be used in favour of the other party or for
the purpose of showing that such a person was not a party to the conspiracy. In
short, the section can be analysed as follows: (1) There shall be a prima facie
evidence affording a reasonable ground for a Court to believe that two or more
persons are members of a conspiracy; (2) if the said condition is fulfilled,
anything said, done or written by any one of them in reference to their common
intention will be evidence against the other; (3) anything said, done or
written by him should have been said, done or written by him after the
intention was formed by any one of them; (4) it would also be relevant for the
said purpose against another who entered the conspiracy whether it was said,
done or written before he entered the conspiracy or after he left it; and (5)
it can only be used against a coconspirator and not in his favour." Then
in State of Gujarat vs. Mohammed Atik & Ors.
[(1998)
4 SCC 351] this Court said as under:
"It
is well-nigh settled that Section 10 of the Evidence Act is founded on the
principle of law of agency by rendering the statement or act of one conspirator
binding on the other if it was said during subsistence of the common intention
as between the conspirators. If so, once the common intention ceased to exist
any statement made by a former conspirator thereafter cannot be regarded as one
made "in reference to their common intention".
In
other words, a post-arrest statement made to a police officer, whether it is a
confession or otherwise, touching his involvement in the conspiracy, would not
fall within the ambit of Section 10 of the Evidence Act." In Mirza Akbar
vs. King Emperor (AIR 1940 PC 176) the Privy Council said the following on the
scope of Section 10 :
"This
being the principle, their Lordships think the words of S.10 must be construed
in accordance with it and are not capable of being widely construed so as to
include a statement made by one conspirator in the absence of the other with
reference to past acts done in the actual course of carrying out the
conspiracy, after it has been completed. The common intention is in the past.
In their Lordships' judgment, the words "common intention" signify a
common intention existing at the time when the thing was said, done or written
by the one of them.
Things
said, done or written while the conspiracy was on foot are relevant as evidence
of the common intention, once reasonable ground has been shown to believe in
its existence. But it would be a very different matter to hold that any
narrative or statement or confession made to a third party after the common
intention or conspiracy was no longer operating and had ceased to exist is
admissible against the other party. There is then no common intention of the
conspirators to which the statement can have reference. In their Lordships'
judgment S.10 embodies this principle. That is the construction which has been
rightly applied to S.10 in decisions in India, for instance, in 55 Bom 839 and
38 Cal 169. In these cases the distinction was rightly drawn between
communications between conspirators while the conspiracy was going on with
reference to the carrying out of conspiracy and statements made, after arrest
or after the conspiracy has ended, by way of description of events then
past." It was submitted that once the conspirator is nabbed that would be
an end to the conspiracy and Section 10 would be inapplicable. That may be so
in a given case but is not of universal application. If the object of
conspiracy has not been achieved and there is still agreement to do the illegal
act, the offence of criminal conspiracy is there and Section 10 of the Evidence
Act applies. Prosecution in the present case has not led any evidence to show
that any particular accused continued to be a member of the conspiracy after
his arrest.
Though
we have held that confession of an accused recorded under Section 15 of TADA is
substantive evidence against coaccused we may take note of an alternative argument
of Mr. Altaf Ahmad. He said even if it is held that the confession under
Section 15 TADA can be admitted only if there is corroboration, under Section
10 of the Evidence Act the confession of an accused can nevertheless be a
substantive evidence against co-accused if it satisfies the requirement of that
Section.
It is
true that provision as contained in Section 10 is a departure from the rule of
hearsay evidence. There can be two objections to the admissibility of evidence
under Section 10 and they are (1) the conspirator whose evidence is sought to
be admitted against co-conspirator is not confronted or crossexamined in Court
by the co-conspirator and (2) prosecution merely proves the existence of
reasonable ground to believe that two or more persons have conspired to commit
an offence and that brings into operation the existence of agency relationship
to implicate co-conspirator. But then precisely under Section 10 Evidence Act
statement of a conspirator is admissible against co-conspirator on the premise
that this relationship exists. Prosecution, no doubt, has to produce
independent evidence as to the existence of the conspiracy for Section 10 to
operate but it need not prove the same beyond a reasonable doubt. Criminal
conspiracy is a partnership in agreement and there is in each conspiracy a
joint or mutual agency for the execution of a common object which is an offence
or an actionable wrong. When two or more persons enter into a conspiracy any
act done by any one of them pursuant to the agreement is, in contemplation of
law, the act of each of them and they are jointly responsible therefor. This
means that everything said, written or done by any of the conspirators in
execution of or in reference to their common intention is deemed to have been
said, done or written by each of them. A conspirator is not, however,
responsible for acts done by a conspirator after the termination of the
conspiracy as aforesaid. The Court is, however, to guard itself against readily
accepting the statement of a conspirator against the co-conspirator.
Section
10 is a special provision in order to deal with dangerous criminal
combinations. Normal rule of evidence that prevents the statement of one
co-accused being used against another under Section 30 of the Evidence Act does
not apply in the trial of conspiracy in view of Section 10 of that Act. When we
say that court has to guard itself against readily accepting the statement of a
conspirator against co-conspirator what we mean is that court looks for some
corroboration to be on the safe side. It is not a rule of law but a rule of
prudence bordering on law. All said and done ultimately it is the appreciation
of evidence on which the court has to embark.
In
Bhagwandas Keshwani and another vs. State of Rajasthan (1974 (4) SCC 611 at
613), this Court said that in cases of conspiracy better evidence than acts and
statements of coconspirators in pursuance of the conspiracy is hardly ever
available.
Some
of the broad principles governing the law of conspiracy may be summarized though,
as the name implies, a summary cannot be exhaustive of the principles.
1.
Under Section 120A IPC offence of criminal conspiracy is committed when two or
more persons agree to do or cause to be done an illegal act or legal act by
illegal means. When it is legal act by illegal means overt act is necessary.
Offence of criminal conspiracy is exception to the general law where intent
alone does not constitute crime. It is intention to commit crime and joining
hands with persons having the same intention. Not only the intention but there
has to be agreement to carry out the object of the intention, which is an
offence.
The
question for consideration in a case is did all the accused had the intention
and did they agree that the crime be committed. It would not be enough for the
offence of conspiracy when some of the accused merely entertained a wish,
howsoever, horrendous it may be, that offence be committed.
2.
Acts subsequent to the achieving of object of conspiracy may tend to prove that
a particular accused was party to the conspiracy. Once the object of conspiracy
has been achieved, any subsequent act, which may be unlawful, would not make
the accused a part of the conspiracy like giving shelter to an absconder.
3.
Conspiracy is hatched in private or in secrecy.
It is
rarely possible to establish a conspiracy by direct evidence. Usually, both the
existence of the conspiracy and its objects have to be inferred from the
circumstances and the conduct of the accused.
4.
Conspirators may, for example, be enrolled in a chain A enrolling B, B
enrolling C, and so on; and all will be members of a single conspiracy if they
so intend and agree, even though each member knows only the person who enrolled
him and the person whom he enrolls. There may be a kind of umbrella-spoke
enrollment, where a single person at the centre doing the enrolling and all the
other members being unknown to each other, though they know that there are to
be other members. These are theories and in practice it may be difficult to
tell whether the conspiracy in a particular case falls into which category. It
may, however, even overlap. But then there has to be present mutual interest.
Persons may be members of single conspiracy even though each is ignorant of the
identity of many others who may have diverse role to play. It is not a part of
the crime of conspiracy that all the conspirators need to agree to play the
same or an active role.
5.
When two or more persons agree to commit a crime of conspiracy, then regardless
of making or considering any plans for its commission, and despite the fact
that no step is taken by any such person to carry out their common purpose, a
crime is committed by each and every one who joins in the agreement. There has
thus to be two conspirators and there may be more than that. To prove the
charge of conspiracy it is not necessary that intended crime was committed or
not. If committed it may further help prosecution to prove the charge of
conspiracy.
6. It
is not necessary that all conspirators should agree to the common purpose at
the same time. They may join with other conspirators at any time before the
consummation of the intended objective, and all are equally responsible. What
part each conspirator is to play may not be known to everyone or the fact as to
when a conspirator joined the conspiracy and when he left.
7. A
charge of conspiracy may prejudice the accused because it is forced them into a
joint trial and the court may consider the entire mass of evidence against
every accused. Prosecution has to produce evidence not only to show that each
of the accused has knowledge of object of conspiracy but also of the agreement.
In the charge of conspiracy court has to guard itself against the danger of
unfairness to the accused. Introduction of evidence against some may result in
the conviction of all, which is to be avoided. By means of evidence in
conspiracy, which is otherwise inadmissible in the trial of any other
substantive offence prosecution tries to implicate the accused not only in the
conspiracy itself but also in the substantive crime of the alleged
conspirators. There is always difficulty in tracing the precise contribution of
each member of the conspiracy but then there has to be cogent and convincing
evidence against each one of the accused charged with the offence of
conspiracy. As observed by Judge Learned Hand that "this distinction is
important today when many prosecutors seek to sweep within the dragnet of
conspiracy all those who have been associated in any degree whatever with the
main offenders".
8. As
stated above it is the unlawful agreement and not its accomplishment, which is
the gist or essence of the crime of conspiracy. Offence of criminal conspiracy
is complete even though there is no agreement as to the means by which the
purpose is to be accomplished. It is the unlawful agreement, which is the
gravaman of the crime of conspiracy.
The
unlawful agreement which amounts to a conspiracy need not be formal or express,
but may be inherent in and inferred from the circumstances, especially
declarations, acts, and conduct of the conspirators.
The
agreement need not be entered into by all the parties to it at the same time,
but may be reached by successive actions evidencing their joining of the
conspiracy.
9. It
has been said that a criminal conspiracy is a partnership in crime, and that
there is in each conspiracy a joint or mutual agency for the prosecution of a
common plan. Thus, if two or more persons enter into a conspiracy, any act done
by any of them pursuant to the agreement is, in contemplation of law, the act
of each of them and they are jointly responsible therefor. This means that
everything said, written or done by any of the conspirators in execution or
furtherance of the common purpose is deemed to have been said, done, or written
by each of them. And this joint responsibility extends not only to what is done
by any of the conspirators pursuant to the original agreement but also to
collateral acts incident to and growing out of the original purpose. A
conspirator is not responsible, however, for acts done by a co-conspirator
after termination of the conspiracy. The joinder of a conspiracy by a new
member does not create a new conspiracy nor does it change the status of the
other conspirators, and the mere fact that conspirators individually or in
groups perform different tasks to a common end does not split up a conspiracy
into several different conspiracies.
10. A
man may join a conspiracy by word or by deed.
However,
criminal responsibility for a conspiracy requires more than a merely passive
attitude towards an existing conspiracy. One who commits an overt act with
knowledge of the conspiracy is guilty. And one who tacitly consents to the
object of a conspiracy and goes along with other conspirators, actually
standing by while the others put the conspiracy into effect, is guilty though
he intends to take no active part in the crime.
Having
thus held that the object of the conspiracy was to kill Rajiv Gandhi; that no
offence under Sections 3 or 4 of TADA had been committed and after having considered
the principles regarding the ingredients of criminal conspiracy; appreciation
of evidence in a case of conspiracy; submissions of Mr. Natarajan that he is
not challenging the convictions and sentence passed on the accused under the
provisions of the Arms Act, Explosives Substance Act, Indian Wireless and
Telegraphy Act, Passport Act, Foreigners Act and Sections 201, 212 and 216 IPC,
we proceed to consider as to whether all or any one of the accused before us
were members of the criminal conspiracy, still keeping in view the following
aspects:-
1.
Presence of LTTE on Indian soil before and after Indo-Sri Lankan Accord is
undisputed. Its activities went ostensibly underground after the Accord. LTTE
was having various activities in India and some of these were (1) printing and
publishing of books and magazines for LTTE propaganda, (2) holding of camps for
arms training in India and various other places in Tamil Nadu (This was done
openly till the Indo-Sri Lankan Accord), (3) collection and raising of funds
for its war efforts in Sri Lanka, (4) treatment of injured LTTE cadres in
India, (5) medical assistance and (6) transporting of goods like petrol,
diesel, lungies, medicines, wireless equipments and explosives and even
provisions to Sri Lanka.
2.
Hiring of houses in Tamil Nadu was for various activities of the LTTE, which
included houses for the treatment of injured LTTE cadres.
3.
Sivarasan was having other activities in Tamil Nadu. He was to make
arrangements for Santhan (A-2) to go to Switzerland and for Kangasabapathy
(A-7) and Athirai (A-8) to go to Delhi and from there to Germany. He was to
make arrangement to recruit persons to impart arms training in Sri Lanka
through Ravi (A-16) and Suseendran (A-17) and to arrange houses at Madras
through Robert Payas (A-9), Jayakumar (A10) and Vijayan (A-12) for the stay of
LTTE cadres not necessarily for conspirators. He financed Vijayanandan (A5) in
Madras for purchase of books for LTTE library in Jaffna. Shanmugham (DA) in his
confession (Exh.P-1300) stated that Sivarasan with others stayed in a house at
Kodiakkarai and they were arranging to send petrol and diesel oil by boat to
LTTE in Sri Lanka.
4. In
case of some of the accused including deceased accused there is no evidence
whatsoever that they were members of the conspiracy.
Prosecution
has been unfair to charge them with conspiracy.
5.
There is no evidence that all the nine persons, who arrived in India by boat on
1.5.1991, namely, Sivarasan, Subha, Dhanu, Nero, Dixon, Santhan (A-2), Shankar
(A-4), Vijayanandan (A-5) and Ruben (A-6), were members of the conspiracy. In
this group there was Ruben (A-6), who came to India to have an artificial leg
fixed which he had lost in a battle with Sri Lankan army.
6.
Prosecution also named Jamuna @ Jameela (DA) as a conspirator, who had also
come to India for fixing an artificial limb, which she had also lost in a
battle with Sri Lankan army. There is not even a whisper in the whole mass of
evidence that she had even knowledge of any conspiracy to kill Rajiv Gandhi. Simply
because she was found dead having committed suicide along with Sivarasan, Subha
and others at Bangalore, could not make her a member of the conspiracy.
7.
From frequent and unexplained meetings of some of the accused with others, who
have been charged with conspiracy, it cannot be assumed that they all were
members of the conspiracy. This is particularly so when LTTE was having various
activities on Indian soil for its war efforts in Sri Lanka. Notebook
(Exh.P-1168) seized by the police gives bio-data of some LTTE cadre working in
India though that list is not extensive. It also contains the bio-data of
Irumborai (A-19).
8. All
the persons, who came from Sri Lanka during the strife, did not come through
authorized channels. It is also to be seen if the accused now charged with
conspiracy and alleged to have come to India in the guise of refugees were not
in fact refugees. Rather evidence shows that Robert Payas (A9), Jayakumar
(A-10) and Shanthi (A-11) as one group and Vijayan (A-12), Selvaluxmi (A-13) and
Bhaskaran (A-14) as the second group, were in fact wanting to come to India due
to conditions prevailing in Sri Lanka. They had no money to pay to LTTE. They
were exempted from paying any toll to LTTE on their agreeing to hire houses in
Tamil Nadu for stay of LTTE cadre and on their being promised help by LTTE.
When they so agreed they were not aware that what was the object behind their
hiring the houses. Evidence regarding providing shelter to the conspirators
either before or after the object of the conspiracy has been achieved, is not
conclusive to support the charge of conspiracy against them.
9.
Robert Payas (A-9), Jayakumar (A-10) and Vijayan (A-12) were hard-core LTTE
activists. They were living in Sri Lanka with their families and suffered because
of the turmoil there. They may be sympathizers of LTTE having strong feelings
against IPKF. Consider the background in which they accepted the offer of LTTE
to meet their expenses in India. It could be that they themselves felled into
the trap because of the circumstances in which their families were placed in
Sri Lanka and the conditions prevailing there.
Now,
we proceed to examine individual cases keeping in view the evidence and law on
the subject.
Dhanasekaran
(A-23) -------------------- Rangam (A-24) -------------- Vicky (A-25)
------------ Ranganath (A-26) ---------------- The object of the conspiracy was
achieved on May 21, 1991. There is no evidence against Dhanasekaran (A-23), an
Indian national, Rangam (A-24), Sri Lankan national, Vicky (A-25), Sri Lankan
National and Ranganath (A-26), Indian national, that they were members of the
conspiracy. They came in the picture after the object of the conspiracy had
been achieved. However, they knowingly that Sivrasan and Dhanu had committed
the offence of murder of Rajiv Gandhi intentionally screened them from legal
punishment. Evidence against Dhanasekaran (A-23) shows that he was fully aware
of the involvement of Sivarasan and Subha in the murder of Rajiv Gandhi and
with that full knowledge he transported them in an oil tanker (MO-543) owned by
him from Madras to Bangalore to evade their arrest. In his confession
Dhanasekaran (A-23) described how he was able to transport Sivarasan, Subha and
Nero, hidden in his tanker lorry. His confession is corroborated amongst others
by S. Syed Ibrahim (PW-232), insurance surveyor, S. Vasudevan (PW-245), cashier
of petrol pump and his driver R. Selvaraj (PW-230).
Similarly,
Rangam (A-24) was having knowledge of the offence of murder committed by
Sivarasan and Subha and he helped and assisted Dhanasekaran (A-23) and Vicky
(A-25) in transporting them from Madras to Bangalore. At Bangalore also he
transported Sivarasan, Subha and others in Maruti Gypsi (MO-540), which had
been purchased with the help of Dhanasekaran (A-23) and was given by Trichy
Santhan (deceased accused) to Rangam (A-24). This Maruti Gypsy was green in
colour but then in order to avoid its detection by the police Rangam (A-24)
gave this vehicle to workshop at Bangalore for changing its colour. Rangam (A-24)
thus also made efforts to destroy evidence besides harbouring and sheltering
Sivarasan, Subha and Nero with full knowledge that they were involved in the
assassination of Rajiv Gandhi. In the last week of June, 1991 he was directed
by Trichy Santhan (deceased accused) to meet Dhanasekaran (A-23) for shifting
Sivarasan, Subha and Nero from Madras to Bangalore. Confession of Rangam (A-24)
is corroborated by Mrudulla (PW-65), wife of Ranganath (A-26), R. Selvaraj
(PW-230), driver and K.N. Mohan (PW-222), mechanic of the workshop, who
repainted Maruti Gypsy.
Vicky
(A-25) was also aware that Sivarasan and Dhanu were involved in the
assassination of Rajiv Gandhi. He accompanied Dhanasekaran (A-23) and Rangam
(A-24) in tanker lorry (MO-543) for shifting Sivarasan, Subha and Nero from
Madras to Bangalore. He had opened the top lid of the tanker for Sivarasan,
Subha and Nero to get into the tanker.
This
was done with a view to evade the arrest of Sivarasan, Subha and Nero. Evidence
against Vicky (A-25) is same as against Dhanasekaran (A-23) and Rangam (A-24)
and his case is similar to them. He had come to India for the first time in
1985 and again in 1990. He was given the task of looking after wounded LTTE
personnel, who had come to India for treatment.
Ranganath
(A-26) gave shelter to Sivarasan, Subha, Nero and others in his house knowingly
that both Sivarasan and Subha were involved in the assassination of Rajiv
Gandhi. He helped Rangam (A-24) to take Maruti Gypsy (MO-540) and Fiat car (CAU
6492) to the workshop for changing colour of the vehicles respectively from
green to white and sky blue to white. After colour of Maruti Gypsy had been
changed he took delivery of the same. He got the Fiat car recovered from the
workshop during investigation.
His
conduct in getting the colour of the vehicle changed showed his total
involvement in harbouring of Sivarasan, Subha and others. He then helped the
accused in renting a house for them in a false name. In the case of Ranganath
(A-26), his wife Mrudulla (PW-65) has deposed against him.
There
is no evidence to show that Ranganath (A-26) was under any threat and that on
that account he had harboured the accused Sivarasan, Subha and others. Other
evidence against Ranganath (A-26) is that of E. Anjanappa (PW218), landlord of
his house, his three friends R. Rajan (PW-223), R. Jayashankar (PW-229) and K.
Premkumar (PW-227) and the car mechanic K.N. Mohan (PW-222).
These
four accused Dhanasekaran (A-23), Dhanasekaran (A23), Vicky (A-25) and
Ranganath (A-26) have been rightly convicted for that offence under Section 212
IPC. The Designated Court sentenced to each of them to undergo rigorous
imprisonment for two years. Ranganath (A-26) has also been convicted for an
offence under Section 216 IPC and sentenced to undergo rigorous imprisonment
for two years.
Rangam
(A-24) and Vicky (A-25) being foreign nationals have also been convicted and
sentenced for an offence under Section 14 of Foreigners Act inasmuch as they
came to India through illicit channel without holding any valid travel documents
and unauthorizedly stayed in India. Conviction and sentence under all these
charges have not been challenged.
Nalini
(A-1) ------------ Nalini (A-1) in her confession has implicated herself. We
have rejected any challenge to her confession being involuntary. She linked
many others in the chain of conspiracy. Her confession gives her pivot role in
the conspiracy. She made extra judicial confession to Sasikala (PW-132) and
Ravi (PW-115). Ravi (PW-115) is not expressive about the extra judicial confession
given to him. Sasikala (PW-132) gives details of the extra judicial confession.
Confession
of Nalini (A-1) also stands corroborated in material particular by other
evidence. Nalini (A-1) is educated. She is post-graduate. In her association
with Murugan (A-3), Sivarasan, Subha and Dhanu she developed extreme hatred
against IPKF and Rajiv Gandhi. She got associated with LTTE activities some
time in February, 1991.
She
did have a lurking feeling that some action was in contemplation by Sivarasan,
Subha and Dhanu. On 7.5.1991 she gets a positive feeling that they were
planning to kill certain leaders. However, wireless message (Exh.P-392), which
was sent on 7.5.1991 by Sivarasan to Pottu Amman and which was intercepted and
decoded, showed that till this date Nalini (A-1) had no knowledge about any
conspiracy to kill Rajiv Gandhi. Further that till 7.5.1991 only three persons
Sivarasan, Subha and Dhanu knew the object of conspiracy to kill Rajiv Gandhi.
On 19.5.1991 she got a strong feeling that Rajiv Gandhi was the target but she
continues to associate with them. It was on 21.5.1991 that she agreed to
associate herself with the killing of Rajiv Gandhi and became member of the
conspiracy. On that day she goes with the group comprising Sivarasan, Subha and
Dhanu from her house to achieve the object of conspiracy.
Haribabu
also joins them on way to Sriperumbudur where Rajiv Gandhi was to address the
public meeting. She has been given a role. She has to give cover to Subha and
Dhanu so that they may not be identified as Sri Lankan Tamils and when the
explosion occurs she acts as per instructions. She takes Subha with her to a
particular place, performs the role assigned to her and then goes into hiding.
She is fully involved in the crime. When she absconds and goes to the house of
Ravi (PW-115) with Murugan (A-3) after the assassination of Rajiv Gandhi she
introduced Murugan (A3) as her brother-in-law by the name Raju. To Sasikala
(PW-132) she introduced Murugan (A-3) as her brother-in-law by the name Dass
(Thass). No doubt if she had the knowledge that a conspiracy was afoot to kill
Rajiv Gandhi that would not make her part of the conspiracy. But then she
became a conspirator only when she agreed with the group to go ahead to kill
Rajiv Gandhi and became part of the group.
Confession
of Nalini (A-1) finds corroboration from the confession of her co-accused,
extra judicial confession of Sasikala (PW-132), witnesses and exhibits
including photographs. Her presence at the scene of crime could not be
disputed. Confessions are of her mother Padma (A-21), brother Bhagyanathan
(A-20), Arivu (A-18) and Murugan (A-3) and statements of witnesses (PW-96) N.
Sujaya Narayan, a colleague of Nalini (A-1) in Anabond Silicons, who deposes to
her association with Murugan (A-3); (PW-233) Bharathi, friend of Kalyani, a
sister of Nalini (A-1), who deposes to Nalini's (A-1) association with LTTE
cadre; (PW-210) Sankari (sister of Muthuraja, an LTTE activist) who also
deposes Nalini's (A-1) association with LTTE; (PW-90) Rani & (PW-189) Gajalakshim
(neighbours of Nalini (A-1) at Vellivakkam) who depose regarding visits of
Sivarasan, Subha, Dhanu and Murugan (A-3) to the house of Nalini (A-1);
(PW-93)
I. Suyambu (News Correspondent) who identified the video cassette and Sivarasan
in the cassette taken of V.P.Singh's public meeting held on 7.5.1991 at
Nandanam;
(PW-77)
Sankaran or Gnani (Journalist) who talks about Sivarasan's presence at the
public meeting of V.P. Singh on 7.5.1991 at Nandanam; (PW-81) Manivannan
(Videographer) who made video coverage of public meeting of V.P. Singh on
7.5.1991 at Nandanam; (PW-179) Gunanthalalsoni (shopkeeper) who identified
Nalini (A-1) as one of the girls who came to his shop with assassin Dhanu;
(PW-94) A.K. Anbalagan (employees of Poompuhar, Tamil Nadu Government Sales
Store) who deposes sale of sandelwood garland on 21.5.1991; (PW-27) Shanmugam
(Congress Partyman) who is an eye witness and identifies Dhanu in photograph
(MO-16); (PW-32) Anusuya (Sub-Inspector of Police, Security) an eye witness to
the occurrence, who identifies Sivarasan, Subha, Dhanu, Nalini (A-1) and
Haribabu in the photograph; (PW-28) Bhagawan Singh (Journalist) also an eye
witness, who has seen Sivarasan, Haribabu and the girl (Nalini (A-1)) and
identified Sivarasan in MO-2 and Haribabu in MO-17; (PW-19) D. Lakshmi Albert
(Congress Party member) an eye witness, who identified Nalini (A-1), Subha in
MO-188, Dhanu, Sivarasan in MO-16 and Haribabu in MO-17; (PW-20) Dr. Ramadevi
(another Congress Party member and eye witness) who identified Nalini (A1), and
Subha in MO-18 (photograph), Dhanu & Sivarasan in MO-16 and Haribabu in
MO-17; (PW-215) Chamundeeswari (Native of Sriperumbadur, who deposes that she
had given water to Nalini (A1), Subha and Sivarasan on the night of 21.5.1991;
(PW-183) Varadharajan K. (Auto-driver at Thiruvellore) who transported
Sivarasan, Subha, Nalini (A-1) from Sriperumbudur to Madras and is also a spot
witness who heard the sound of blast from parking lot; (PW-195) R. Nagarajan
(Congress Party member of Thrivellore) who travelled in the auto of PW-183 to
Sriperumbudur; (PW-85) D.J. Swaminathan (Neighbour of Jayakumar (A-10) at
Kodungaiyur) who deposes about the visits of Sivarasan, Subha, Dhanu, Robert
Payas (A-9), Santhan (A-2) and about Nalini (A-1) Subha and Sivarasan watching
TV on 23.5.1991 in his house and distribution of sweets by them; (PW-104) S.
Vaidyanathan (Clerk of Sriram Travels) who said regarding hiring of a car for
Tirupathi by Bhagyanathan (A-20); (PW-117) R. Shankar (Proprietor of Sriram
Travels) who also deposes about the trip to Tirupathi by Nalini (A-1), Murugan
(A-3), Padma (A-21), Sivarasan and Subha; (PW-107) Ramasamy (Car driver, who
states regarding the trip to Tirupathi and about stay of Nalini (A-1) and
Murugan (A-3) at Tirupathi; (PW-115) Ravi Srinivasan (a friend of Nalini (A-1))
who deposes about the stay of Nalini (A-1) and Murugan (A-3) at his house at
Madurai after the occurrence; and (PW-288) Raghothaman K. (D.S.P., CBI, SIT,
Chief Investigating Officer). These witnesses also prove various documents and
material objects which fully corroborate the confession made by Nalini (A-1).
Her being a member of the conspiracy to murder Rajiv Gandhi stands fully
proved.
Santhan
(A-2) ------------- Santhan (A-2), a Sri Lankan national, in his confession
talks of his role in the elimination of Padmanabhan, EPRLF leader and others in
Madras but that is not the subject-matter of the charge and it is no terrorist
act. Santhan (A-2) was one of the nine persons, who came from Sri Lanka on a
boat arriving at the shore of India on 1.5.1991. His leader was Sivarasan. At
the direction of Sivarasan he first stayed in the house of Robert Payas (A-9),
then in the house of Haribabu and then with Murugan (A-3) and with Arivu
(A-18).
Earlier
he had come to India with Sivarasan on 15.2.1990. They reached Kodiakarai by
boat. They came to Madras on 16.2.1990 when Sivarasan took him to the house of
one Nagarajan, a Ceylon Tamilian, who indulged in smuggling.
Sivarasan
took Santhan (A2) to MIET (Madras Institute of Engineering Technology) along
with Shanmugavadivelu (A-15) and Nagarajan and got him admitted there. He paid
a sum of Rs.2300/-. Nagarajan was introduced as uncle of Santhan (A-2).
Sivarasan got cloths and other material purchased for Santhan (A-2). He took
the responsibility to meet all the hostel and other expenses of Santhan (A-2).
After the murder of Padmanabha in June, 1990 Santhan (A-2) returned to Sri
Lanka.
On
16.5.1991 Sivarasan had told him that he was going to help Subha and Dhanu to
finish Rajiv Gandhi. He was also told that Prabhakaran had paid special
attention to him (Santhan (A2))after the murder of Padmanabha and important
works were allotted to him and the reason for all that was the cooperation
given by him (Santhan (A-2)) in the matter of killing of Padmanabhan. Earlier
it was Kanthan, an LTTE activist, who was handling the finances of Sivarasan
and now it was Santhan (A-2), who had taken the charge from Kanthan. On
15.5.1991 on the strength of letter from Sivarasan, addressed to Kanthan, he
was given a sum of Rs.5 lakhs by Kanthan to be handed over to Sivarasan.
Sivarasan took Rs.2 lakhs out of that and asked Santhan (A-2) to keep the
balance with him. On 17.5.1991 Santhan (A-2) and Sivarasan went to Easwari
Lodge to meet Shankar (A-4), who had also come with them in the boat carrying
nine persons on 1.5.1991. Out of the money lying with Santhan (A-2) Sivarasan
gave Rs.10,000/- to Shankar (A-4). On 18.5.1991 Santhan (A-2) gave another sum
of Rs.20,000/- to Sivarasan.
Same
day in the afternoon Santhan (A-2) on the instructions of Sivarasan went to the
house of Robert Payas (A-9) and gave Rs.4,000/- to Ruben (A6), who was there at
that time.
Another
sum of Rs.1 lakh was given to Santhan (A-2) to be handed over to Sivarasan.
Santhan (A-2) in his confession said that he in all received Rs.9.50 lakhs
which money he gave to Sivarasan. Out of that Sivarasan gave him Rs.50,000/- to
meet his expenses. He also gave account to Sivarasan. Santhan (A-2) gave monies
to Murugan (A-3), Jayakumar (A-10), and deceased accused Keerthi. That was
after the assassination of Rajiv Gandhi. When Santhan (A-2) was in the house of
Jayakumar (A-10) on 20.5.1991 Sivarasan was also there. On the following day,
i.e., 21.5.1991 Santhan (A-2)dd went to see morning show movie in the cinema
hall. When he returned home he saw Sivarasan was wearing white kurta pyjama. He
saw Sivarasan inserting a white cloth bag containing a pistol at his hip and
asked him whether the gun was protruding outside his dress or not.
Santhan
(A-2) said it was not. Sivarasan went out alone that day and returned around
mid night. He woke up Santhan (A-2) and told him that Rajiv Gandhi and Dhanu
had died and also told that he had brought Nalini (A-1) with him, who was
helper of LTTE. This may show that till that time Santhan (A-2) did not know
Nalini (A-1). Thereafter the role of Santhan (A-2) is that of dodging the
police and harbouring the fellow co-accused. Santhan (A-2) before, during and
after the assassination of Rajiv Gandhi consciously and willingly associated
with Sivarasan in achieving the object of conspiracy. He said even after
confirming that Sivarasan, Subha and Dhanu were going to kill Rajiv Gandhi he
continued to associate with them and after the assassination of Rajiv Gandhi he
made strenuous efforts to shift Sivarasan out of Madras with a view to evade
arrest.
Santhan
(A-2) had a strong association with Sivarasan. He remained associated with
Sivarasan even after he came to know of his plan to murder Rajiv Gandhi. He
paid money to Sivarasan to finance his criminal syndicate. It is not necessary
for us to determine how much money given by Santhan (A-2) to Sivarasan was
utilized by him to achieve the object of conspiracy but we can impart knowledge
to Santhan (A-2) that some of it was so used and from this and other
circumstances we can safely infer his participation in the crime and his being
a member of the conspiracy to kill Rajiv Gandhi. No doubt as originally planned
Santhan (A-2) was to go abroad from India and for that purpose attempt was
being made to get him passport, visa, etc. but was not successful, but then in
the meanwhile he became member of the conspiracy being a confidante of
Sivarasan. It is agreement, which is sine qua non of the offence of conspiracy
which is quite discernible in the case of Santhan (A-2).
Murugan
(A-3) ------------- Murugan (A-3) is a Sri Lankan national and a hard-core LTTE
activist. He was member of the suicide squad of LTTE which he joined in
January, 1991. In January, 1991 itself he came to India on the direction of
absconding accused Pottu Amman and was given specific jobs of preparing
sketches of the interior of Madras Fort, Police Headquarters at Madras and
various other police stations and their locations. He was also asked to take
photographs and videographs of these places. When he arrived at the Indian
shore he was received by Sivarasan. In the course of time he came in contact
with Bhagyanathan (A-20), his mother Padma (A-21) and then with Nalini (A-1).
He was introduced to Haribabu (deceased accused) by Bhagyanathan (A-20). He
gave financial help to the family of Padma (A-21). Murugan (A-3) in his
confession statement said that earlier there was a plan to establish a
household in Delhi by taking Padma (A-21) there but that plan did not proceed.
Sivarasan in his wireless message (Exh.P-378) dated 22.3.1991 to Pottu Amman
said that "if it is Delhi, lot of time and lot of efforts will be
required". In March, 1991 when Sivarasan asked Murugan (A-3) to go to
Delhi and also to find out if Padma (A-21) would come with him he felt that
plans were being made for a serious act like murder. In Madras Murugan (A-3)
joined Vivekananda Kalvi Nilayam Institute in the name of Rajan @ Doss. After
some time he joined Sabari College.
This
was done to show that he was staying in Madras to learn English, etc. Murugan
(A-3) started visiting Nalini (A-1) at her office and at her house at
Villivakkam. He fully indoctrinated her and told her about the activities of
LTTE in Sri Lanka and the atrocities committed by IPKF and their hatred towards
Rajiv Gandhi. When Nalini (A-1) expressed her desire to vacate her house in
Villivakkam, Murugan (A-3) persuaded her not to do so. He told her that
Sivarasan was bringing two LTTE tigresses from Sri Lanka for LTTE operations
who would be staying with her and that she should accommodate them in her
house. Nalini (A-1) agreed to the persuasion of Murugan (A-3) and did not
vacate the house.
Nalini
(A-1) was infatuated towards Murugan (A-3) and wanted to marry him. He,
however, did not agree as that was against the LTTE code of conduct. He was,
however, having sexual relations with Nalini (A-1) at her house. In this house
Subha and Dhanu also used to visit Nalini (A-1) after they had come to India.
Blasting of Vellore Fort and releasing of the LTTE militants, detained there,
was one of the LTTE works in India as confessed by Murugan (A-3). In the end of
March, 1991 Sivarasan told Murugan (A-3) that he would garland Rajiv Gandhi in
a public meeting and asked Murugan (A-3) whether he could arrange an Indian
girl for the purpose. Murugan (A-3) at that time understood that the next
target was Rajiv Gandhi since he was responsible for the atrocities committed
by IPKF and there were lot of feelings to wreak vengeance on him. Murugan (A-3)
understood that Sivarasan had come with a plan to murder Rajiv Gandhi. Murugan
(A-3) said he would arrange an Indian girl and introduced Nalini (A-1) to
Sivarasan telling her that he was his boss. Murugan (A-3) and Nalini (A-1)
attended the public meeting at Marina Beach, which was addressed by Rajiv
Gandhi and Jayalalitha.
Then
in April, 1991 Sivarasan told Murugan (A-3) that he had to bring two girls
Subha and Dhanu from Sri Lanka and that in order to finish the job he required
an Indian girl as both Subha and Dhanu would speak Tamil in Sri Lankan dialect
and in order to mingle in the group without anyone suspecting there was need of
an Indian Tamil girl.
Sivarasan
and Murugan (A-3) then decided to make use of Nalini (A-1). On 7.5.1991 Murugan
(A-3) along with Nalini (A-1), Subha, Dhanu, Sivarasan, Haribabu and Arivu
(A-18) attended the public meeting addressed by V.P. Singh, former Prime
Minister of India, at Nandanam, Madras. This operation was a 'dry run'
operation. Rajiv Gandhi was also former Prime Minister of India. Security
arrangements would be same for both V.P. Singh and Rajiv Gandhi. These accused
therefore conducted rehearsal at the public meeting for the purpose of gaining
access to the VIP under the guise of garlanding him. Now Murugan (A-3) was sure
that Rajiv Gandhi would be the target. In order to gain access to V.P. Singh in
the public meeting Press Accreditation Cards were forged, which were prepared
by Haribabu for Murugan (A-3) and Sivarasan. Forged Press Accreditation Card
with the photograph of Murugan (A-3) (Exh.P-521) was seized from the house
rented by Murugan (A-3) at Madipakkam after the assassination of Rajiv Gandhi.
After this dry run was completed on 7/8.5.1991 Subha and Dhanu wrote two
letters, one addressed to absconding accused Pottu Amman (Exh.P-95) and the
other to the absconding accused Akila (Exh.P-96).
Both
these letters are dated 9.5.1991 and were handed over to Murugan (A-3) for
their being delivered in Sri Lanka.
Another
letter (Exh.P-453) written by Bhagyanathan (A-20) to Baby Subramaniam was also
given to Murugan (A-3). By this time Murugan (A-3) had received instructions
through Sivarasan to go to Sri Lanka. These letters and other materials were
carried by Murugan (A-3) to Kodiakarai in the second week of May, 1991. He
waited there for the boat to arrive from Sri Lanka. Since the boat did not
arrive he handed over six baggages (boxes) to M. Mariappan (PW-86), an employee
of the deceased accused Shanmugham and returned to Madras. These six baggages
(boxes) were subsequently recovered on the information given by Murugan (A-3),
which were kept concealed in a pit near the house of Shanmugham by M. Mariappan
(PW-86). These were seized by Velliapandi (PW-282), Inspector, CBI, on
25.7.1991. In the articles so recovered from these baggages (boxes) there were
also two volumes of the book 'Satanic Force' (MO-124 and MO-125), video
cassettes showing various parts of Fort St. George (MO-323) and photographs of
DGP's office, Fort St. George (MO-256 to 259), etc. Murugan (A-3) was present
in the house of Padma (A-21) on 20.5.1991 when Sivarasan came there. It was at
that time that final plan was discussed and worked out for carrying out the
object of conspiracy to kill Rajiv Gandhi at the public meeting at
Sriperumbudur.
On
21.5.1991 when Nalini (A-1) came to the house of her mother Padma (A-21)
Murugan (A-3) reminded her to go to her house at Vellivakkam before 3.00 p.m.
where Sivarasan, Subha and Dhanu were to meet her as from there they were to
proceed towards Sriperumbudur where Rajiv Gandhi was to address the public
meeting. On 20.5.1991 on the instructions of Sivarasan, Murugan (A-3) had gone
to the house of Haribabu and told the sister of Haribabu to inform Haribabu to
go to the house of Padma (A-21) that day. It was Murugan (A-3), who at the
instance of Sivarasan, arranged Nalini (A-1), an Indian girl for accompanying
Subha and Dhanu to act as their cover so as not to expose their identity.
Conduct of Murugan (A-3) before and after the assassination of Rajiv Gandhi
leaves no doubt in our minds that he had agreed to achieve the object of
conspiracy which was to murder Rajiv Gandhi. On 7.6.1991 Murugan (A-3) gave two
code sheets (MO107 and MO-108), meant for communicating secret messages through
wireless set, to Padma (A-21) and asked her to keep them in safe custody. She
gave those two sheets to her colleague Devasena Raj (PW-73), which were
subsequently seized from her by the police. There is sufficient evidence on
record to show as to how after the assassination of Rajiv Gandhi Murugan (A-3)
and Nalini (A-1) absconded and took refuge at various places including
Tirupathi, Madurai and Devengere in the State of Karnataka and the fact that
identity of Murugan (A-3) was concealed by them. Confession of Murugan (A-3)
stands corroborated with the confessions of his coaccused Nalini (A-1), Santhan
(A-2), Arivu (A-18), Bhagyanathan (A-20) and Padma (A-21) and by independent
witnesses showing his being a member of the criminal conspiracy with the object
of killing Rajiv Gandhi. Shankar (A-4) ------------- Shankar (A-4) is a Sri
Lankan national. He came to India on 1.5.1991 in the group of nine. This group
of nine persons had come to Kodiakarai on the Indian coast. Up to 15.5.1991
Shankar (A-4) stayed with one Jagadisan and thereafter from 16.5.1991 to
23.5.1991 at Easwari Lodge, Madras. While at Kodiakarai he happened to meet
Murugan (A-3), who gave him telephone number of Nalini (A-1) on a slip
(Exh.P-1062). While at Easwari Lodge Santhan (A-2) and Sivarasan met Shankar
(A-4) and gave him Rs.10,000/-. It was during his stay at Easwari Lodge that he
learnt about the assassination of Rajiv Gandhi on 21.5.1991. On 23.5.1991 he
tried to contact Sivarasan or Robert Payas (A-9) on telephone number 2343402
installed at Ebenezer Store but was unable to do so. Shankar (A-4) was arrested
on 7.6.1991 near Nagapatnam. News of his arrest was flashed in newspapers.
Sivarasan sent a wireless message to Pottu Amman on 9.6.1991 (ExhP-401) which
reads: "there is news that one of my associates was caught at Nagapatnam.
He has told things/news about me". That is all the evidence against
Shankar (A-4). Accepting all this evidence to be correct it merely shows that
Shankar (A-4) had association with Sivarasan, Santhan (A-2), Robert Payas (A-9)
and other members of LTTE. This is far from showing that Shankar (A4) had even
any knowledge of the plan to murder Rajiv Gandhi, the object of conspiracy.
Simply because he came to India on 1.5.1991 in the group of nine along with
Sivarasan and assassins will not be enough to impart even knowledge to him of
the conspiracy with the object to kill Rajiv Gandhi.
Apart
from the general charge of conspiracy Shankar (A-4) has also been charged for
an offence under Section 3(3) of TADA and for offence punishable under Section
14 of Foreigners Act, 1946. Charge under Section 3(3) of TADA must fail in view
of what we have said earlier that no offence under TADA has been made out
against the accused.
As
regards the offence under Section 14 of the Foreigners Act he has been
convicted and sentenced as he entered India unauthorisedly. In fact his
conviction and sentence on this charge have not been challenged.
Vijayanandan
(A-5) ------------------ He is a Sri Lankan national and is also a senior
member of LTTE. He was one of the members of the group of nine who arrived in
India on 1.5.1991 by the boat reaching at Kodiakarai at the coast of India. He
was found in possession of forged passport (MO-559), which was seized during
the investigation. In Madras he stayed at Komala Vilas Lodge on 8.5.1991 and
9.5.1991. In the guest register of the lodge (Exh.P-496) he described himself
as an Indian hailing from Madurai in Tamil Nadu. In the column 'purpose of
visit' he mentioned the same as "marriage" and profession as
"teacher". On 9.5.1991 Arivu (A-18) met him in the lodge and took him
to the house of N. Vasantha Kumar (PW-75) where he stayed. In his statement N.
Vasantha Kumar (PW-75) said that while Vijayanandan (A-5) was staying in his
house he used to express his hatred towards Rajiv Gandhi and IPKF and was also
narrating the atrocities committed by IPKF in Jaffna. N. Vasantha Kumar (PW-75)
also said that Vijayanandan (A-5) brought with him a book titled
"Alecia" with Tamil translation (MO-113) for printing. This book, he
said, dealt with life of a jewish lady who sacrificed her life for her nation.
In his diary (MO-180) Sivarasan mentioned on the date 8.5.1991 about payment of
Rs.50,000/to Vijayanandan (A-5). It has come in evidence that the purpose of
Vijayanandan (A-5) coming to India was to buy books for LTTE library and in
fact books were recovered and seized. In his confession Arivu (A-18) does state
about the purchasing of books by Vijayanandan (A-5). There is no evidence to
show that Vijayanandan (A-5) had even knowledge of any conspiracy to kill Rajiv
Gandhi. Merely association with Sivarasan or Arivu (A-18) would not make
Vijayanandan (A-5) a member of the conspiracy alleged against him. Since he
came to India clandestinely through illicit channel he has been charged for an
offence punishable under Section 14 of the Foreigners Act, 1946. There is no
challenge to his conviction and sentence to this charge. The other charge
against him is under Section 3(3) of TADA, which stands dismissed.
Ruben
(A-6) ----------- Ruben (A-6) is a Sri Lankan Tamil and is an LTTE militant. He
was again one of the members of the group of nine arrived at Kodiakarai on
Indian soil on 1.5.1991 from Sri Lanka. He had lost his one leg during the
fight with Sri Lankan army. He went to Jaipur via Delhi from Madras by train on
17.5.1991 in the company of Vijayendran (PW-111) and an attendant. He was seen
off at the railway station by Santhan (A-2) and Sivarasan. Before his departure
for Jaipur his cloths and other necessities had been purchased by Santhan (A-2)
and Robert Payas (A-9). Both Robert Payas (A-9) and Santhan (A-2) said in their
confessional statements that Ruben (A-6) had come to India for getting an
artificial limb fixed. Vijayendran (PW-111) in his statement said in the second
week of April, 1991 Sivarasan introduced himself and helped Vijayendran
(PW-111) in delivering his letters to his relatives in Sri Lanka and then
getting back replies from them. Sivarasan requested Vijayendran (PW-111) to
accompany Ruben (A-6) to Jaipur to fix an artificial limb as he had no left
leg. When Vijayendran (PW-111) said to Sivarasan that doctors were available at
Madras itself his reply was that in India Dr. Sethi, who was based in Jaipur,
was a specialist in this field and he wanted the treatment from him only.
Sivarasan gave Rs.15,000/- in cash to Vijayendran (PW-111), which was to meet
the medical and conveyance expenses. Vijayendran (PW-111) reserved three seats
in G.T. Express going to Delhi in his own name that of Suresh Kumar, which was
one of the alias of Ruben (A-6), and other attendant Ajas Ali.
Sivarasan
asked Vijayendran (PW-111) to use his name as Maharaja which was his pseudo
name used by him in his poems.
In
Jaipur they stayed in Golden Lodge where they had arrived on 19.5.1991. On
22.5.1991 Vijayendran (PW-111) said he read the news of Rajiv Gandhi's
assassination at Sriperumbudur. He said they were in panic as they could be
suspected being Tamilians and in that situation Ruben (A-6) suggested to vacate
the lodge. On 23rd evening they shifted to Vikram Lodge. Vijayendran (PW-111)
said he met Rajan, manager of the lodge, and asked him to assist him for taking
treatment for Ruben (A-6) as the date of appointment by Dr. Sethi was given for
13th June only. He and Ajas Ali came back to Madras on 27.5.1991, having left
Jaipur on 24.5.1991, while Ruben (A-6) stayed in Jaipur. On the morning of
29.5.1991 Vijayendran (PW-111) saw the picture of Sivarasan published in the
English newspaper and he was stunned. Ruben (A-6) was arrested at Jaipur on
26.5.1991.
On
account of the association with Santhan (A-2) and Sivarasan prosecution seeks
to draw inference that he was a member of the conspiracy and that the real
purpose of his going to Jaipur was to arrange a hide out and that the
ostensible purpose was given as fixing an artificial limb.
It is
difficult to accept the version advanced by the prosecution as Ruben (A-6) had
admittedly lost his one leg.
Vijayendran
(PW-111) supports the case that Ruben (A-6) did in fact go to Jaipur for fixing
an artificial leg and in particular for the treatment to be given by Dr. Sethi,
a renown person in the line. Simply because Sivarasan was looking after the
interest of Ruben (A-6) and meeting the expenses would certainly not impart him
with the knowledge of the conspiracy and even if he had a knowledge there is no
evidence to show that he agreed or was a party to the object of the conspiracy.
Charge against Ruben (A-6) under Section 3(3) of TADA has to be dismissed. The
other individual charge against him is under Section 14 of the Foreigners Act,
1946 since he came to India clandestinely through illicit channel and without
any valid document. His conviction and sentence have not been challenged on
this charge.
Kangasabapathy
(A-7) and Athirai (A-8) -------------------------------------- Kangasabapathy
(A-7) is a Sri Lankan Tamil and an LTTE helper. His son Radha, who was LTTE
Area Commander, Jaffna, died in an encounter with the Sri Lankan army in 1987.
Kangasabapathy (A-7) was also thus called Radhya Iyyah. He along with Athirai
(A-8), a hard-core LTTE militant girl, came to India in the last week of April,
1991 in an LTTE boat from Sri Lanka. Athirai (A8) in her confession said that
she got specialised training in LTTE camps. She was assigned the work of
gathering intelligence on the operations and movements of Sri Lankan army and
other rival organisations like EPRLF, PLOT, etc. Reports, she prepared, would
be handed over by her to Mathiah, another LTTE leader. Athirai (A-8) was
introduced to Kangasabapathy (A-7) by Pottu Amman some time in March, 1991. She
was told that she would go to Delhi with Kangasabapathy (A-7) for making
arrangements for her stay under the guise of learning Hindi or computer. From
this she understood that the purpose of this arrangement was to collect
information about some targetted places in Delhi relating to the work of the
organisation and that if LTTE people came to Delhi they could stay in her house
without causing any suspicion.
There
is nothing to show that she even had the inkling of the object of conspiracy.
Kangasabapathy (A-7) was having a passport (MO-558) issued by Sri Lankan
Government but he did not use the passport to come to India through authorised
channel. After arriving at Kodiakarai on Indian soil Kangasabapathy (A-7) and
Athirai (A-8) came to Madras to stay with Jayakumari (PW-109), a relative of
Kangasabapathy (A-7). Sivarasan met them in the house of Jayakumari (PW-109).
From this fact prosecution seeks to contend that only because Kangasabapathy
(A-7) and Athirai (A-8) were to accomplish the object of conspiracy Sivarasan
met them and took care of them and he was also to meet their expenses in India.
Simply because Sivarasan was looking after them is not enough to infer their
being members of the criminal conspiracy. From 7.5.1991 till 1.7.1991 Athirai
(A-8) stayed with P. Thirumathi Vimala (PW-62). She was persuaded by Sivarasan
to let Athirai (A8) stay with her.
Sivarasan
had brought P. Thirumathi Vimala (PW62) a letter from her mother in Sri Lanka.
On 16.5.1991 Sivarasan gave Rs.10,000/- to Athirai (A-8) for expenses. He also gave
Rs.20,000/- to Kangasabapathy (A-7) and asked him to go to Delhi to arrange an
accommodation. On 20.5.1991 Kangasabapathy (A-7) accompanied by one Vanan went
to Delhi and arranged a house. From this also an inference is sought to be
drawn by the prosecution to which also we are unable to agree, that it was
Sivarasan who sent Kangasabapathy (A-7) to Delhi one day before the object of
the conspiracy was to be accomplished to fix a house there as otherwise there
was no necessity for Kangasabapathy (A-7) to go to Delhi. From the notebook
(MO-159) and diary (MO-180) of Sivarasan payments made to Kangasabapathy (A-7)
and Athirai (A-8) are recorded. Kangasabapathy (A-7) came back from Delhi on
30.5.1991. In spite of the advice of Jayakumari (PW-109) he did not get his
name registered with the police as refugee from Sri Lanka. It was said that
this was on account of his fear of exposure of his identity. When Jayakumari
(PW-109) asked Kangasabapathy (A-7) about Sivarasan whose photograph had been
published in the newspapers he told her that it was her imagination and
Sivarasan was not involved. He told Jayakumari (PW-109) that if she betrayed
Kangasabapathy (A-7) and Athirai (A-8) God will not forgive her. There is a
wireless message (Exh.P-407) from Sivarasan to Pottu Amman dated 14.6.1991
where Sivarasan informed Pottu Amman that there was no news of Kangasabapathy
(A-7), who had gone to Delhi. Similarly when P. Thirumathi Vimala (PW-62) asked
Athirai (A-8) about Sivarasan whose photo had been published, she said that
Sivarasan was not connected with the assassination of Rajiv Gandhi and that he
was a newspaper reporter and that he might have gone to Sriperumbudur to cover
the public meeting and his photo might have been published by mistake.
Kangasabapathy
(A-7) and Athirai (A-8) went to New Delhi by train on 1.7.1991. They were seen
off by Santhan (A-2) where they were arrested. Prosecution has not examined
Vanan with whom Vijayanandan (A-5) had also stayed and no explanation is
forthcoming as to why it was not done. From the facts narrated above
prosecution seeks to draw inference that both Kangasabapathy (A-7) and Athirai
(A-8) were members of the conspiracy. It is difficult to reach any such
conclusion. The evidence only shows their association with Sivarasan and
nothing more. Charges under Section 3(3) and 3(4) of TADA against
Kangasabapathy (A-7) and Athirai (A-8) fail and they like other co-accused are
acquitted of these charges. There is nothing on the record to show that
Kangasabapathy (A-7) and Athirai (A-8) went to Delhi in order to fix a hide out
for screening the accused involved in the assassination of Rajiv Gandhi. Charge
under Section 212 against both of them must also fail and they are acquitted.
However, charge punishable under Section 14 of the Foreigners Act, 1946 is
sustained against both of them as they clandestinely came to India through
illicit channels without any valid travel document. Their conviction and
sentence under Section 14 of the Foreigners Act is upheld.
Robert
Payas (A-9) ------------------- Jayakumar (A-10) ---------------- Shanthi
(A-11) -------------- Robert Payas (A-9) and Jayakumar (A-10) are Sri Lankan
Tamils. Shanthi (A-11) is Indian Tamil, married to Jayakumar (A10). Wife of
Robert Payas (A-9) is the sister of Jayakumar (A10). From the confession of
Robert Payas (A-9) and other evidence the prosecution seeks to contend that :-
a) he had knowledge about the conspiracy to kill Rajiv Gandhi;
b)
since Shanthi (A-11) was an Indian Tamil this group was sent by Pottu Amman to
go to Tamil Nadu to fix a house for Sivarasan and other members of the
conspiracy to accomplish the object of conspiracy inasmuch as Robert Payas's
(A-9) one and half months son had been killed in an action by IPKF and he had
developed great hatred towards IPKF and Rajiv Gandhi. He viewed Rajiv Gandhi as
responsible for his sufferings and of all other Tamilians in Sri Lanka by IPKF;
c)
this group of Robert Payas (A-9), Jayakumar (A-10) and Shanthi (A-11) was
allowed to come to India without paying any tax to LTTE as they had agreed to
take houses at Madras to accommodate LTTE militants to accomplish the object of
conspiracy;
d)
they came to India in the guise of refugees but left the refugee camp and
immediately came to Madras; e) Porur House was taken in the name of Jayakumar
(A-10) where wireless set was installed by Kanthan and Nishanthan, who were
communicating through this wireless set with LTTE headquarters in Jaffna;
f)
Murugan (A-3) was communicating with LTTE headquarters through this wireless
set;
g)
Robert Payas (A-9) was associated with Sivarasan closely with a view to achieve
the object of conspiracy as Sivarasan was meeting all the expenses of Robert
Payas (A-9);
h)
Porur House was used for accommodating LTTE militants, who came to India for
accomplishing the object of conspiracy;
i)
Robert Payas (A-9) burst crackers on 22.5.1991 after the assassination of Rajiv
Gandhi;
j)
while staying in his house he was anxiously waiting for the news from Sivarasan
on 23.5.1991;
k) his
association with Sivarasan was continued even after assassination of Rajiv
Gandhi;
l)
Shankar (A-4) tried to contact him on phone on 23.5.1991 though without
success; and m) on 27.5.1991 Robert Payas's (A-9) family with Santhan (A-2)
went to Trichendur to evade arrest. They took bus tickets in assumed names but
did not stay there and came back to Madras.
From
all these circumstances even if taken to be correct it is difficult to conclude
that Robert Payas (A-9) was member of the conspiracy. His association with
Sivarasan or even his knowledge about the conspiracy cannot make him a
conspirator. It is the agreement which is the sine qua non of the offence of
conspiracy. Suspicion howsoever strong does not take the place of proof.
Wireless messages are transmitted and received in coded language. It is no
body's case that Robert Payas (A-9) knew the nature or the contents of the
messages. It must not be lost sight of that LTTE had various activities and all
LTTE men were not necessarily involved in achieving the object of conspiracy.
Evidence
shows that other LTTE activists who had come to India were also engaged in
arranging houses for various purposes like housing the injured LTTE cadre,
storing of medicines, etc.
In the
case of Jayakumar (A-10) it is alleged that he fixed a house in Kodungiyar for
his family to stay which was taken in the name of Ramaswamy, father of Shanthi
(A-11). This house was in fact for the stay of Sivarasan.
It is
alleged by the prosecution that it could be inferred that Jayakumar (A-10) and
Shanthi (A-11) were members of the conspiracy having the object to kill Rajiv
Gandhi from the following circumstances that:- a) they were selected by Pottu
Amman along with Robert Payas (A-9) to go to India to hire houses for the stay
of LTTE militants and they did not pay any tax to LTTE for coming to India;
b)
after Jayakumar (A-10) had taken a separate house in fact for the stay of
Sivarasan, he in the first week of May, 1991 brought Subha, Dhanu and Nero to
that house;
c)
Sivarasan was meeting the expenses of Jayakumar (A-10) since Jayakumar (A-10)
and Shanthi (A-11) were not having any income;
d)
Sivarasan paid Rs.20,000 as advance for renting a shop in the name of Shanthi
(A-11) for her to run a coffee grinding shop. The machine was purchased for
Rs.15,000/-, payment of which was also made by Sivarasan. He also made payment
for registration of a telephone under OYT scheme in the shop in the name of
Shanthi (A-11) to be used for conspiratorial work; e) Jayakumar (A-10) and
Shanthi (A-11) were aware of "the dangerous mission" for which
Sivarasan had come to India;
f)
Jayakumar (A-10) would have definitely told his wife Shanthi (A-11) about the
purpose for which Sivarasan, Subha and Dhanu had come to the house;
g)
even having the knowledge that Subha and Dhanu had been brought by Sivarasan
with the planning of an assassination Jayakumar (A-10) and Shanthi (A-11) still
continued to associate with Sivarasan and accommodated him in their house;
h) it
was in the house of Jayakumar (A-10) that Sivarasan changed his dress to white
kurta-pyjama and from where he went to the house of Vijayan (A-12) which was
nearby to pick up Subha and Dhanu before going to Sriperumbudur;
i)
before that a day or so earlier Shanthi (A-11) had stitched a cloth pouch for
concealing the pistol of Sivarasan;
j) it was
in the house of Jayakumar (A-10) on 7.5.1991 that Sivarasan informed Santhan
(A-2) that he was going to help two LTTE tigresses at Sriperumbudur to kill
Rajiv Gandhi;
k)
when Sivarasan left the house of Jayakumar (A-10) on 21.5.1991 for
Sriperumbudur Santhan (A-2) was present in the house;
l)
Jayakumar (A-10) and Shanthi (A-11) continued to associate with Sivarasan even
after the assassination of Rajiv Gandhi;
m) on
22.5.1991 Sivarasan, Subha and Nalini (A-1) came to the house of Jayakumar
(A-10) when he told Jayakumar (A-10) that the job was done and that Rajiv
Gandhi was murdered by Dhanu;
n)
even after having come to know that Dhanu had killed Rajiv Gandhi by becoming
human bomb Jayakumar (A-10) and Shanthi (A-11) accommodated Sivarasan, Subha
and Nalini (A-1) in their house;
o)
after the assassination of Rajiv Gandhi Jayakumar (A-10) and Sivarasan dug a
pit in the kitchen in the house and concealed arms, ammunitions and other
articles and things belonging to Sivarasan;
p) it
is only because Jayakumar (A-10) was involved in the assassination of Rajiv
Gandhi along with Sivarasan, Subha and Dhanu that he helped Sivarasan in
concealing the incriminating articles; and
q)
Shanthi (A-11) would certainly have known all this as the pit was dug in the
kitchen where she must have been working all the time.
There
is nothing on record to show that Jayakumar (A-10) and Shanthi (A-11) knew of
the "dangerous mission" or for whose assassination Subha and Dhanu
were brought by Sivarasan. True the couple was in dire financial needs and with
the promise of financial help and to start some business in India away from the
turmoil in Sri Lanka they agreed to come to India and to hire a house for LTTE
militants to stay and they did rent a house where Sivarasan could stay. But they
did not know what Sivarasan was upto.
From
all these circumstances it is difficult to infer any agreement to make Robert
Payas (A-9), Jayakumar (A-10) and Shanthi (A-11) as members of the conspiracy
having the object to kill Rajiv Gandhi. As a matter of fact there is hardly any
circumstance against Shanthi (A-11) to make her a member of the conspiracy.
These accused may have a strong feeling against Rajiv Gandhi and they may have
strong suspicion that Sivarasan, Subha and Dhanu had come for some dangerous
mission but there is no evidence to infer that that would make them members of
the conspiracy. It is correct that Jayakumar (A-10) harboured Sivarasan, Nalini
(A-1) and Subha after having come to know their involvement in the
assassination of Rajiv Gandhi but from that again it cannot be inferred that he
was a member of the conspiracy.
No
charge can be levied against Shanthi (A-11) of harbouring merely because she
was living in the house with her husband Jayakumar (A-10). Charges under
Section 3(3) and Section 3(4) of TADA against Robert Payas (A-9), Jayakumar
(A-10) and Shanthi (A-11) are not made out and their conviction and sentence
under these charges are set aside. Charge under Section 212 IPC is, however,
made out against Jayakumar (A-10) but not against Shanthi (A-11). She is
acquitted of this charge while conviction and sentence of Jayakumar (A-10) is
maintained. Jayakumar (A-10) and Shanthi (A-11) had also been charged for an
offence punishable under Section 25(1-B)(a) of the Arms Act, 1959 as they were
found in unauthorized possession of arms and ammunition without a valid
licence, concealed in a pit dug in the kitchen in the house of Shanthi (A-11).
No such charge can be fastened on Shanthi (A-11) though it has to be upheld
against Jayakumar (A-10). His conviction and sentence, therefore, under Section
25(1-B)(a) of Arms Act is maintained. Shanthi (A-11) is acquitted of the charge
of offence under Section 25(1-B)(a) of the Arms Act and her conviction and
sentence set aside.
Vijayan
(A-12) --------------- Selvaluxmi (A-13) ----------------- Bhaskaran (A-14)
---------------- Vijayan (A-12) is Sri Lankan Tamil and a helper of LTTE.
Selvaluxmi (A-13) is his wife and Bhaskaran (A-14) is the father of Selvaluxmi
(A-13). Selvaluxmi (A-13) and Bhaskaran (A-14) are Indian Tamils. Vijayan
(A-12) has made a confession. According to prosecution physical manifestation
of their being members of criminal conspiracy was when they came to India on
12.9.1990 and were sent by Sivarasan at the instance of Pottu Amman. They came
to India without paying any tax to LTTE as they had agreed to take a house on
rent to accommodate LTTE militants coming to India to accomplish the object of
conspiracy. They came to India in the guise of refugees. While they were
staying at refugee camp at Tuticorin Sivarasan met them there. In April, 1991
Vijayan (A12) was directed by Sivarasan to go to Madras and to fix a house in
an secluded place on the outskirts of Madras. As per direction Vijayan (A-12)
rented a house. Vijayan (A-12), Selvaluxmi (A-13) and Bhaskaran (A-14) moved in
that house in the last week of April, 1991.
All
the expenses for paying advance rent, etc. were met by Sivarasan. On 2.5.1991
Sivarasan brought Nero, Subha and Dhanu to this house. Arivu (A-18) purchased a
12 volt car battery on 3.5.1991 for operating the wireless set installed in the
house. With this Nero started communicating with the LTTE leaders in Jaffna.
This wireless station installed in the house of Vijayan (A-12) is of Sivarasan
being station No. 910 and was communicating with Station No. 91 in Jaffna of
Pottu Amman. Thus the prosecution alleges that the house of Vijayan (A-12) was
used by Sivarasan to keep informed LTTE leaders in Jaffna through wireless
messages as to the progress made by him in the execution of the object of
conspiracy. Purchase of two cycles by Vijayan (A-12) is also being taken as
part of the conspiracy as these were used by Subha, Dhanu and others for
meeting the members of the conspiracy. While Sivarasan stayed in the house of
Jayakumar (A10) Subha and Dhanu were staying in the house of Vijayan (A-12). As
to why Subha and Dhanu were staying in the house of Vijayan (A12) it was said
that it was on account of the fact that both Selvaluxmi (A-13) and Bhaskaran
(A-14) were Indian Tamils and as such stay of Subha and Dhanu would not raise
any suspicion in the minds of the neighbours. On 16/17.5.1991 Vijayan (A-12),
Sivarasan and Nero on the instruction of Sivarasan had dug a pit in the kitchen
in the house of Vijayan (A-12) for the purpose of concealing the wireless set,
its accessories and other materials used by Sivarasan. This showed according to
the prosecution that Vijayan (A-12), Selvaluxmi (A-13) and Bhaskaran (A-14)
were not genuine refugees and the conduct of Vijayan (A-12) would show his
knowledge of the object of conspiracy and the purpose for which Subha and Dhanu
were brought to India by Sivarasan. It is also alleged that the fact of
concealment of wireless set in a pit dug in the kitchen could not have been
done without the knowledge of Selvaluxmi (A-13) who used to cook food for her
family and for Subha and Dhanu. On 21.5.1991 Sivarasan came to the house of
Vijayan (A-12) and asked Nero to send the wireless message to Jaffna. He also
gave instructions to Subha and Dhanu and left the house. At about 12.30 p.m.
Sivarasan dressed in a white kurtapyjama came and took Subha and Dhanu with
him. When Sivarasan asked Vijayan (A-12) to bring an auto-rikshaw for him,
Subha and Dhanu to go, he specified A-12 not to bring the auto-rikshaw near the
house and this was done so that the house where they were staying be not
identified. Prosecution then alleges that on 21.5.1991 Vijayan (A-12),
Selvaluxmi (A-13) and Bhaskaran (A-14) were aware that Sivarasan, Subha and
Dhanu had gone for attending Rajiv Gandhi's meeting at Sriperumbudur. On
22.5.1991 Sivarasan came to the house of Vijayan (A-12) and told him that
"the work was finished and that Rajiv Gandhi had been killed". This
has come in the confession of Vijayan (A-12).
Prosecution
poses a question as to why Sivarasan should tell Vijayan (A-12) that the work
was finished and provides the answer that it could be so only because Vijayan
(A-12) was aware of the object of conspiracy and he was anxiously waiting for
the result from Sivarasan and also that he was fully aware that Rajiv Gandhi
was killed by Dhanu by becoming a human bomb. The fact that Vijayan (A-12),
Selvaluxmi (A-13) and Bhaskaran (A-14) continued to be associated with
Sivarasan and Subha even after the assassination of Rajiv Gandhi and
accommodated them would be another circumstance to show their knowledge about
the object of conspiracy. They are also guilty of having harboured Sivarasan
and Subha knowing fully well that they were the persons involved in the killing
of Rajiv Gandhi.
After
the assassination Sivarasan was staying in the house of Vijayan (A-12) along
with Subha and regularly sending messages to Pottu Amman through wireless
explaining the developments. Association of Bhaskaran (A-14) is also alleged
but this did not end with the harbouring of Sivarasan and Subha as he made
efforts to get another accommodation for the hiding of Sivarasan and Subha for
which he sought the help of his relative N. Chokkanathan (PW-97). It is also
the case of the prosecution that Bhaskaran (A-14), who was all along staying in
the house of Vijayan (A-12) and Selvaluxmi (A-13), was also fully aware that
Sivarasan, Subha and Dhanu had gone to Sriperumbudur and killed Rajiv Gandhi
and when particularly Dhanu did not return. Relying on the confession of
Vijayan (A-12) lastly the prosecution said that one or two days after 23.6.1991
Santhan (A-2) came with deceased accused Suresh Master and took Sivarasan and
Subha. On 23.6.1991 Vijayan (A12), Selvaluxmi (A-13) and Bhaskaran (A-14) went
to Tuticorin and again returned to Madras after a week. While Vijayan (A-12)
and Bhaskaran (A-14) were arrested on 8.7.1991 Selvaluxmi (A-13) was arrested
on 16.5.1992.
We
have carefully gone through the evidence against Vijayan (A-12), Selvaluxmi
(A-13) and Bhaskaran (A-14) and the submissions of the prosecution as to how
they are members of the conspiracy with the object to kill Rajiv Gandhi. The
evidence at the most merely shows that they associated with Sivarasan. The
evidence that they had knowledge of the conspiracy is lacking. Their knowledge
about the murder of Rajiv Gandhi by Sivarasan, Subha and Dhanu was acquired by
them only after Rajiv Gandhi was killed. As we have repeatedly said in any case
mere knowledge of the existence of conspiracy is not enough. One has to agree
to the object of conspiracy to be guilty of the offence under Section 120A IPC.
Vijayan (A-12) would not know the nature of the messages which were transmitted
or received from the wireless set installed in his house as all these were in
coded language. Two code sheets were given by Murugan (A-3) to Padma (A-21) to
be kept in safe custody.
Vijayan
(A-12), Selvaluxmi (A-13) and Bhaskaran (A-14) have been charged for offence
under Section 3(3) of TADA and have been jointly charged for offence under Section
3(4) TADA but these charges must fail and they are acquitted of these charges.
Then Vijayan (A-12), Selvaluxmi (A-13) and Bhaskaran (A-14) are charged for an
offence under Section 212 IPC for having harboured Sivarasan Subha and Nero in
order to screen them from legal punishment knowing that they had committed
murder of Rajiv Gandhi and others. They all have been convicted and sentenced.
Vijayan (A-12) and Selvaluxmi (A-13) are also charged for offence under Section
6(1A) of Wireless Telegraphy Act, 1933 for having in unauthorised possession of
unlicensed wireless transmitter used for transmitting messages by Sivarasan and
Nero using code sheets for such transmission to other conspirators residing in
Sri Lanka, namely, absconding accused Prabhakaran and Pottu Amman and they have
been convicted and sentenced of this offence. Though in our view Vijayan (A-12)
and Bhaskaran (A-14) have been rightly convicted and sentenced under these
charges but these charges cannot stand against Selvaluxmi (A-13). All members
of the household cannot be charged like this without more. A-13, being the wife
of A-12, was living with her husband A-12 and merely on that account knowledge
and intention cannot be atributed to her, particularly when no overt act is
alleged against her.
She is
acquitted of all these charges and her conviction and sentence set aside.
Shanmugavadivelu
(A-15) ----------------------- Shanmugavadivelu (A-15) is a Sri Lankan Tamil.
He is living in India since 1987. As to how he was a member of the conspiracy
with the object to kill Rajiv Gandhi the prosecution relies on the following
circumstances:-
1.
From the papers seized from Ruben (A-6) at Jaipur on 20.6.1991 in one of the
folios the name 'Thambi Anna' is written with telephone number 864249, which in
fact is the telephone number of Shanmugavadivelu (A-15).
2.
Shanmugavadivelu (A-15) was known to Santhan (A-2) and Sivarasan in early 1990
when Shanmugavadivelu (A-15) helped Santhan (A-2) to get admission in Madras
Institute of Engineering Technology.
3.
When Sivarasan came to India in a group of nine on 1.5.1991 he brought a letter
dated 27.4.1991 (Exh.P-209) addressed to P. Thirumathi Vimala (PW-62) from her
mother.
To
locate the house of P. Thirumathi Vimala (PW-62) Shanmugavadivelu (A15) took
Santhan (A-2) and Sivarasan to her house in the first week of May, 1991. In his
confession Shanmugavadivelu (A-15) said that P. Thirumathi Vimala (PW62) was
teacher of his son in a school and was at that time living in the same colony.
P. Thirumathi Vimala (PW-62) says that Shanmugavadivelu (A-15) was her distant
relative and came from the same place in Sri Lanka.
4.
Arrival of Santhan (A-2) to India in May, 1991 was known to Shanmugavadivelu
(A-15) even in April, 1991 and that would be so from the statement of P. Veerappan
(PW-102) when Shanmugavadivelu (A-15) approached him towards the end of April,
1991 to send Santhan (A-2) abroad.
Further
that Shanmugavadivelu (A-15) represented that Santhan (A-2) was Indian national
when he knew that he was a Sri Lankan Tamil.
5.
Both P. Veerappan (PW-102) and Vamadevan (PW-114) have stated that they
demanded Rs.80,000/from Shanmugavadivelu (A-15) for sending Santhan (A-2)
abroad.
6.
During the trial in the Designated Court, Santhan (A-2) filed an application
for return of the amount of Rs.80,000/- paid by him through Shanmugavadivelu
(A-15) to P. Veerappan (PW-102). On this application Shanmugavadivelu (A-15)
made an endorsement that he had no objection to the return of said amount to
Santhan (A-2).
7.
Shanmugavadivelu (A-15) was keeping money given to him by Santhan (A-2) and
giving him back as and when required by him. That was before the assassination
of Rajiv Gandhi.
8.
Even after the photo of Rajiv Gandhi was published in the newspaper in
connection with the murder of Rajiv Gandhi Shanmugavadivelu (A-15) continued to
associate with Santhan (A-2) who was close associate of Sivarasan. One week
after the murder of Rajiv Gandhi Santhan (A-2) came to Shanmugavadivelu (A-15)
and took Rs.3,10,000/- from him.
One
day he again came and took Rs.40,000/leaving the balance amount with
Shanmugavadivelu (A-15). By this time photo of Sivarasan was published in the
newspapers and when Shanmugavadivelu (A-15) inquired from Santhan (A-2) about
Sivarasan he told him not to worry about Sivarasan and left.
On
this count it is alleged that Shanmugavadivelu (A-15) was acting as financier
of the LTTE organization.
9.
Athirai (A-8) was regularly visiting Shanmugavadivelu (A-15) which proves her
association with Shanmugavadivelu (A-15), Santhan (A-2) and Sivarasan.
In his
confession Shanmugavadivelu (A-15) does not talk of the fact that he approached
P. Veerappan (PW-102) and Vamadevan (PW-114) for sending Santhan (A-2) abroad.
It is wrong on the part of the prosecution to allege on the basis of evidence
that Athirai (A-8) had been regularly visiting Shanmugavadivelu (A-15). There
is no such evidence. There is nothing in the evidence to suggest even remotely
that when Santhan (A-2) asked Shanmugavadivelu (A-15) to keep certain amount
with him and took that amount back on certain dates Shanmugavadivelu (A-15) had
even an inkling that there was any conspiracy afoot or that Santhan (A2) and
Sivarasan were members of that conspiracy. It is difficult to accept the
prosecution case that arrival of Santhan (A-2) was known to Shanmugavadivelu
(A-15) even before his arrival in India. When P. Veerappan (PW-102) said that
it was in the end of April, 1991 that Shanmugavadivelu (A-15) approached him it
could be 1st week of May, 1991 as well. P. Veerappan (PW-102) was not keeping
any record of the visit of Shanmugavadivelu (A-15) to him and his statement in
court was recorded years later.
It
appears to us that prosecution is looking at every circumstance with the
proverbial jaundiced eye. From what the prosecution alleges no case whatsoever
of Shanmugavadivelu (A-15) being member of the conspiracy has been made out. We
do not find any basis in the prosecution to prosecute Shanmugavadivelu (A-15)
for the offence alleged against him. Rather evidence shows his and his wife's
hatred for LTTE and its men. Apart from the charge of conspiracy
Shanmugavadivelu (A-15) has also been charged for offence under Section 3(3) of
TADA which again stands failed against him. He is acquitted of all the charges
and his conviction and sentence set aside.
Ravi
(A-16) ------------ Suseendran (A-17) ----------------- Following circumstances
have been alleged by the prosecution to make Ravi (A-16) and Suseendran (A-17)
members of the conspiracy :-
1.
Both Ravi (A-16) and Suseendran (A-17) though Indian Tamils, became strong LTTE
activists. Ravi (A-16) had been a frequent visitor to Sri Lanka to meet LTTE
leaders there. Because of the atrocities committed by IPKF both developed
hatred against it.
2.
Ravi (A-16) was indoctrinated by Pottu Amman, who asked him to go to India and
make arrangements for initiating armed revolution in Tamil Nadu. Ravi (A-16)
involved Suseendran (A-17) in his attempt to start armed revolution with the
support of LTTE.
3.
Suseendran (A-17) started collecting youths and they were taken to Jaffna for
training by LTTE for the purpose of constituting a force for armed revolution
in India.
4.
Once when in Sri Lanka, Ravi (A-16) was introduced to Sivarasan by Pottu Amman,
who told him that he should keep close contacts with Sivarasan.
Pottu
Amman also made reference to an important event that was going to take place in
Tamil Nadu for which he said role of Ravi (A-16) should be a prominent one.
5.
While Ravi (A-16), Suseendran (A-17) and Sivarasan were waiting in Sri Lanka
for a boat to go to India, Ravi (A-16) pointedly asked if it was Rajiv Gandhi,
Sivarasan did not give any reply directly but Sivarasan had uttered words in
such a fashion as to confirm the suspicion of Ravi (A-16) that target was Rajiv
Gandhi.
6.
Ravi (A-16) was in touch with Sivarasan, who also provided finance to him.
7.
Ravi (A-16) was also given the task of finding airport security by Sivarasan on
the arrival of a VIP there. In March, 1991 Ravi (A-16) asked Sivarasan that
three months had gone by when they arrived from Sri Lanka but nothing has been
done about the work mentioned by Pottu Amman. Reply of Sivarasan was "we
should not go in search of target and that the target should come to us"
and further "it may take place in near future if election is
declared". 8. On 10.5.1991 Ravi (A-16) was at Kodiakkarai where Murugan
(A-3) also came and another LTTE helper Chokkan was also present. When Chokkan
asked Murugan (A-3) in presence of Ravi (A-16) as to "why the work of
Sivarasan has not yet been completed". To this Murugan (A-3) answered
"how could that not be completed. It has to take place".
9. On
the night of 21.5.1991 Ravi (A-16) was sleeping in the hut opposite to the
house of Shanmugham (DA) at Kodiakkarai. In the mid night he was told by a
servant of Shanmugham that Rajiv Gandhi had died in a bomb blast in Madras and
with him 30 others also died and that a message has been received that
Shanmugham and others should not remain there.
10.
Ravi (A-16) and Suseendran (A-17) harboured Subha and Sivarasan after assassination
of Rajiv Gandhi knowing that they had committed the offence of murder. Ravi
(A-16) was making all attempts for Sivarasan and Subha to escape from India
after the assassination of Rajiv Gandhi.
11.
Ravi (A-16) went to Sri Lanka in September, 1991 and came back with arms and
ammunition and other articles given to him by Pottu Amman. Some of the arms and
ammunition he handed over to Suseendran (A-17).
From
all these factors prosecution seeks to infer that Ravi (A-16) and Suseendran
(A-17) had knowledge of the object of conspiracy, had agreed to the same and
were thus members of the conspiracy. At one point of time Ravi (A-16) in his
confession did say that he had a strong suspicion that the target was Rajiv
Gandhi but that would certainly not make him a member of the conspiracy. In
wireless message dated 7.5.1991 sent by Sivarasan to Pottu Amman he
categorically stated that only three persons, namely, he, Subha and Dhanu knew
about the object of conspiracy.
Association,
however, strong of Ravi (A-16) with Sivarasan and between Ravi (A-16) and
Suseendran (A-17) could not make them members of the conspiracy without more.
As
regards attempts of Ravi (A-16) and Suseendran (A-17) for creation of a
separate armed force in Tamil Nadu they have already been tried in CC 7/92 in
the Designated Court No. 2 along with others and acquitted of the charge of
conspiracy but convicted under Section 5 of TADA. The confession made by
Suseendran (A-17) and Ravi (A-16) in CC 7/92 and the charges framed against
them were produced during the course of hearing of this reference and the
position in brief is as under:
In
C.C. 7/92 there was a general charge of conspiracy against 32 accused including
Ravi (A-16) and Suseendran (A-17), who were arraigned as accused Nos. 2 and 3
in CC 7/92. The charge was of conspiracy of doing illegal acts, viz., (1) to
create a force in the name of Tamil Nadu Retrieval Force to separate Tamil Nadu
from the Union of India and to strike terror in the country by threatening the
lawfully established Government and to kill people who had taken oath to
safeguard the sovereignty, unity and integrity of India; (2) to instigate and
advise people to go and get arms training in Sri Lanka for preparing plan of
establishing the force and building up of arms and ammunition having brought
them from Sri Lanka without licence and in contravention of various enactments
in force in India; and (3) to give refuge to terrorist and in this offence of
conspiracy they did commit various illegal acts under TADA, Arms Act, Explosive
Substances Act, Arms Act, Wireless & Telegraphy Act, Passport Act and
Emigration Act.
Individual
charges against Ravi (A-16) were that (1) he recruited co-accused numbering
eight, he himself went to Sri Lanka, got training in arms through Pottu Amman,
helped in organizing Tamil Nadu Retrieval Force, assisted co-accused by
arranging houses, setting up wireless sets at Dindigul, was found in possession
of arms and ammunitions, thus committed various terrorist acts punishable under
TADA; (2) that he along with other co-accused clandestinely came to India in
LTTE boat with bombs and ammunition; and (3) that he went to Jaffna without
valid passport for getting training in wireless there.
In the
confession made on 12.12.1991 by Ravi (A16) in that case, he said as under:
In
June 1986, he went to Sri Lanka. He was given training for 3 1/2 months in arms
and ammunition. In August 1987 he is in India in his uncle's house at
Madipakkam and had joined a school to continue his studies. He, however, keeps
on going to LTTE office at Adyar and helping Kittu @ Krishankumar, an LTTE
activist. He was put in house arrest in 1988 along with Kittu in a lodge in
Madras Central Prison. Then he was taken to IPKF camp in Sri Lanka. After his
release from there, he met LTTE leader "Santhan" who was in-charge of
Intelligence Wing who told him that if he could bring young people from Tamil
Nadu, they will be given training in arms. He gave him letter in February 1990.
He comes back to India to Salem and meets Kiruban, another LTTE activist. On
that letter being given, he got Rs.50,000/-. He met Suseendran (A-17) and asked
him to recruit persons for arms training to which Suseendran (A-17) agreed.
With
Suseendran (A-17) and eight (8) others, he again goes to Sri Lanka and they are
given training in arms and ammunition. Since war had started, he had to stay in
Sri Lanka for 5 months. During his training, he met Pottu Amman, Chief of LTTE
Intelligence Wing who instigated him for armed revolution. These 10 people,
i.e., he, Suseendran (A-17) and 8 others resolve to form Tamil National
Retrieval Troops under his leadership. He and Suseendran (A-17) were given
training in wireless as well. In December 1990, he returns to India in LTTE
boat with Suseendran (A-17) and others including Sivarasan who told him to meet
him near Devi Theatre at Madras. When he met Sivarasan, he gave him
Rs.50,000/-. On various dates Sivarasan gave him a total sum of Rs.6,00,000/-.
He sent more persons for arms training to Sri Lanka. After the assassination of
Rajiv Gandhi, Sivarasan met him at his Aunt's (Logamatha) house at B-72, MI
Colony Phase II, Agasthiya Nagar, Villivakkam. Sivarasan asked him to protect
Suba and to keep her in a safe place. He sent both of them through Suseendran
(A-17) to Pollachi. He talks of his other activities. Then he again went to Sri
Lanka on 23.8. 1991 when boat arrived from there.
Suseendran
(A-17) did not accompany him. He met Pottu Amman on 28.8.1991. He gave him
further arms and ammunition and also 12 gold biscuits weighing 10 tolas each.
He returned to India on 10.9.1991.
These
arms and ammunitions were unloaded in two wooden boxes and two gunny bags. On
12.11.1991 Customs, however, seized those wooden boxes and gunny bags. He
concealed gold biscuits in the bed room of motherin-law of Charles. six gold
biscuits he gave to Ganesh, an LTTE activist. He asked Suseendran (A-17) to
purchase petrol and diesel. He describes his further activities in organising
the Force and buying of a Motorcycle etc. He was arrested on 23.10.1991. Police
seized from his suitcase one 9 mm pistol, 2 magzines, 29 cartridges, knife and
cyanide capsules. On his statement, gold biscuits concealed by him were
recovered.
In his
confession also recorded on 12.12.1991, Suseendran (A-17) said as under :
He met
Ravi (A-16) in May 1990 and they talked about LTTE. Ravi (A-16) asked him if he
was ready to go to Sri Lanka for arms and ammunition training to which he
agreed. Suseendran (A-17) collected eight (8) more persons and they all 10 went
to Sri Lanka. They went to sea-shore by a Maruti Gypsy and Ambassador car of
LTTE. There LTTE boat was available to go to Sri Lanka. They were given
training in handling of arms and ammunition.
Since
war had started, they have to stay in Sri Lanka for five more months. Pottu
Amman had visited them during their training. This group of 10 resolved to form
Tamil National Retrieval Troops and decided to work under the leadership of
Ravi (A-16) for the purpose of committing terrorist acts in India and for
separation of Tamil Nadu from Indian Union. He and Ravi (A-16) were given
training in Wireless operation also. In December 1990, they returned to India
along with Sivarasan. Ravi (A-16) told him to meet at Madras after three days.
Ravi (A-16) gave him Rs.500/- and he went to Pollachi.
When he
met Ravi (A-16) he told him to collect more youngsters to send them to Sri
Lanka for arms training.
He and
one Paulraj were at Palani when Rajiv Gandhi was killed. After four days, he
came to Madras and met Ravi (A-16). Sivarasan was also there. Sivarasan told
Ravi (A-16) and him to keep safely an LTTE tigress Subha for some days. He
agreed. He went to bus stop and reserved three tickets for him, Sivarasan and
Subha. Then they left for Trichy and from there to Pollachi. They stayed at the
house of Shanmugasundaram whose wife is his distant relative. He told them that
Sivarasan and Subha were husband and wife and asked them to arrange their stay
for three days. After five days Sivarasan and Subha left for Madras. He told
about his other activities and then he said Ravi (A-16) and others left for Sri
Lanka. He bought petrol and diesel to be sent to Sri Lanka.
Rs.60,000/-
were given to him by Paulraj as directed by Ravi (A-16). He bought 1,000 litres
petrol for Rs.34,800/-. The petrol was to be smuggled to Sri Lanka. Earlier
also, petrol and diesel including explosives were smuggled to LTTE in Sri
Lanka. On the night of 10.9.1991, Ravi (A-16) and others arrived in India with
two wooden boxes and two gunny bags filled with arms and ammunition. Ravi
(A-16) asked him to conceal wooden boxes and gunny bags in the seashore. He
again bought petrol. A car was purchased. When he was in the house of
mother-in-law of Theodre Charless at Dindigul, he was arrested by the Police.
From him one cyanide capsule, Rs. 30,000/- and some personal articles were
seized.
It
would be seen that a charge under Section 212 IPC for harbouring Subha and
Sivarasan could also have been framed against Ravi (A-16) and Suseendran (A-17)
but that was not done. Question arises if provision of Section 300 of the Code
applies that bars trial of Ravi (A-16) and Suseendran (A-17) for the same
offences in the present case.
Ravi
(A-16) and Suseendran (A-17) have been separately charged in the present case
for offence under Section 3(3) and Section 3(4) of TADA. These charges fail
against them like against other co-accused and they are acquitted of the same.
Ravi (A-16) and Suseendran (A-17) have also been separately charged for offence
under Section 212 IPC and have been convicted and sentenced. Similarly they
have been separately charged for offence under Section 5 of TADA and convicted
and sentenced. That certainly could not have been done as in CC 7/92 they have
already been tried for an offence under Section 5 of TADA and convicted and
sentenced. Facts constituting the charge under Section 5 of TADA in CC 7/92 and
in the present case are the same.
Conviction
of Ravi (A-16) and Suseendran (A-17) in the present case under Section 5 of
TADA is set aside and they are acquitted of this charge. Also they have been
separately charged under Section 5 of the Explosive Substance Act and similarly
convicted and sentenced. They have then been charged for an offence punishable
under Section 25 of the Arms Act and convicted and sentenced. Mr. Natarajan,
learned counsel appearing for them, did not press his argument on the
applicability of the provision of Section 300 of the Code inasmuch as he said
that since these accused have already undergone the period of their sentence
they will not challenge their conviction under the charges under IPC, Explosive
Substance Act, Section 5 of TADA and Arms Act. In this view of the matter we
need not go into the question if Ravi (A-16) and Suseendran (A17) could have
been tried again for these charges as they have been either charged or could
have been charged in CC 7/92 which was decided on 23.1.1998. Charges of
conspiracy against both of them and others for constituting a force to separate
Tamil Nadu from the Union of India as to strike terror etc. was dismissed in CC
7/92.
Now,
In the cases of Arivu (A-18), Irumborai (A-19), Bhagyanathan (A-20), Padma
(A-21) and Suba Sundaram (A-22), following circumstances appear in evidence.
Arivu
(A-18) ------------ a) Arivu (A-18), an Indian Tamil, joined the LTTE movement
and started his propaganda work for LTTE in India and was on its pay-roll. He
came in contact with Bhagyanathan (A-20), Haribabu (DA) and he took training in
Suba Studio of Suba Sundaram (A-22).
b) He
went to Sri Lanka along with Irumborai (A-19) and Baby Subramaniam, an LTTE leader,
and while there he learnt about the atrocities committed by IPKF. He developed
great hatred towards Rajiv Gandhi, whom he held to be responsible for sending
IPKF to Sri Lanka.
c) In
March, 1991 Arivu (A-18) went to Vellore with Murugan (A-3) for LTTE work to
see Vellore Fort where Sri Lankan Tamils and LTTE personnel were detained.
According to Arivu (A-18) blasting of Vellore Fort and jail and releasing of
the militants from there was one of the LTTE acts in India.
d) In
April, 1991 on one of his visits to the house of Padma (A-21) Sivarasan asked
Arivu (A-18) if he was prepared to work for him. Arivu (A-18) agreed to work
for Sivarasan.
e)
Arivu (A-18) purchased a 12 volt car battery (MO-209) for the wireless set
which Sivarasan was to install in the house of Vijayan (A-12). Not only the
battery but for installation of wireless station Arivu (A-18) also bought wire
and other articles. While making the purchases Arivu (A-18) gave his name as
Rajan and also a false address. With this wireless set Sivarasan was contacting
LTTE headquarters in Jaffna in Sri Lanka. This battery was subsequently
recovered from the pit dug in the kitchen of the house of Vijayan (A-12).
f)
Arivu (A-18) purchased a Kawasaki Bajaj Motorcycle (MO-82) for Sivarasan to
facilitate his movements.
g) On
18.4.1991 Arivu (A-18) attended the election meeting addressed by Rajiv Gandhi
and Jayalalitha at Marina Beach, Madras. Nalini (A-1) and Murugan (A-3) also
attended that meeting.
h) On
7.5.1991 Arivu (A-18) attended the public meeting of V.P. Singh at Nandanam,
Madras where Nalini (A-1), Subha, Dhanu and Murugan (A-3) were also present. He
knew Subha and Dhanu, who were the lady tigresses from Jaffna and had been
brought by Sivarasan for his job. These two ladies were moving about with Nalini
(A-1). Attending the meeting of V.P. Singh was a dry run for some future
engagements/acts.
i)
After President's Rule was imposed in Tamil Nadu there were restrictions placed
on the movement of LTTE cadre in Tamil Nadu. Persons belonging to LTTE cadre
went underground. Arivu (A-18), however, continued his propaganda work for LTTE
with the material that was kept in a room occupied by Baby Subramaniam in the
house of Sankari (PW-210). These materials were removed by Arivu (A-18) with
the help of Bhagyanathan (A-20) and deceased accused Haribabu in the month of
April, 1991 to the house of Radhakrishnan (PW231), a friend of Arivu (A-18).
These were subsequently recovered and seized during the course of investigation
and among the articles so recovered there was one black book (MO-609), which
depicted the electric circuit identical to the electric circuit in the
reconstructed explosive device (IED) (MO-722) used by Dhanu to trigger the
blast which killed Rajiv Gandhi and others. Arivu (A-18) is a diploma holder in
Electronics and Telecommunication Engineering.
j)
During the second week of May, 1991 Arivu (A-18) purchased two numbers of 9
volt golden power battery (MO-678) and gave the same to Sivarasan. This battery
was used in the belt bomb by Dhanu and portions thereof were seized at the
scene of the crime. Arivu (A-18) in his confession admitted that 9 volt battery
purchased by him was used by Sivarasan to kill Rajiv Gandhi. It is in evidence
that components which were left after the blast also contained pieces of 9 volt
cell called golden power which was the source of power for exploding the
device.
k)
After it was published in the newspapers on 19.5.1991 about the visit of Rajiv
Gandhi to Tamil Nadu for 21.5.1991 and 22.5.1991 a meeting was organized on 20.5.1991
in the house of A-21 though she was not a party to that meeting. When Arivu
(A-18) came to the house of Padma (A-21) he learnt that Sivarasan had come and
had a talk with Nalini (A-1) and Haribabu. He also came to know that that talk
was regarding the public meeting of Rajiv Gandhi to be held on the following
day at Sriperumbudur. Arivu (A-18) gave a Kodak colour film roll to Haribabu in
the house of Padma (A-21).
l)
Haribabu used the Kodak film in his camera to take photographs at the scene of
crime on 21.5.1991. It has come in evidence that it was that Kodak colour film
which was used in the camera by Haribabu.
m)
After Rajiv Gandhi was killed on 21.5.1991 Arivu (A-18) on the following day
removed his things from the house of Padma (A-21), like TV, VCR, etc., which
were subsequently recovered and seized. On the night of 21.5.1991 Arivu (A18)
had gone to see a movie with Bhagyanathan (A-20).
n)
When Sivarasan came to the house of Padma (A-21) on 23.5.1991 and narrated the
happening at Sriperumbudur on 21.5.1991 he sent Arivu (A-18) to the studio of
Suba Sundaram (A-22) to check whether arrangements had been made for getting
the dead body of Haribabu.
o) In
his letter (Exh.P-128) written by Trichy Santhan to Irumborai (A-19) he
complained about Sivarasan associating with him persons like Arivu (A-18) and
others.
Conduct
of Arivu (A-18) before and after the assassination of Rajiv Gandhi leaves no
one in doubt that he was member of the conspiracy. It is not necessary for a
conspirator to be present at the scene of the crime to be a member of the
Conspiracy. Mr. Natarajan said that Arivu (A-18) was merely an errand boy and
was following the instructions of Sivarasan and he himself had no active role
to play. He said Arivu (A-18) bought the car battery and 9 volt golden power
battery at the instance of Sivarasan and so also Kawasaki Bajaj motorcycle. He
further argued that merely on these counts it cannot be said that Arivu (A-18)
had knowledge of the conspiracy and that he himself did not agree to achieve the
object of the conspiracy.
Circumstances
rather show that Arivu (A-18) was in the thick of conspiracy. He knew that to
explode the IED power source would be 9 volt battery and that is why he
purchased battery of that power and which was ultimately used in exploding the
device killing Rajiv Gandhi and others. Mr. Natarajan also said that the
version of Arivu (A-18) that this battery was used for explosion of the IED was
his knowledge derived after the explosion cannot be accepted. Arivu (A-18) has,
therefore, been rightly convicted for various offences charged against him by
the Designated Court.
Irumborai
(A-19) ---------------- a) Irumborai (A-19) was given this name by LTTE. His
original name is Duraisingam.
b)
Irumborai (A-19) was assisting Suresh Master (DA) in the treatment of injured
LTTE cadres in Tamil Nadu and other places. In his confession Irumborai (A-19)
narrated important incidents which took place between him and Trichy Santhan
(DA).
c)
Irumborai (A-19) had gone to Jaffna in Sri Lanka along with Arivu (A-18) and
Baby Subramaniam. He returned in November, 1990 along with Suresh Master and
two injured ladies.
d)
Rangam (A-24) had taken a house on rent in March, 1991 in Alwarthirunagar which
was used for stay of injured LTTE care.
e)
From the letter dated 7.9.1991 (Exh.P-128) written by Trichy Santhan to
Irumborai (A-19) prosecution seeks to draw inference that Irumborai (A-19) had
prior knowledge about the killing of Rajiv Gandhi. It is difficult to draw any
such inference from this letter that Irumborai (A-19) had knowledge of any
conspiracy to kill Rajiv Gandhi.
f)
Irumborai (A-19) was present in the house at Bangalore when Sivarasan, Subha
and Nero were brought there hidden in a tanker lorry by Dhanasekaran (A-23),
Rangam (A-24) and Vicky (A-25). Presence of Irumborai (A-19) in that house was
not by any prior arrangement but on account of his job to look after the
treatment of injured LTTE cadre, who were there. One of such injured cadre was
Jamuna @ Jamila, who had been shifted to Bangalore from Neyveli by Irumborai
(A19) where she was getting treatment for fixing of an artificial limb on her
leg, which she had lost in battle with Sri Lankan army. Irumborai (A-19) had
admitted Jamuna @ Jameela in Neyveli for the purpose of fixing an artificial leg.
Jamuna was about 16/17 years of age and was an LTTE tigress. It was at the
instance of Suresh Master (DA) that Jamuna was brought to Bangalore and was in
the house at the time when Sivarasan, Suba and Nero came there.
It was
Trichy Santhan (DA) who told Irumborai (A-19) as to how Sivarasan, Suba and
Nero came to Bangalore hidden in a tanker lorry of Dhanasekaran (A-23). g) When
Irumborai (A-19) learnt from Trichi Santhan in the second week of May, 1991
about some impending action of LTTE to kill an important leader he told Suresh
Master to inform the injured LTTE boys to be careful. Vicky (A-25) was arrested
in Coimbatore and accused Dixon died. Since Vicky (A-25) knew about the place
at Indira Nagar, Bangalore, where Sivarasan, Suba and Nero and about 20-25
injured LTTE cadre were staying it was decided to arrange a separate house for
Sivarasan, Suba and Nero. Irumborai (A19) took three LTTE injured boys and left
them in a particular house.
h)
When Irumborai (A-19) was on his way to Jaffna in Sri Lanka after arranging a
boat he was intercepted by the Indian Navy and handed over to the Police.
Letters (Exh.P-128 and P129) were recovered from him.
i)
Irumborai (A-19) learnt about the death of Rajiv Gandhi on the morning of
22.5.1991. To him the death of Rajiv Gandhi seemed to be a brave deed and an
act of revenge.
But
then whatever feeling a person may have that would not make him a member of the
conspiracy. Further apart from the fact that Irumborai (A-19) knew certain
members of the LTTE operating in India but there is no evidence whatsoever that
he had any knowledge of the conspiracy with the object to kill Rajiv Gandhi.
Documents (Exh.P-128 and P-129) are not admissible in evidence. There is
nothing on record to show that Trichy Santhan (DA) was a member of the
conspiracy to kill Rajiv Gandhi. Rather evidence shows that he was looking
after the injured LTTE cadre in India and supplying various medicines to Sri
Lanka to support the war efforts of LTTE there. It also cannot be presumed that
since these documents were recovered from Irumborai (A-19) he knew the contents
thereof or that the contents were correct. The letters were written much after
the object of conspiracy had been achieved and author dead.
Irumborai
(A-19) has been charged for offence under Section 3(4) of TADA. This charge
against him must fail. He has also been charged for an offence under Section
212 IPC on the allegation that he assisted Sivarasan, Subha and Nero in a house
at Indira Nagar to evade their apprehension. He has then been charged for an
offence under Section 12 of Passport Act having contravened Section 3 of that
Act. His conviction and sentence under these charges have not been challenged.
Though we acquit him of charge of conspiracy to murder Rajiv Gandhi we confirm
his conviction and sentence under Section 212 IPC and Section 3 of the Passport
Act.
Bhagyanathan
(A-20) -------------------- Padma (A-21) ------------ a) Bhagyanathan (A-20)
and Padma (A-21), son and mother, are Indian Tamils. Nalini (A-1) and Kalyani
are daughters of Padma (A-21). Padma (A-21), who was employed in Kalyani
Nursing Home, was staying in the quarters of the Nursing Home till January,
1991 when shifted to Royapettah house.
b) In
this house Murugan (A-3), a hard-core LTTE militant stayed concealing his identity.
c)
Bhagyanathan (A-20) purchased LTTE press from Baby Subramaniam at a very
nominal cost. That was in May, 1990.
He had
promised to go on printing LTTE publications. He took training in photography
from Suba Studio of Suba Sundaram (A-22). Haribabu and Arivu (A-18) had also
taken training there. Bhagyanathan (A-20) had been working for LTTE in Tamil
Nadu.
d)
Bhagyanathan (A-20) and Haribabu helped Arivu (A-18) in shifting LTTE material
in March, 1991 from the house of Sankari (PW-210). In this material there was
one black book in three volumes (MO-609). There was also a video cassette
(MO-143) containing the speech of Sivarasan on the occasion of second death
anniversary of LTTE leader Dileepan, who died while on fast unto death.
Bhagyanathan (A-20) was helping Arivu (A-18) for recording news, telecast on
Doordarshan in Tamil and English and the recorded the cassettes were sent to
Sri Lanka.
e)
Murugan (A-3) had introduced Sivarasan to Bhagyanathan (A20). When Murugan
(A-3) wanted the help to engage a photographer and videographer for covering
DGP's office in Tamil Nadu, Fort St. George and other places Bhagyanathan
(A-20) introduced him to Haribabu.
f)
Bhagyanathan (A-20) was aware that Nalini (A-1), Murugan (A-3), Arivu (A-18),
Sivarasan, Subha, Dhanu and Haribabu had attended the meeting of V.P. Singh on
7.5.1991 at Nandanam, Madras. He himself did not attend the meeting.
g) On
20.5.1991 Sivarasan, Murugan (A-3), Arivu (A-18) and Haribabu had come to the
house of Padma (A-21). There is, however, no evidence as to what conversation,
if any, took place at that time and whether Bhagyanathan (A-20) himself
attended the meeting and if so what was his part.
It was
on 23.5.1991 when Sivarasan and Nalini (A-1) came to the house of Padma (A-21)
he got narration of the incident that took place at Sriperumbudur on 21.5.1991.
h)
Bhagyanathan (A-20) gave a sum of Rs.1,000/- to Haribabu's family for meeting
the expenses on account of death of Haribabu, which money was given by Murugan
(A-3).
i)
After the death of Rajiv Gandhi Bhagyanathan (A-20) helped Arivu (A-18) to
removed his TV, VCR, etc. and other LTTE materials from the house of Padma
(A-21) to the house of a friend of Arivu (A-18).
j)
Knowing fully well that Sivarasan, Subha, Dhanu, Nalini (A1) and Haribabu had
gone to Sriperumbudur on 21.5.1991 and killed Rajiv Gandhi yet Bhagyanathan
(A-20) engaged a taxi on 25.5.1991 for Nalini (A-1), Murugan (A-3), Sivarasan
Subha and Padma (A-21) to go to Tirupathi. Padma (A-21), however, was not a
willing party initially to go to Tirupathi but was persuaded to go.
k)
When this group returned from Tirupathi on the following day Bhagyanathan
(A-20) allowed Murugan (A-3) to hide himself in his press. He also brought food
from his house for Murugan (A-3). He also kept Kawasaki Bajaj Motorcycle
(MO-82), which was used by Sivarasan.
l)
After the assassination of Rajiv Gandhi Murugan (A-3) had handed over two code
sheets (MO-107 and 108) to Padma (A-21) and asked her to keep them in safe
custody.
Padma
(A-21) in turn handed over those two code sheets to her colleague in the
nursing home Devasena Raj (PW-73) who in turn kept those in her locker used for
keeping uniform.
Prosecution
has alleged that Padma (A-21) was aware of the importance of the code sheets
used by Murugan (A-3) for communicating with LTTE headquarters in Jaffna. There
is, however, no evidence if Padma (A-21) knew what the code sheets were about
and how she could know their importance.
m)
Murugan (A-3) provided financial help to Padma (A-21), who was in debt with which
Padma (A-21) was able to pay off to her creditors but then that was much before
the date of assassination of Rajiv Gandhi.
n) A
wireless message was sent by Sivarasan to Pottu Amman that Bhagyanathan (A-20)
and Padma (A-21) had been arrested which according to the prosecution would
show that both Bhagyanathan (A-20) and Padma (A-21) were part of the conspiracy
as otherwise there was no necessity for Sivarasan to send a wireless message.
We do
not think all these factors make out any case against either Bhagyanathan
(A-20) or Padma (A-21) that they were having any knowledge of the conspiracy or
knew of the object of the conspiracy. Pottu Amman did know about Padma (A-21)
and Bhagyanathan (A-20) because of Nalini (A-1) and the fact that Murugan (A-3)
was staying in their house. No inference of any conspiracy can be drawn from
the mere fact that Sivarasan sent the wireless message about the arrest of
Bhagyanathan (A-20) and Padma (A-21). Moreover mere association with LTTE
hard-core militants or the fact that those militants turned out to be the
persons responsible for the killing of Rajiv Gandhi would not make Bhagyanathan
(A-20) and Padma (A-21) members of any conspiracy to kill Rajiv Gandhi. There
is nothing unusual in Murugan (A-3) providing financial help to Padma (A-21) in
view of the fact that he was staying in her house and also his having affair
with Nalini (A-1). Charge of any conspiracy against Padma (A-21) and
Bhagyanathan (A-20) must fail. Charge under Section 3(3) TADA against both of
them also fails. They, however, have rightly been convicted and sentenced for
offence under Section 212 IPC. Their conviction under Section 212 IPC and
sentence was not challenged by Mr. Natarajan. Padma (A-21) has also been
charged for an offence under Section 6(1A) of Wireless Telegraphy Act and found
guilty and sentenced. This charge against her was that she was in possession of
two code sheets used by Murugan (A-3) which was material used for communicating
from India to other conspirators, namely, Prabhakaran and Pottu Amman in Sri
Lanka and those sheets were handed over to Padma (A-21) for safe custody. We do
not think that there is any evidence to suggest that Padma (A-21) had any
knowledge of the code sheets or what the code sheets were about. Padma (A-21)
was not aware of the contents of the code sheets or for what purpose these were
put to use by Murugan (A-3). Prosecution also does not tell us the contents of
the code sheets and how these were used by Murugan (A3). Charge under Section
6(1A) of Indian Wireless and Telegraphy Act must, therefore, fail.
Suba
Sundaram (A-22) -------------------- a) Suba Sundaram (A-22) is owner of Subha
News Photo Services, also known as Suba Studio. Here Arivu (A-18), Bhagyanathan
(A-20), Haribabu and Ravishankar (PW-151) took training from Suba Sundaram
(A-22). Suba Studio was a meeting point for LTTE activists. Suba Sundaram
(A-22) was in regular touch with LTTE leaders and was in correspondence with
them. In one of the letters he described the absconding accused Prabhakaran "protector
of world Tamils Younger brother General Prabhakaran". In yet another
letter (Exh.P-544) he criticized the performance of IPKF in Sri Lanka.
b)
Haribabu worked in Suba Studio during 1988-90 at a monthly salary of Rs.350/-.
Though he left Suba Studio he continued visiting the studio regularly.
c) On
21.5.1991 Haribabu first went to Ravishankar (PW-151) and borrowed camera
(MO-1) from him. At that time he was carrying a parcel containing a sandalwood
garland purchased by him from Poompuhar Handicrafts that morning. This garland
was subsequently used by Dhanu to go near Rajiv Gandhi with the pretext of
garlanding him.
d)
After getting camera (MO-1) Haribabu went to Subha Studio and thereafter left
that place for going to Sriperumbudur. Prosecution wants us to infer from this
that going of Haribabu to Sriperumbudur for covering the function of Rajiv
Gandhi was known to Suba Sundaram (A-22).
e) On
the night of 21.5.1991 after the blast Suba Sundaram (A22) was fervently trying
to find out about Haribabu. He was told by T. Ramamurthy (PW-72) that haribabu
had died. Suba Sundaram (A-22) asked T. Ramamurthy (PW-72) as to whether he had
taken photographs of the incident. Suba Sundaram (A-22) told T. Ramamurthy
(PW-72) that he could have brought the camera used by Haribabu. To that T.
Ramamurthy (PW-72) replied that a VVIP had been murdered and all the articles
at the scene might be important material object and it was wrong to touch them.
Suba Sundaram (A-22) again told T.
Ramamurthy
(PW-72) that if he could have brought the camera they could have used the
photos inside them.
f)
Suba Sundaram (A-22) thereafter contacted K. Ramamurthy (PW258), President of
AICC(I) for seeking his help to retrieve the camera of Haribabu.
g)
Since Suba Sundaram (A-22) was making strenuous efforts for getting the camera
prosecution says that the sole purpose was to destroy any clue that the
investigating agency might get from the photographs taken by Haribabu before he
died about the role of LTTE and others in the crime. But then it must not be
forgotten that Suba Sundaram (A-22) was running a studio and he was keen that
he should get the photographs taken by Haribabu and use them for his business.
h)
Suba Sundaram (A-22) made all attempts to conceal the identity of Haribabu that
he was an LTTE activist and that he had been engaged by Sivarasan and others to
take the photographs of the incident.
i)
Though he was aware that Haribabu had gone to the public meeting of Rajiv
Gandhi and that he was working for LTTE he got the statement issued by father
of Haribabu V.T. Sundaramani (PW-120) denying that his son was member of LTTE.
j)
Suba Sundaram (A-22) wanted all the material relating to LTTE lying in the
house of Haribabu to be destroyed so that no one could find the link of
Haribabu with LTTE.
All
these factors will not make Suba Sundaram (A-22) a member of the conspiracy
with the object to kill Rajiv Gandhi. Even his knowledge of conspiracy cannot
be inferred from the circumstances put at highest from the prosecution point of
view. Suba Sundaram (A-22) has been charged for an offence under Section 3(3)
of TADA which charge must fail.
He has
also been charged for an offence under Section 201 IPC for which he has been
found guilty and convicted and sentenced. There is no challenge to his conviction
under this charge.
Having
thus considered the case of each accused now charged before us we have to
examine what sentence is to be awarded particularly where charge of murder has
been proved against some of the accused.
In
spite of the concession of Mr. Natarajan we have independently examined the
evidence with respect to charges against each of the accused. We acquit Shanthi
(A-11), Selvaluxmi (A-13) and Shanmugavadivelu (A-15) of all charges. Their
conviction and sentence are set aside.
None
of the accused has committed any offence under Section 3, 4 or 5 of TADA. Their
conviction and sentence under these Sections are set aside.
Conviction
and sentence of the accused except, Nalini (A1), Santhan (A-2), Murugan (A-3)
and Arivu (A-18) under all other charges are maintained. Conviction and
sentence of all the accused under Section 120B IPC read with all other counts
as mentioned in charge No.1 is set aside except conviction of Nalini (A-1),
Santhan (A-2), Murugan (A-3) and Arivu (A-18) under Section 120B read with
Section 302 IPC.
Conviction
of Nalini (A-1) under Section 302 IPC read with Section 34 IPC on various
counts is upheld and so also of Arivu (A-18) under Sections 109 and 302 IPC.
Conviction
and sentence of Nalini (A-1) under Section 326 IPC read with Section 34 IPC,
Section 324 IPC read with Section 34 IPC and that of Arivu (A-18) under
Sections 109 and 326 IPC and Sections 109 and 324 IPC are maintained.
In
view of these discussions Shanthi (A-11), Selvaluxmi (A13) and Shanmugavadivelu
(A-15) are to be released forthwith. All other accused except Nalini (A-1),
Santhan (A-2), Murugan (A-3) and Arivu (A-18) would also be entitled to be
released forthwith as it was pointed out to us that they have already undergone
imprisonment for a period of more than the sentence of imprisonment awarded to
them. In case they are not required to be detained in any other case they shall
also be released forthwith.
We
confirm the conviction of Nalini (A-1), Santhan (A-2), Murugan (A-3) and Arivu
(A-18) under Section 120B read with Section 302 IPC.
We
have been addressed arguments on the question of sentence to be passed against
the accused which is the requirement of Subsection (2) of Section 235 of the
Code. Section 354 of the Code deals with the contents of judgment.
Sub-section
(3) of Section 354 is relevant. It is as under :- "(3) When the conviction
is for an offence punishable with death or, in the alternative, with
imprisonment for life or imprisonment for a term of years, the judgment shall
state the reasons for the sentence awarded, and, in the case of sentence of
death, the special reasons for such sentence." Mr. Natarajan said that in
case we hold that Nalini (A-1), Santhan (A-2), Murugan (A-3) and Arivu (A-18)
are guilty they do not deserve the extreme penalty.
In
Bachan Singh vs. State of Punjab (1980 (2) SCC 684) the Constitution Bench of
this Court was considering the constitutional validity of Section 302 IPC.
Though holding that Section 302 IPC and Section 354(3) of the Code are
constitutionally valid this Court referred to the circumstances both
aggravating and mitigating for imposing a sentence of death. It also made
observations on Sections 354(3) and 235(2) of the Code. It will be advantageous
to quote paras 201, 202 and 209 of the judgment which are as under :-
"201.As we read Sections 354(3) and 235(2) and other related provisions of
the Code of 1973, it is quite clear to us that for making the choice of
punishment or for ascertaining the existence or absence of "special
reasons" in that context, the court must pay due regard both to the crime
and the criminal.
What
is the relative weight to be given to the aggravating and mitigating factors,
depends on the facts and circumstances of the particular case.
More
often than not, these two aspects are so intertwined that it is difficult to
give a separate treatment to each of them. This is so because 'style is the
man'. In many cases, the extremely cruel or beastly manner of the commission of
murder is itself a demonstrated index of the depraved character of the
perpetrator. That is why, it is not desirable to consider the circumstances of
the crime and the circumstances of the criminal in two separate watertight
compartments. In a sense, to kill is to be cruel and therefore all murders are
cruel. But such cruelty may vary in its degree of culpability. And it is only
when the culpability assumes the proportion of extreme depravity that
"special reasons" can legitimately be said to exist." 202.
Drawing upon the penal statutes of the States in U.S.A. framed after Furman v.
Georgia (33 L Ed 2d 346: 408 US 238 [1972]), in general, and Clauses 2(a), (b),
(c) and (d) of the Indian Penal Code (Amendment) Bill passed in 1978 by the
Rajya Sabha, in particular, Dr. Chitale has suggested these "aggravating
circumstances":
Aggravating
circumstances: A court may, however, in the following cases impose the penalty
of death in its discretion :
(a) if
the murder has been committed after previous planning and involves extreme
brutality; or (b) if the murder involves exceptional depravity; or (c) if the
murder is of a member of any of the armed forces of the Union or of a member of
any police force or of any public servant and was committed -- (i) while such
member or public servant was on duty; or (ii) in consequence of anything done
or attempted to be done by such member or public servant in the lawful
discharge of his duty as such member or public servant whether at the time of
murder he was such member or public servant, as the case may be, or had ceased
to be such member of public servant;
or (d)
if the murder is of a person who had acted in the lawful discharge of his duty
under Section 43 of the Code of Criminal Procedure, 1973, or who had rendered
assistance to a magistrate or a police officer demanding his aid or requiring his
assistance under Section 37 and Section 129 of the said Code." "209.
There are numerous other circumstances justifying the passing of the lighter
sentence; as there are countervailing circumstances of aggravation. "We
cannot obviously feed into a judicial computer all such situations since they
are astrological imponderables in an imperfect and undulating society."
Nonetheless, it cannot be over-emphasised that the scope and concept of
mitigating factors in the area of death penalty must receive a liberal and
expansive construction by the courts in accord with the sentencing policy writ
large in Section 354(3). Judges should never be bloodthirsty. Hanging of
murderers has never been too good for them. Facts and figures, albeit
incomplete, furnished by the Union of India, show that in the past, courts have
inflicted the extreme penalty with extreme infrequency -- a fact which attests
to the caution and compassion which they have always brought to bear on the
exercise of their sentencing discretion in so grave a matter. It is, therefore,
imperative to voice the concern that courts, aided by the broad illustrative
guide-lines indicated by us, will discharge the onerous function with evermore
scrupulous care and humane concern, directed along the highroad of legislative
policy outlined in Section 354(3), viz., that for persons convicted of murder,
life imprisonment is the rule and death sentence an exception. A real and
abiding concern for the dignity of human life postulates resistance to taking a
life through law's instrumentality. That ought not to be done save in the
rarest of rare cases when the alternative option is unquestionably
foreclosed." Judgment in Masalti vs. State of U.P. (1964 (8) SCR 133) was
delivered before the new Code, i.e., Criminal Procedure Code, 1973 (Act 2 of
1974) came into operation.
40
persons were put on trial before the Additional Sessions Judge under Section
302 read with Section 149 of the Indian Penal Code and other sections for
committing murder of five persons with guns. Of them 35 were found guilty and
the Additional Sessions Judge sentenced ten of them, who carried fire arms, to
death and the rest to imprisonment for life.
On a
reference to the High Court under Section 374 of the old Code and also on
appeals filed by the convicted persons High Court acquitted seven of the
appellants, concurring with the findings of the Additional Sessions Judge and
dismissed the appeal of the rest. It confirmed the death sentences passed on
the ten accused. This Court said that both the trial court and the High Court
were agreed that these sentences of death imposed on ten persons were justified
by the circumstances of the case and by the requirements of justice. It said
that as a mere proposition of law it should be difficult to accept the argument
that the sentence of death could be ultimately imposed only where an accused
person was found to have committed the murder himself. This Court then held as
under :- "Whether or not sentences of death should be imposed on persons
who are found to be guilty not because they themselves committed the murder,
but because they were members of an unlawful assembly and the offence of murder
was committed by one or more of the members of such an assembly in pursuance of
the common object of that assembly, is a matter which had to be decided on the
facts and circumstances of each case. In the present case, it is clear that the
whole group of persons belonged to Laxmi Prasad's faction, joined together
armed with deadly weapons and they were inspired by the common object of
exterminating the male members in the family of Gayadin, 10 of these persons
were armed with fire-arms and the others with several other deadly weapons, and
evidence shows that five murders by shooting were committed by the members of
this unlawful assembly. The conduct of the members of the unlawful assembly
both before and after the commission of the offence has been considered by the
courts below and it has been held that in order to suppress such fantastic
criminal conduct on the part of villagers it is necessary to impose the
sentences of death on 10 members of the unlawful assembly who were armed with
fire-arms. It cannot be said that discretion in the matter has been improperly
exercised either by the trial Court or by the High Court. Therefore we see no
reason to accept the argument urged by Mr. Sawhney that the test adopted by the
High Court in dealing with the question of sentence is mechanical and
unreasonable.
There
are, however, three cases in which we think we ought to interfere. These are
the cases of accused No.9 Ram Saran who is aged 18; accused No. 11 Asha Ram who
is aged 23 and accused No. 16 Deo Prasad who is aged 24, Ram Saran and Asha Ram
are the sons of Bhagwati who is accused No. 2. Both of them have been sentenced
to death. Similarly, Deo Prasad has also been sentenced to death. Having regard
to the circumstances under which the unlawful assembly came to be formed, we
are satisfied that these young men must have joined the unlawful assembly under
pressure and influence of the elders of their respective families. The list of
accused persons shows that the unlawful assembly was constituted by members of
different families and having regard to the manner in which these factions
ordinarily conduct themselves in villages, it would not be unreasonable to hold
that these three young men must have been compelled to join the unlawful
assembly that morning by their elders, and so, we think that the ends of
justice would be met if the sentences of death imposed on them are modified
into sentences of life imprisonment. Accordingly, we confirm the orders of
conviction and sentence passed against all the appellants except accused Nos.
9, 11 and 16 in whose cases the sentences are altered to those of imprisonment
for life. In the result, the appeals are dismissed, subject to the said
modification." In Dhananjoy Chatterjee Alias Dhana vs. State of West
Bangal [(1994) 2 SCC 220] this Court said :
"In
recent years, the rising crime rate particularly violent crime against women
has made the criminal sentencing by the courts a subject of concern.
Today
there are admitted disparities. Some criminals get very harsh sentences while
many receive grossly different sentence for an essentially equivalent crime and
a shockingly large number even go unpunished thereby encouraging the criminal
and in the ultimate making justice suffer by weakening the system's
credibility. Of course, it is not possible to lay down any cut and dry formula
relating to imposition of sentence but the object of sentencing should be to
see that the crime does not go unpunished and the victim of crime as also the
society has the satisfaction that justice has been done to it. In imposing
sentences in the absence of specific legislation, Judges must consider variety
of factors and after considering all those factors and taking an overall view
of the situation, impose sentence which they consider to be an appropriate one.
Aggravating factors cannot be ignored and similarly mitigating circumstances
have also to be taken into consideration.
In our
opinion, the measure of punishment in a given case must depend upon the
atrocity of the crime; the conduct of the criminal and the defenceless and
unprotected state of the victim.
Imposition
of appropriate punishment is the manner in which the courts respond to the
society's cry for justice against the criminals. Justice demands that courts
should impose punishment befitting the crime so that the courts reflect public
abhorrence of the crime. The courts must not only keep in view the rights of
the criminal but also the rights of the victim of crime and the society at
large while considering imposition of appropriate punishment." In Bheru
Singh s/o Kalyan Singh vs. State of Rajasthan [(1994) 2 SCC 467] this Court
relied on its observations on the question of sentence made in Dhananjoy
Chatterjee Alias Dhana's case and then in the case of a writ said as under :
((SCO
LYRIX 6.1 )) "The barbaric, gruesome and heinous type of crime which the
appellant committed is a revolt against the society and an affront to human
dignity.
There
are no extenuating or mitigating circumstances whatsoever in this case nor have
any been pointed out and in our opinion it is a fit case which calls for no
punishment other than the capital punishment and we accordingly confirm the sentence
of death imposed upon the appellant. The plea of his learned counsel for mercy
is unjustified and the prayer for sympathy, in the facts and circumstances of
the case, is wholly misplaced. We, therefore, uphold the conviction and
sentence of death imposed upon the appellant by the courts below for the
offence under Section 302 IPC." In Natwarlal Sakarlal Mody vs. The State
of Bombay [(1963) 65 BLR 660 (SC)] this Court said as under :
"While
s.239 of the Code of Criminal Procedure allows a joint trial of persons and
offences within defined limits, it is within the discretion of the Court to
permit such a joint trial or not, having regard to the circumstances of each
case. It would certainly be an irregular exercise of discretion if a Court
allows an innumerable number of offences spread over a long period of time and
committed by a large number of persons under the protecting wing of
all-embracing conspiracy, if each or some of the offences can legitimately and
properly form the subject-matter of a separate trial; such a joint trial would
undoubtedly prolong the trial and would be a cause of unnecessary waste of
judicial time.
It
would complicate matters which might otherwise be simple; it would confuse
accused and cause prejudice to them, for more often than not accused who have
taken part in one of the minor offences might have not only to undergo the long
strain of protracted trial, but there might also be the likelihood of the
impact of the evidence adduced in respect of other accused on the evidence
adduced against him working to his detriment. Nor can it be said that such an
omnibus charge or charges would always be in favour of the prosecution for the
confusion introduced in the charges and consequently in the evidence may
ultimately benefit some of the accused, as a clear case against one or other of
the accused may be complicated or confused by the attempt to put it in a proper
place in a larger setting. A Court should not be overzealous to provide a cover
of conspiracy for a number of offences unless it is clearly satisfied on the
material placed before it that there is evidence to prove prima facie that the
persons who committed separate offences were parties to the conspiracy and they
committed the separate acts attributed to them pursuant to the object of the
said conspiracy." In Payne vs. Tennessee {111 S.Ct. 2597 (91)} the Supreme
Court of United States overruled by majority of 6:3 its earlier two decisions
in Booth vs. Maryland (482 U.S. 496) and South Carolina vs. Gathers (490 U.S.
805) and upheld the admission during capital sentencing of evidence relating to
the victim's personal characteristics and the emotional impact of crime on the
victim or his family or friends. Charisse Christopher, her two years old
daughter Lacie, and her three years old son, Nicholas, were brutally attacked
with a butcher knife in their apartment in Tennessee. Only the son Nicholas
survived. The police arrested Payne and a jury found him guilty of two counts
of first degree murder and one count of assault with intent to commit murder in
the first degree. At the sentencing phase of trial, the state presented the
testimony of the mother of Charisse Christopher, who explained how Nicholas
continued to be affected by the murders: "He cries for his mom....And he cries
for his sister Lacie." In addition, during his closing argument the
prosecutor depicted the continuing impact on Nicholas's life: "His mother
will never kiss him good night or pat him as he goes off to bed....He doesn't
have anybody to watch cartoons with him...." The jury then sentenced Payne
to death. The Supreme Court of Tennessee affirmed the conviction. Despite Booth
and Gathers, the court found the admission of victim impact evidence
"technically irrelevant" but "harmless beyond reasonable
doubt." The court even applauded the admission of such evidence and
claimed that "It is an affront to the civilized members of the human race
to say that at sentencing in a capital case, a parade of witnesses may
praise.... the Defendant.... but nothing may be said that bears upon the
character of, or the harm imposed upon, the victims.
Although
the Tennessee Supreme Court's holding rested on a finding of harmless error,
the Supreme Court, upon granting certiorari, specifically asked the parties to
address whether Booth and Gathers should be overruled, even though the issue
had not been raised in the petition for certiorari or in its response. In a 6:3
opinion, the Supreme Court affirmed the Tennessee Supreme Court's judgment and
explicity overruled Booth and Gathers. Writing for the majority, Chief Justice
Rehnquist noted that Booth and Gathers were premised on the notion that a
capital defendant should be treated as a "uniquely individual human
being".
This
"individualized consideration," he argued, should not occur "wholly
apart from the crime" the defendant committed.
According
to Chief Justice Rehnquist, Booth and Gathers created an unfairly imbalanced
process in which the defendant may introduce all mitigating personal evidence,
although "the State is barred from...offering 'a glimpse of the life'
which the defendant 'chose to extinguish'." (Harvard Law Review -
Vol.105).
In R
v. Howells and others [(1999) 1 All.ER 50] Court of Appeal, Criminal Division
said that "Court should always bear in mind that sentences were in almost
every case intended to protect the public, whether by punishing the offender or
reforming him, or deterring him and others, or all of those things." Mr.
Natarajan said that Nalini (A-1) got involved in the conspiracy only to please
Murugan (A-3) and to be close to him, who was her lover. It was Murugan (A-3),
who first indoctrinated her and then used her as a cover. It was not that any
idea to assassinate Rajiv Gandhi had originated with her and she became party
to the conspiracy only on the day of the incident itself though she might have
suspicion or even knowledge about the same. Mr. Natarajan further said that
Nalini (A-1) did not contribute to the conspiracy but merely acted as a cover
as she was only obeying the role assigned to her by Sivarasan whom Murugan
(A-3) introduced to her as his boss. It was also submitted that in India no
woman had been hanged since India attained independence. He said if we look at
the criminal, Nalini (A-1) did not belong to any criminal tribe and that though
there is no evidence about her character but nothing has been said about her
bad antecedents by the Executive Officer from her office, who appeared as a
witness. He said in his confession Nalini (A-1) had already expressed regret
and repentance and now she is a chastened woman. She is not any threat or
menace to the society. Lastly, he said considering the future of the girl
child, who is adolescent and born in unfortunate circumstances Nalini (A-1) may
be spared the extreme penalty of death. Santhan (A-2), Mr. Natarajan said, came
to India in the group of nine with Sivarasan on 1.5.1991 but he had come to
India to go abroad.
Since
arrangements for his passport and visa could not be made till then he continued
to stay in India. Otherwise, he would not have been here to be a member of the
conspiracy.
About
Murugan (A-3) Mr. Natarajan said that he was summoned to go to Sri Lanka and
was on his way there. But since boat did not arrive from there he had to return
to Madras. Had the boat arrived on time from Sri Lanka Murugan (A-3) would not
have been here during the crucial period culminating in achieving the object of
conspiracy. It was submitted that both Santhan (A-2) and Murugan (A-3) were not
involved in any policy making for LTTE and were not the perpetrators of the
crime. They acted under the domination of others and do not deserve the extreme
penalty. About Murugan (A-3) Mr. Natarajan said that he is also father of the
girl child.
Arivu
(A-18), he said, was under the complete domination of Sivarasan and did not understand
the implications of the various jobs entrusted to him by Sivarasan. He is a
youth of 20 years having born on 30.7.1971 and does not deserve extreme penalty
for the crime of abetment to murder, being also a paid employee of LTTE.
It is
not that Nalini (A-1) did not understand the nature of the crime and her
participation. She was a willing party to the crime. We have to see both the
crime and the criminal. Nalini (A-1) in her association with Murugan (A-3) and
others developed great hatred towards Rajiv Gandhi and wanted to have a
revenge. Merely because Nalini (A-1) is a woman and a mother of the child who
was born while she was in custody cannot be the ground not to award the extreme
penalty to her. She is an educated woman and was working as a stenographer in a
private firm. She was living alone away from her mother, sister and brother
since April, 1990 and started living in a rented apartment in Villivakkam from
October, 1990. She became friendly to Murugan (A-3) when she was introduced to
him in her office by her sister Kalyani and Bharathi (PW-233). Before this date
also she was close to some of the LTTE activists. She developed fondness
towards Murugan (A-3) and in fact wanted to marry him. He, however, declined as
he said he was a committed LTTE activist and as per code of LTTE he could not
marry. They were, however, having sexual relations and when they returned from
trip to Tirupathi after the assassination of Rajiv Gandhi it was found that
Nalini (A-1) was pregnant.
Subsequently
while both of them were in custody they were married from earlier date. It was
in July 1991 that she gave birth to the girl child. When we think of the crime
we find that along with Rajiv Gandhi 15 others also lost their lives. Many of
them were policemen on duty. Fifteen persons who lost their lives in the bomb
blast were: (1) P.K. Gupta, Personal Security Officer to Rajiv Gandhi, (2)
Latha Kannan, (3) Kokilavani, (4) Iqbal, Superintendent of Police, (5)
Rajaguru, Inspector of Police, (6) Edward Joseph, Inspector of Police, (7)
Ethiraj, Sub Inspector of Police, (8) Sundararaju Pillai, Police constable, (9)
Ravi, Commando Police constable, (10) Dharman, Police constable, (11) Chandra,
woman police constable, (12) Santhani Begum, (13) Darryl Peter, (14) Kumari
Saroja Devi and (15) Munuswamy. It is not disputed that these persons died on
account of the bomb blast and others suffered grievous and simple injuries on
that account. What about their families, one may ask. In the beginning of the
judgment we noted that one small girl Kokila wanted to recite a poem to Rajiv
Gandhi. In one of the photographs she is shown standing with her mother Latha
Kannan next to Dhanu. Both died in the blast. What about the children, wives
and husbands of those who died? Cruelty of the crime committed has known no
bounds. The crime sent shock waves in the country. General elections had to be
postponed. It was submitted more than once that principal perpetrators in the
present case are already dead but then for the support which Nalini (A-1), Santhan
(A-2), Murugan (A-3) and Arivu (A-18) afforded for commission of the crime it
could not have been committed.
Each
one of these four accused had a role to play. Crime was committed after
previous planning and executed with extreme brutality. There were as many as
two dry runs as to how to reach Rajiv Gandhi after penetrating the security
cordon. A former Prime Minister of the country was targetted because this
country had entered an agreement with a foreign country in exercise of its
sovereign powers.
Rajiv
Gandhi being head of the Government at that time was signatory to the accord
which was also signed by the head of the Government of Sri Lanka. The accord
had the approval of the Parliament. It was not that Rajiv Gandhi had entered
into the accord in his personal capacity or for his own benefit. Though we have
held that object of the conspiracy was not to commit any terrorist act or any
disruptive activity nevertheless murder of a former Prime Minister for what he
did in the interest of the country was an act of exceptional depravity on the
part of the accused, an unparallel act in the annals of crimes committed in
this country. In a mindless fashion not only that Rajiv Gandhi was killed along
with him others died and many suffered grievous and simple injuries. It is not
that intensity of the belt bomb strapped on the waist of Dhanu was not known to
the conspirators as after switching on the first switch on her belt bomb Dhanu
asked Sivarasan to move away.
Haribabu
was so keen to have close-up picture of the crime that he met his fate in the
blast itself. We are unable to find any mitigating circumstance not to upset
the award of sentence of death on the accused.
This
is a case where all these Nalini (A-1), Santhan (A-2), Murugan (A-3) and Arivu
(A-18) deserve extreme penalty. We confirm the award of sentence of death on
them.
We
record our appreciation of the assistance given to us by counsel for the
parties. Mr. Natarajan, senior advocate, led the team for all the accused
except one. He was ably assisted by Mr. Sunder Mohan, Mr. B. Gopikrishnan, Mr.
S. Duraisamy, Mr. V. Elangovan, Mr.N. Chandrasekharan, Mr. T. Ramdass and Mr.
R. Jayseelan. A heavy burden lay on the shoulders of Mr. Natarajan. He carried
it with aplomb. His presentation of the case showed his complete mastery on
facts and law. It was a pleasure to hear him, not losing his poise even for
once. He was fair in his submissions conceding where it was unnecessary to
contest. Mr. Siva Subramanium, senior advocate assisted by Mr. Thanan, who represented
the remaining one accused, rendered his bit to support Mr.Natarajan. Mr. Altaf
Ahmad, Additional Solicitor General, was not far behind in any way. He had to
face an uphill task defending the sentence of death imposed on all the 26
accused. He in his task was ably assisted by Mr.Jacob Baniel, Mr. Ranganathan,
Mr. P. Parmeshwaran, Mr. A.D.N. Rao, Mr. Romy Chacko, Mr. T.G.N. Nair, Ms.
Meenakshi Arora, Mr. S.A. Matoo and Mr. Mariaputam, advocates. Mr. Altaf Ahmad
was forthright in his submissions. He presented his case with learning and
assiduity. We express our sense of gratitude to all the counsel and admire
their profound learning and experience. They did their job remarkably well.
We
would also like to record our appreciation for the Special Investigation Team
(SIT) constituted by the Central Bureau of Investigation to investigate the
case.
Under
the stewardship of Mr. D.R. Karthikeyan, SIT did assiduous work and was able to
solve the crime within a short time. Investigation was meticulous, loose ends tied
to bring out a clear picture of conspiracy and the part played by each of the
conspirators. Members of SIT performed their job with dedication and
determination. They succeeded in their mission but their only regret perhaps
was that they could not capture Sivarasan alive. We have also a word of praise
for Mr. R.K. Raghavan, who was at the relevant time Inspector General of
Police, Forest Cell (CID), Madras and was entrusted with the election
arrangements in Chinglepet range. He was on duty at the time the crime was
committed at Sriperumbudur. He immediately realised the gravity of situation.
He stayed on at the scene of crime, organised relief and ensured that material
evidence was not tempered with. It was he who found the camera (MO-1) on the
body of Haribabu which provided a breakthrough in the case.
Appeals
filed by the accused and the proceeding submitted by the Designated Court to
this Court under Section 366 of the Code read with Sub-section (6) of Section
20 of TADA are disposed of in the terms mentioned above.
Back